Vladimir
Nabokov. Lolita
FOREWORD
"Lolita, or the Confession of a White Widowed
Male," such were the two titles under which the writer of the present note
received the strange pages it preambulates. "Humbert Humbert," their
author, had died in legal captivity, of coronary thrombosis, on November 16,
1952, a few days before his trial was scheduled to start. His lawyer, my good
friend and relation, Clarence Choate Clark, Esq., now of he District of
Columbia bar, in asking me to edit the manuscript, based his request on a
clause in his client's will which empowered my eminent cousin to use the
discretion in all matters pertaining to the preparation of "Lolita"
for print. Mr. Clark's decision may have been influenced by the fact that the
editor of his choice had just been awarded the Poling Prize for a modest work
("Do the Senses make Sense?") wherein certain morbid states and
perversions had been discussed.
My task proved simpler than either of us had anticipated. Save
for the correction of obvious solecisms and a careful suppression of a few tenacious
details that despite "H.H."'s own efforts still subsisted in his text
as signposts and tombstones (indicative of places or persons that taste would
conceal and compassion spare), this remarkable memoir is presented intact. Its
author's bizarre cognomen is his own invention; and, of course, this
mask-through which two hypnotic eyes seem to glow-had to remain unlifted in
accordance with its wearer's wish. While "Haze" only rhymes with the
heroine's real surname, her first name is too closely interwound with the
inmost fiber of the book to allow one to alter it; nor (as the reader will
perceive for himself) is there any practical necessity to do so. References to
"H.H."'s crime may be looked up by the inquisitive in the daily
papers for September-October 1952; its cause and purpose would have continued
to come under my reading lamp.
For the benefit of old-fashioned readers who wish to follow
the destinies of the "real" people beyond the "true" story,
a few details may be given as received from Mr. "Windmuller," or
"Ramsdale," who desires his identity suppressed so that "the
long shadow of this sorry and sordid business" should not reach the
community to which he is proud to belong. His daughter, "Louise," is
by now a college sophomore, "Mona Dahl" is a student in Paris. "Rita"
has recently married the proprietor of a hotel in Florida. Mrs. "Richard
F. Schiller" died in childbed, giving birth to a stillborn girl, on
Christmas Day 1952, in Gray Star, a settlemen in the remotest Northwest. "Vivian
Darkbloom" has written a biography, "My Cue," to be publshed
shortly, and critics who have perused the manuscript call it her best book. The
caretakers of the various cemeteries involved report that no ghosts walk.
Viewed simply as a novel, "Lolita" deals with situations
and emotions that would remain exasperatingly vague to the reader had their
expression been etiolated by means of platitudinous evasions. True, not a
single obscene term is to be found in the whole work; indeed, the robust
philistine who is conditioned by modern conventions into accepting without
qualms a lavish array of four-letter words in a banal novel, will be quite
shocked by their absence here. If, however, for this paradoxical prude's
comfort, an editor attempted to dilute or omit scenes that a certain type of
mind might call "aphrodisiac" (see in this respect the monumental
decision rendered December 6, 1933, by Hon. John M. Woolsey in regard to
another, considerably more outspoken, book), one would have to forego the
publication of "Lolita" altogether, since those very scenes that one
might inpetly accuse of sensuous existence of their own, are the most strictly
functional ones in the development of a tragic tale tending unsweri\vingly to
nothing less than a moral apotheosis. The cynic may say that commercial
pornography makes the same claim; the learned may counter by asserting that
"H.H."'s impassioned confession is a tempest in a test tube; that at
least 12% of American adult males-a "conservative" estimate according
to Dr. Blanche Schwarzmann (verbal communication)-enjoy yearly, in one way or
another, the special experience "H.H." describes with such despare;
that had our demented diarist gone, in the fatal summer of 1947, to a competent
psycho-pathologist, there would have been no disaster; but then, neither would
there have been this book.
This commentator may be excused for repeating what he has
stressed in his own books and lectures, namely that "offensive" is
frequently but a synonym for "unusual;" and a great work of art is of
course always original, and thus by its very nature should come as a more or
less shocking surprise. I have no intention to glorify "H.H." No
doubt, he is horrible, is is abject, he is a shining example of moral leprosy,
a mixture of ferocity and jocularity that betrays supreme misery perhaps, but
is not conducive to attractiveness. He is ponderously capricious. Many of his
casual opinions on the people and scenery of this country are ludicrous. A
desperate honesty that throbs through his confession does not absolve him from
sins of diabolical cunning. He is abnormal. He is not a gentleman. But how
magically his singing violin can conjure up a tendresse, a compassion for
Lolita that makes us entranced with the book while abhorring its author!
As a case history, "Lolita" will become, no doubt,
a classic in psychiatric circles. As a work of art, it transcends its expiatory
aspects; and still more important to us than scientific significance and
literary worth, is the ethical impact the book should have on the serious
reader; for in this poignant personal study there lurks a general lesson; the
wayward child, the egotistic mother, the panting maniac-these are not only
vivid characters in a unique story: they warn us of dangerous trends; they
point out potent evils. "Lolita" should make all of us-parents,
social workers, educators-apply ourselves with still greater vigilance and
vision to the task of bringing up a better generation in a safer world.
John Ray, Jr., Ph.D.
Widworth, Mass
PART ONE
1
Lolita, light of my life, fire of my loins. My sin, my soul.
Lo-lee-ta: the tip of the tongue taking a trip of three steps down the palate
to tap, at three, on the teeth. Lo. Lee. Ta.
She was Lo, plain Lo, in the morning, standing four feet ten
in one sock. She was Lola in slacks. She was Dolly at school. She was Dolores
on the dotted line. But in my arms she was always Lolita.
Did she have a precursor? She did, indeed she did. In point
of fact, there might have been no Lolita at all had I not loved, one summer, a
certain initial girl-child. In a princedom by the sea. Oh when? About as many
years before Lolita was born as my age was that summer. You can always count on
a murderer for a fancy prose style.
Ladies and gentlemen of the jury, exhibit number one is what
the seraphs, the misinformed, simple, noble-winged seraphs, envied. Look at
this tangle of thorns.
2
I was born in 1910, in Paris. My father was a gentle,
easy-going person, a salad of racial genes: a Swiss citizen, of mixed French
and Austrian descent, with a dash of the Danube in his veins. I am going to
pass around in a minute some lovely, glossy-blue picture-postcards. He owned a
luxurious hotel on the Riviera. His father and two grandfathers had sold wine,
jewels and silk, respectively. At thirty he married an English girl, daughter
of Jerome Dunn, the alpinist, and granddaughter of two Dorset parsons, experts
in obscure subjects-paleopedology and Aeolian harps, respectively. My very
photogenic mother died in a freak accident (picnic, lightning) when I was three,
and, save for a pocket of warmth in the darkest past, nothing of her subsists
within the hollows and dells of memory, over which, if you can still stand my
style (I am writing under observation), the sun of my infancy had set: surely,
you all know those redolent remnants of day suspended, with the midges, about
some hedge in bloom or suddenly entered and traversed by the rambler, at the
bottom of a hill, in the summer dusk; a furry warmth, golden midges.
My mother's elder sister, Sybil, whom a cousin of my
father's had married and then neglected, served in my immediate family as a
kind of unpaid governess and housekeeper. Somebody told me later that she had
been in love with my father, and that he had lightheartedly taken advantage of
it one rainy day and forgotten it by the time the weather cleared. I was
extremely fond of her, despite the rigidity-the fatal rigidity-of some of her
rules. Perhaps she wanted to make of me, in the fullness of time, a better
widower than my father. Aunt Sybil had pink-rimmed azure eyes and a waxen
complexion. She wrote poetry. She was poetically superstitious. She said she
knew she would die soon after my sixteenth birthday, and did. Her husband, a
great traveler in perfumes, spent most of his time in America, where eventually
he founded a firm and acquired a bit of real estate.
I grew, a happy, healthy child in a bright would of
illustrated books, clean sand, orange trees, friendly dogs, sea vistas and
smiling faces. Around me the splendid Hotel Mirana revolved as a kind of
private universe, a whitewashed cosmos within the blue greater one that blazed
outside. From the aproned pot-scrubber to the flanneled potentate, everybody
liked me, everybody petted me. Elderly American ladies leaning on their canes
listed towards me like towers of Pisa. Ruined Russian princesses who could not
pay my father, bought me expensive bonbons. He, mon cher petit papa, took me
out boating and biking, taught me to swim and dive and water-ski, read to me
Don Quixote and Les Miserables, and I adored and respected him and felt glad
for him whenever I overheard the servants discuss his various lady-friends,
beautiful and kind beings who made much of me and cooed and shed precious tears
over my cheerful motherlessness.
I attended an English day school a few miles from home, and
there I played rackets and fives, and got excellent marks, and was on perfect
terms with schoolmates and teachers alike. The only definite sexual events that
I can remember as having occurred before my thirteenth birthday (that is,
before I first saw my little Annabel) were: a solemn, decorous and purely
theoretical talk about pubertal surprises in the rose garden of the school with
an American kid, the son of a then celebrated motion-picture actress whom he
seldom saw in the three-dimensional world; and some interesting reactions on
the part of my organism to certain photographs, pearl and umbra, with
infinitely soft partings, in Pichon's sumptuous Le Beaute Humaine that that I
had filched from under a mountain of marble-bound Graphics in the hotel
library. Later, in his delightful debonair manner, my father gave me all the
information he thought I needed about sex; this was just before sending me, in
the autumn of 1923, to a lycĘe in Lyon (where we were to spend three
winters); but alas, in the summer of that year, he was touring Italy with Mme
de R. and her daughter, and I had nobody to complain to, nobody to consult.
3
Annabel was, like the writer, of mixed parentage:
half-English, half-Dutch, in her case. I remember her features far less
distinctly today than I did a few years ago, before I knew Lolita. There are
two kinds of visual memory: one when you skillfully recreate an image in the
laboratory of your mind, with your eyes open (and then I see Annabel in such
general terms as: "honey-colored skin," "think arms,"
"brown bobbed hair," "long lashes," "big bright
mouth"); and the other when you instantly evoke, with shut eyes, on the
dark inner side of your eyelids, the objective, absolutely optical replica of a
beloved face, a little ghost in natural colors (and this is how I see Lolita).
Let me therefore primly limit myself, in describing Annabel,
to saying she was a lovely child a few months my junior. Her parents were old
friends of my aunt's, and as stuffy as she. They had rented a villa not far
from Hotel Mirana. Bald brown Mr. Leigh and fat, powdered Mrs. Leigh (born
Vanessa van Ness). How I loathed them! At first, Annabel and I talked of
peripheral affairs. She kept lifting handfuls of fine sand and letting it pour
through her fingers. Our brains were turned the way those of intelligent
European preadolescents were in our day and set, and I doubt if much individual
genius should be assigned to our interest in the plurality of inhabited worlds,
competitive tennis, infinity, solipsism and so on. The softness and fragility
of baby animals caused us the same intense pain. She wanted to be a nurse in
some famished Asiatic country; I wanted to be a famous spy.
All at once we were madly, clumsily, shamelessly,
agonizingly in love with each other; hopelessly, I should add, because that
frenzy of mutual possession might have been assuaged only by our actually
imbibing and assimilating every particle of each other's soul and flesh; but
there we were, unable even to mate as slum children would have so easily found
an opportunity to do. After one wild attempt we made to meet at night in her
garden (of which more later), the only privacy we were allowed was to be out of
earshot but not out of sight on the populous part of the plage. There, on the
soft sand, a few feet away from our elders, we would sprawl all morning, in a
petrified paroxysm of desire, and take advantage of every blessed quirk in
space and time to touch each other: her hand, half-hidden in the sand, would
creep toward me, its slender brown fingers sleepwalking nearer and nearer; then,
her opalescent knee would start on a long cautious journey; sometimes a chance
rampart built by younger children granted us sufficient concealment to graze
each other's salty lips; these incomplete contacts drove our healthy and
inexperienced young bodies to such a state of exasperation that not even the
cold blue water, under which we still clawed at each other, could bring relief.
Among some treasures I lost during the wanderings of my
adult years, there was a snapshot taken by my aunt which showed Annabel, her
parents and the staid, elderly, lame gentleman, a Dr. Cooper, who that same
summer courted my aunt, grouped around a table in a sidewalk cafe. Annabel did
not come out well, caught as she was in the act of bending over her chocolat
glaceĘ, and her thin bare shoulders and the parting in her hair were about
all that could be identified (as I remember that picture) amid the sunny blur
into which her lost loveliness graded; but I, sitting somewhat apart from the
rest, came out with a kind of dramatic conspicuousness: a moody, beetle-browed
boy in a dark sport shirt and well-tailored white shorts, his legs crossed,
sitting in profile, looking away. That photograph was taken on the last day of
our fatal summer and just a few minutes before we made our second and final
attempt to thwart fate. Under the flimsiest of pretexts (this was our very last
chance, and nothing really mattered) we escaped from the cafe to the beach, and
found a desolate stretch of sand, and there, in the violet shadow of some red
rocks forming a kind of cave, had a brief session of avid caresses, with
somebody's lost pair of sunglasses for only witness. I was on my knees, and on
the point of possessing my darling, when two bearded bathers, the old man of
the sea and his brother, came out of the sea with exclamations of ribald
encouragement, and four months later she died of typhus in Corfu.
4
I leaf again and again through these miserable memories, and
keep asking myself, was it then, in the glitter of that remote summer, that the
rift in my life began; or was my excessive desire for that child only the first
evidence of an inherent singularity? When I try to analyze my own cravings,
motives, actions and so forth, I surrender to a sort of retrospective
imagination which feeds the analytic faculty with boundless alternatives and
which causes each visualized route to fork and re-fork without end in the
maddeningly complex prospect of my past. I am convinced, however, that in a
certain magic and fateful way Lolita began with Annabel.
I also know that the shock of Annabel's death consolidated
the frustration of that nightmare summer, made of it a permanent obstacle to
any further romance throughout the cold years of my youth. The spiritual and
the physical had been blended in us with a perfection that must remain
incomprehensible to the matter-of-fact, crude, standard-brained youngsters of
today. Long after her death I felt her thoughts floating through mine. Long
before we met we had had the same dreams. We compared notes. We found strange affinities.
The same June of the same year (1919) a stray canary had fluttered into her
house and mine, in two widely separated countries. Oh, Lolita, had you loved me
thus!
I have reserved for the conclusion of my "Annabel"
phase the account of our unsuccessful first tryst. One night, she managed to
deceive the vicious vigilance of her family. In a nervous and slender-leaved
mimosa grove at the back of their villa we found a perch on the ruins of a low
stone wall. Through the darkness and the tender trees we could see the
arabesques of lighted windows which, touched up by the colored inks of
sensitive memory, appear to me now like playing cards-presumably because a
bridge game was keeping the enemy busy. She trembled and twitched as I kissed
the corner of her parted lips and the hot lobe of her ear. A cluster of stars
palely glowed above us, between the silhouettes of long thin leaves; that
vibrant sky seemed as naked as she was under her light frock. I saw her face in
the sky, strangely distinct, as if it emitted a faint radiance of its own. Her
legs, her lovely live legs, were not too close together, and when my hand
located what it sought, a dreamy and eerie expression, half-pleasure,
half-pain, came over those childish features. She sat a little higher than I,
and whenever in her solitary ecstasy she was led to kiss me, her head would
bend with a sleepy, soft, drooping movement that was almost woeful, and her
bare knees caught and compressed my wrist, and slackened again; and her
quivering mouth, distorted by the acridity of some mysterious potion, with a
sibilant intake of breath came near to my face. She would try to relieve the
pain of love by first roughly rubbing her dry lips against mine; then my
darling would draw away with a nervous toss of her hair, and then again come
darkly near and let me feed on her open mouth, while with a generosity that was
ready to offer her everything, my heart, my throat, my entrails, I have her to
hold in her awkward fist the scepter of my passion.
I recall the scent of some kind of toilet powder-I believe
she stole it from her mother's Spanish maid-a sweetish, lowly, musky perfume. It
mingled with her own biscuity odor, and my senses were suddenly filled to the
brim; a sudden commotion in a nearby bush prevented them from overflowing-and
as we drew away from each other, and with aching veins attended to what was
probably a prowling cat, there came from the house her mother's voice calling
her, with a rising frantic note-and Dr. Cooper ponderously limped out into the
garden. But that mimosa grove-the haze of stars, the tingle, the flame, the
honey-dew, and the ache remained with me, and that little girl with her seaside
limbs and ardent tongue haunted me ever since-until at last, twenty-four years
later, I broke her spell by incarnating her in another.
5
The days of my youth, as I look back on them, seem to fly
away from me in a flurry of pale repetitive scraps like those morning snow
storms of used tissue paper that a train passenger sees whirling in the wake of
the observation car. In my sanitary relations with women I was practical,
ironical and brisk. While a college student, in London and Paris, paid ladies
sufficed me. My studies were meticulous and intense, although not particularly
fruitful. At first, I planned to take a degree in psychiatry and many
manquĘ talents do; but I was even more manquĘ than that; a peculiar
exhaustion, I am so oppressed, doctor, set in; and I switched to English
literature, where so many frustrated poets end as pipe-smoking teachers in
tweeds. Paris suited me. I discussed Soviet movies with expatriates. I sat with
uranists in the Deux Magots. I published tortuous essays in obscure journals. I
composed pastiches:
...FrÄulen von Kulp
may turn, her hand upon the door;
I will not follow her. Nor Fresca. Nor
that Gull.
A paper of mine entitled "The Proustian theme in a
letter from Keats to Benjamin Bailey" was chuckled over by the six or
seven scholars who read it. I launched upon an "Histoire abregee de la
poesie anglaise" for a prominent publishing firm, and then started to
compile that manual of French literature for English-speaking students (with
comparisons drawn from English writers) which was to occupy me throughout the
forties-and the last volume of which was almost ready for press by the time of
my arrest.
I found a job-teaching English to a group of adults in
Auteuil. Then a school for boys employed me for a couple of winters. Now and
then I took advantage of the acquaintances I had formed among social workers
and psychotherapists to visit in their company various institutions, such as
orphanages and reform schools, where pale pubescent girls with matted eyelashes
could be stared at in perfect impunity remindful of that granted one in dreams.
Now I wish to introduce the following idea. Between the age
limits of nine and fourteen there occur maidens who, to certain bewitched
travelers, twice or many times older than they, reveal their true nature which
is not human, but nymphic (that is, demoniac); and these chosen creatures I
propose to designate as "nymphets."
It will be marked that I substitute time terms for spatial
ones. In fact, I would have the reader see "nine" and
"fourteen" as the boundaries-the mirrory beaches and rosy rocks-of an
enchanted island haunted by those nymphets of mine and surrounded by a vast,
misty sea. Between those age limits, are all girl-children nymphets? Of course
not. Otherwise, we who are in the know, we lone voyagers, we nympholepts, would
have long gone insane. Neither are good looks any criterion; and vulgarity, or
at least what a given community terms so, does not necessarily impair certain
mysterious characteristics, the fey grace, the elusive, shifty,
soul-shattering, insidious charm that separates the nymphet from such coevals
of hers as are incomparably more dependent on the spatial world of synchronous
phenomena than on that intangible island of entranced time where Lolita plays
with her likes. Within the same age limits the number of true nymphets is
trickingly inferior to that of provisionally plain, or just nice, or
"cute," or even "sweet" and "attractive,"
ordinary, plumpish, formless, cold-skinned, essentially human little girls,
with tummies and pigtails, who may or may not turn into adults of great beauty
(look at the ugly dumplings in black stockings and white hats that are
metamorphosed into stunning stars of the screen). A normal man given a group
photograph of school girls or Girl Scouts and asked to point out the comeliest
one will not necessarily choose the nymphet among them. You have to be an
artist and a madman, a creature of infinite melancholy, with a bubble of hot
poison in your loins and a super-voluptuous flame permanently aglow in your
subtle spine (oh, how you have to cringe and hide!), in order to discern at
once, by ineffable signs-the slightly feline outline of a cheekbone, the
slenderness of a downy limb, and other indices which despair and shame and
tears of tenderness forbid me to tabulate-the little deadly demon among the
wholesome children; she stands unrecognized by them and unconscious herself of
her fantastic power.
Furthermore, since the idea of time plays such a magic part
in the matter, the student should not be surprised to learn that there must be
a gap of several years, never less than ten I should say, generally thirty or
forty, and as many as ninety in a few known cases, between maiden and man to
enable the latter to come under a nymphet's spell. It is a question of focal
adjustment, of a certain distance that the inner eye thrills to surmount, and a
certain contrast that the mind perceives with a gasp of perverse delight. When
I was a child and she was a child, my little Annabel was no nymphet to me; I
was her equal, a faunlet in my own right, on that same enchanted island of
time; but today, in September 1952, after twenty-nine years have elapsed, I
think I can distinguish in her the initial fateful elf in my life. We loved
each other with a premature love, marked by a fierceness that so often destroys
adult lives. I was a strong lad and survived; but the poison was in the wound,
and the wound remained ever open, and soon I found myself maturing amid a
civilization which allows a man of twenty-five to court a girl of sixteen but
not a girl of twelve.
No wonder, then, that my adult life during the European
period of my existence proved monstrously twofold. Overtly, I had so-called
normal relationships with a number of terrestrial women having pumpkins or
pears for breasts; inly, I was consumed by a hell furnace of localized lust for
every passing nymphet whom as a law-abiding poltroon I never dared approach. The
human females I was allowed to wield were but palliative agents. I am ready to
believe that the sensations I derived from natural fornication were much the
same as those known to normal big males consorting with their normal big mates
in that routine rhythm which shakes the world. The trouble was that those
gentlemen had not, and I had, caught glimpses of an incomparably more poignant
bliss. The dimmest of my pollutive dreams was a thousand times more dazzling
than all the adultery the most virile writer of genius or the most talented
impotent might imagine. My world was split. I was aware of not one but two
sexes, neither of which was mine; both would be termed female by the anatomist.
But to me, through the prism of my senses, "they were as different as mist
and mast." All this I rationalize now. In my twenties and early thirties,
I did not understand my throes quite so clearly. While my body knew what it
craved for, my mind rejected my body's every plea. One moment I was ashamed and
frightened, another recklessly optimistic. Taboos strangulated me.
Psychoanalysts wooed me with pseudoliberations of pseudolibidoes. The fact that
to me the only object of amorous tremor were sisters of Annabel's, her
handmaids and girl-pages, appeared to me at times as a forerunner of insanity. At
other times I would tell myself that it was all a question of attitude, that
there was really nothing wrong in being moved to distraction by girl-children. Let
me remind my reader that in England, with the passage of the Children and Young
Person Act in 1933, the term "girl-child" is defined as "a girl
who is over eight but under fourteen years" (after that, from fourteen to
seventeen, the statutory definition is "young person"). In Massachusetts,
U.S., on the other hand, a "wayward child" is, technically, one
"between seven and seventeen years of age" (who, moreover, habitually
associates with vicious or immoral persons). Hugh Broughton, a writer of
controversy in the reign of James the First, has proved that Rahab was a harlot
at ten years of age. This is all very interesting, and I daresay you see me
already frothing at the mouth in a fit; but no, I am not; I am just winking
happy thoughts into a little tiddle cup. Here are some more pictures. Here is
Virgil who could the nymphet sing in a single tone, but probably preferred a
lad's perineum. Here are two of King Akhnaten's and Queen Nefertiti's
pre-nubile Nile daughters (that royal couple had a litter of six), wearing
nothing but many necklaces of bright beads, relaxed on cushions, intact after
three thousand years, with their soft brown puppybodies, cropped hair and long
ebony eyes. Here are some brides of ten compelled to seat themselves on the
fascinum, the virile ivory in the temples of classical scholarship. Marriage
and cohabitation before the age of puberty are still not uncommon in certain
East Indian provinces. Lepcha old men of eighty copulate with girls of eight,
and nobody minds. After all, Dante fell madly in love with Beatrice when she
was nine, a sparkling girleen, painted and lovely, and bejeweled, in a crimson
frock, and this was in 1274, in Florence, at a private feast in the merry month
of May. And when Petrarch fell madly in love with his Laureen, she was a
fair-haired nymphet of twelve running in the wind, in the pollen and dust, a
flower in flight, in the beautiful plain as descried from the hills of
Vaucluse.
But let us be prim and civilized. Humbert Humbert tried hard
to be good. Really and truly, he id. He had the utmost respect for ordinary
children, with their purity and vulnerability, and under no circumstances would
he have interfered with the innocence of a child, if there was the least risk
of a row. But how his heart beat when, among the innocent throng, he espied a
demon child, "enfant charmante et fourbe," dim eyes, bright lips, ten
years in jail if you only show her you are looking at her. So life went.
Humbert was perfectly capable of intercourse with Eve, but it was Lilith he
longed for. The bud-stage of breast development appears early (10.7 years) in
the sequence of somatic changes accompanying pubescence. And the next
maturational item available is the first appearance of pigmented pubic hair
(11.2 years). My little cup brims with tiddles.
A shipwreck. An atoll. Alone with a drowned passenger's
shivering child. Darling, this is only a game! How marvelous were my fancied
adventures as I sat on a hard park bench pretending to be immersed in a
trembling book. Around the quiet scholar, nymphets played freely, as if he were
a familiar statue or part of an old tree's shadow and sheen. Once a perfect
little beauty in a tartan frock, with a clatter put her heavily armed foot near
me upon the bench to dip her slim bare arms into me and righten the strap of
her roller skate, and I dissolved in the sun, with my book for fig leaf, as her
auburn ringlets fell all over her skinned knee, and the shadow of leaves I
shared pulsated and melted on her radiant limb next to my chameloenic cheek. Another
time a red-haired school girl hung over me in the metro, and a revelation of
axillary russet I obtained remained in my blood for weeks. I could list a great
number of these one-sided diminutive romances. Some of them ended in a rich
flavor of hell. It happened for instance that from my balcony I would notice a
lighted window across the street and what looked like a nymphet in the act of
undressing before a co-operative mirror. Thus isolated, thus removed, the
vision acquired an especially keen charm that made me race with all speed
toward my lone gratification. But abruptly, fiendishly, the tender pattern of
nudity I had adored would be transformed into the disgusting lamp-lit bare arm
of a man in his underclothes reading his paper by the open window in the hot,
damp, hopeless summer night.
Rope-skipping, hopscotch. That old woman in black who sat
down next to me on my bench, on my rack of joy (a nymphet was groping under me
for a lost marble), and asked if I had stomachache, the insolent hag. Ah, leave
me alone in my pubescent park, in my mossy garden. Let them play around me
forever. Never grow up.
6
A propos: I have often wondered what became of those
nymphets later? In this wrought-iron would of criss-cross cause and effect,
could it be that the hidden throb I stole from them did not affect their
future? I had possessed her-and she never knew it. All right. But would it not
tell sometime later? Had I not somehow tampered with her fate by involving her
image in my voluptas? Oh, it was, and remains, a source of great and terrible
wonder.
I learned, however, what they looked like, those lovely,
maddening, thin-armed nymphets, when they grew up. I remember walking along an
animated street on a gray spring afternoon somewhere near the Madeleine. A
short slim girl passed me at a rapid, high-heeled, tripping step, we glanced
back at the same moment, she stopped and I accosted her. She came hardly up to
my chest hair and had the kind of dimpled round little face French girls so
often have, and I liked her long lashes and tight-fitting tailored dress
sheathing in pearl-gray her young body which still retained-and that was the
nymphic echo, the chill of delight, the leap in my loins-a childish something
mingling with the professional fretillement of her small agile rump. I asked
her price, and she promptly replied with melodious silvery precision (a bird, a
very bird!) "Cent." I tried to haggle but she saw the awful lone
longing in my lowered eyes, directed so far down at her round forehead and
rudimentary hat (a band, a posy); and with one beat of her lashes: "Tant
pis," she said, and made as if to move away. Perhaps only three years
earlier I might have seen her coming home from school! That evocation settled
the matter. She led me up the usual steep stairs, with the usual bell clearing
the way for the monsieur who might not care to meet another monsieur, on the mournful
climb to the abject room, all bed and bidet. As usual, she asked at once for
her petit cadeau, and as usual I asked her name (Monique) and her age
(eighteen). I was pretty well acquainted with the banal way of streetwalkers. They
all answer "dix-huit"-a trim twitter, a note of finality and wistful
deceit which they emit up to ten times per day, the poor little creatures. But
in Monique's case there could be no doubt she was, if anything, adding one or
two years to her age. This I deduced from many details of her compact, neat,
curiously immature body. Having shed her clothes with fascinating rapidity, she
stood for a moment partly wrapped in the dingy gauze of the window curtain
listening with infantile pleasure, as pat as pat could be, to an organ-grinder
in the dust-brimming courtyard below. When I examined her small hands and drew
her attention to their grubby fingernails, she said with a naive frown
"Oui, ce n'est pas bien," and went to the wash-basin, but I said it
did not matter, did not matter at all. With her brown bobbed hair, luminous
gray eyes and pale skin, she looked perfectly charming. Her hips were no bigger
than those of a squatting lad; in fact, I do not hesitate to say (and indeed
this is the reason why I linger gratefully in that gauze-gray room of memory
with little Monique) that among the eighty or so grues I had had operate upon
me, she was the only one that gave me a pang of genuine pleasure. "Il
etait malin, celui qui a invente ce truc-la," she commented amiably, and
got back into her clothes with the same high-style speed.
I asked for another, more elaborate, assignment later the
same evening, and she said she would meet me at the corner cafe at nine, and
swore she had never pose un lapin in all her young life. We returned to the
same room, and I could not help saying how very pretty she was to which she
answered demurely: "Tu es bien gentil de dire ca" and then, noticing
what I noticed too in the mirror reflecting our small Eden-the dreadful grimace
of clenched-teeth tenderness that distorted my mouth-dutiful little Monique
(oh, she had been a nymphet, all right!) wanted to know if she should remove
the layer of red from her lips avant qu'on se couche in case I planned to kiss
her. Of course, I planned it. I let myself go with her more completely than I
had with any young lady before, and my last vision that night of long-lashed
Monique is touched up with a gaiety that I find seldom associated with any
event in my humiliating, sordid, taciturn love life. She looked tremendously pleased
with the bonus of fifty I gave her as she trotted out into the April night
drizzle with Humbert Humbert lumbering in her narrow wake. Stopping before a
window display she said with great gusto: "Je vais m'acheter des
bas!" and never may I forget the way her Parisian childish lips exploded
on "bas," pronouncing it with an appetite that all but changed the
"a" into a brief buoyant bursting "o" as in
"bot".
I had a date with her next day at 2.15 P.M. in my own rooms,
but it was less successful, she seemed to have grown less juvenile, more of a
woman overnight. A cold I caught from her led me to cancel a fourth assignment,
nor was I sorry to break an emotional series that threatened to burden me with
heart-rending fantasies and peter out in dull disappointment. So let her
remain, sleek, slender Monique, as she was for a minute or two: a delinquent
nymphet shining through the matter-of-fact young whore.
My brief acquaintance with her started a train of thought
that may seem pretty obvious to the reader who knows the ropes. An
advertisement in a lewd magazine landed me, one brave day, in the office of a
Mlle Edith who began by offering me to choose a kindred soul from a collection
of rather formal photographs in a rather soiled album ("Regardez-moi cette
belle brune!". When I pushed the album away and somehow managed to blurt
out my criminal craving, she looked as if about to show me the door; however,
after asking me what price I was prepared to disburse, she condescended to put
me in touch with a person qui pourrait arranger la chose. Next day, an
asthmatic woman, coarsely painted, garrulous, garlicky, with an almost farcical
ProvenÚal accent and a black mustache above a purple lip, took me to
what was apparently her own domicile, and there, after explosively kissing the
bunched tips of her fat fingers to signify the delectable rosebud quality of
her merchandise, she theatrically drew aside a curtain to reveal what I judged
was that part of the room where a large and unfastidious family usually slept. It
was now empty save for a monstrously plump, sallow, repulsively plain girl of
at least fifteen with red-ribboned thick black braids who sat on a chair
perfunctorily nursing a bald doll. When I shook my head and tried to shuffle
out of the trap, the woman, talking fast, began removing the dingy woolen
jersey from the young giantess' torso; then, seeing my determination to leave,
she demanded son argent. A door at the end of the room was opened, and two men
who had been dining in the kitchen joined in the squabble. They were misshapen,
bare-necked, very swarthy and one of them wore dark glasses. A small boy and a
begrimed, bowlegged toddler lurked behind them. With the insolent logic of a
nightmare, the enraged procuress, indicating the man in glasses, said he had
served in the police, lui, so that I had better do as I was told. I went up to
Marie-for that was her stellar name-who by then had quietly transferred her
heavy haunches to a stool at the kitchen table and resumed her interrupted soup
while the toddler picked up the doll. With a surge of pity dramatizing my
idiotic gesture, I thrust a banknote into her indifferent hand. She surrendered
my gift to the ex-detective, whereupon I was suffered to leave.
7
I do not know if the pimp's album may not have beeen another
link in the daisy-chain; but soon after, for my own safety, I decided to marry.
It occurred to me that regular hours, home-cooked meals, all the conventions of
marriage, the prophylactic routine of its bedroom activities and, who knows,
the eventual flowering of certain moral values, of certain spiritual
substitutes, might help me, if not to purge myself of my degrading and
dangerous desires, at least to keep them under pacific control. A little money
that had come my way after my father's death (nothing very grand-the Mirana had
been sold long before), in addition to my striking if somewhat brutal good
looks, allowed me to enter upon my quest with equanimity. After considerable
deliberation, my choice fell on the daughter of a Polish doctor: the good man
happened to be treating me for spells of dizziness and tachycardia. We played
chess; his daughter watched me from behind her easel, and inserted eyes or
knuckles borrowed from me into the cubistic trash that accomplished misses then
painted instead of lilacs and lambs. Let me repeat with quiet force: I was, and
still am, despite mes malheurs, an exceptionally handsome male; slow-moving,
tall, with soft dark hair and a gloomy but all the more seductive cast of
demeanor. Exceptional virility often reflects in the subject's displayable
features a sullen and congested something that pertains to what he has to
conceal. And this was my case. Well did I know, alas, that I could obtain at
the snap of my fingers any adult female I chose; in fact, it had become quite a
habit with me of not being too attentive to women lest they come toppling,
bloodripe, into my cold lap. Had I been a francais moyen with a taste for
flashy ladies, I might have easily found, among the many crazed beauties that
lashed my grim rock, creatures far more fascinating than Valeria. My choice,
however, was prompted by considerations whose essence was, as I realized too
late, a piteous compromise. All of which goes to show how dreadfully stupid
poor Humbert always was in matters of sex.
8
Although I told myself I was looking merely for a soothing
presence, a glorified pot-au-feu, an animated merkin, what really attracted me
to Valeria was the imitation she gave of a little girl. She gave it not because
she had divined something about me; it was just her style-and I fell for it. Actually,
she was at least in her late twenties (I never established her exact age for
even her passport lied) and had mislaid her virginity under circumstances that
changed with her reminiscent moods. I, on my part, was as naive as only a
pervert can be. She looked fluffy and frolicsome, dressed a la gamine, showed a
generous amount of smooth leg, knew how to stress the white of a bare instep by
the black of a velvet slipper, and pouted, and dimpled, and romped, and dirndled,
and shook her short curly blond hair in the cutest and tritest fashion
imaginable.
After a brief ceremony at the mairie, I tool her to the new
apartment I had rented and, somewhat to her surprise, had her wear, before I
touched her, a girl's plain nightshirt that I had managed to filch from the
linen closet of an orphanage. I derived some fun from that nuptial night and
had the idiot in hysterics by sunrise. But reality soon asserted itself. The
bleached curl revealed its melanic root; the down turned to prickles on a
shaved shin; the mobile moist mouth, no matter how I stuffed it with love,
disclosed ignominiously its resemblance to the corresponding part in a
treasured portrait of her toadlike dead mama; and presently, instead of a pale
little gutter girl, Humbert Humbert had on his hands a large, puffy,
short-legged, big-breasted and practically brainless baba.
This state of affairs lasted from 1935 to 1939. Her only
asset was a muted nature which did help to produce an odd sense of comfort in
our small squalid flat: two rooms, a hazy view in one window, a brick wall in
the other, a tiny kitchen, a shoe-shaped bath tub, within which I felt like
Marat but with no white-necked maiden to stab me. We had quite a few cozy
evenings together, she deep in her Paris-Soir, I working at a rickety table. We
went to movies, bicycle races and boxing matches. I appealed to her stale flesh
very seldom, only in cases of great urgency and despair. The grocer opposite
had a little daughter whose shadow drove me mad; but with Valeria's help I did
find after all some legal outlets to my fantastic predicament. As to cooking,
we tacitly dismissed the pot-au-feu and had most of our meals at a crowded
place in rue Bonaparte where there were wine stains on the table cloth and a
good deal of foreign babble. And next door, an art dealer displayed in his
cluttered window a splendid, flamboyant, green, red, golden and inky blue,
ancient American estampe-a locomotive with a gigantic smokestack, great baroque
lamps and a tremendous cowcatcher, hauling its mauve coaches through the stormy
prairie night and mixing a lot of spark-studded black smoke with the furry
thunder clouds.
These burst. In the summer of 1939 mon oncle d'AmĘrique
died bequeathing me an annual income of a few thousand dollars on condition I
came to live in the States and showed some interest in his business. This
prospect was most welcome to me. I felt my life needed a shake-up. There was
another thing, too: moth holes had appeared in the plush of matrimonial comfort.
During the last weeks I had kept noticing that my fat Valeria was not her usual
self; had acquired a queer restlessness; even showed something like irritation
at times, which was quite out of keeping with the stock character she was
supposed to impersonate. When I informed her we were shortly to sail for New
York, she looked distressed and bewildered. There were some tedious
difficulties with her papers. She had a Nansen, or better say Nonsense,
passport which for some reason a share in her husband's solid Swiss citizenship
could not easily transcend; and I decided it was the necessity of queuing in
the prĘfecture, and other formalities, that had made her so listless,
despite my patiently describing to her America, the country of rosy children
and great trees, where life would be such an improvement on dull dingy Paris.
We were coming out of some office building one morning, with
her papers almost in order, when Valeria, as she waddled by my side, began to
shake her poodle head vigorously without saying a word. I let her go on for a
while and then asked if she thought she had something inside. She answered (I
translate from her French which was, I imagine, a translation in its turn of
some Slavic platitude): "There is another man in my life."
Now, these are ugly words for a husband to hear. They dazed
me, I confess. To beat her up in the street, there and then, as an honest
vulgarian might have done, was not feasible. Years of secret sufferings had
taught me superhuman self-control. So I ushered her into a taxi which had
been invitingly creeping along the curb for some time, and in this comparative
privacy I quietly suggested she comment her wild talk. A mounting fury was
suffocating me-not because I had any particular fondness for that figure of
fun, Mme Humbert, but because matters of legal and illegal conjunction were for
me alone to decide, and here she was, Valeria, the comedy wife, brazenly
preparing to dispose in her own way of my comfort and fate. I demanded her
lover's name. I repeated my question; but she kept up a burlesque babble,
discoursing on her unhappiness with me and announcing plans for an immediate
divorce. "Mais qui est-ce?" I shouted at last, striking her on the
knee with my fist; and she, without even wincing, stared at me as if the answer
were too simple for words, then gave a quick shrug and pointed at the thick
neck of the taxi driver. He pulled up at a small cafĘ and introduced
himself. I do not remember his ridiculous name but after all those years I
still see him quite clearly-a stocky White Russian ex-colonel with a bushy
mustache and a crew cut; there were thousands of them plying that fool's trade
in Paris. We sat down at a table; the Tsarist ordered wine, and Valeria, after
applying a wet napkin to her knee, went on talking-into me rather than to me;
she poured words into this dignified receptacle with a volubility I had never
suspected she had in her. And every now and then she would volley a burst of
Slavic at her stolid lover. The situation was preposterous and became even more
so when the taxi-colonel, stopping Valeria with a possessive smile, began to
unfold his views and plans. With an atrocious accent to his careful French, he
delineated the world of love and work into which he proposed to enter hand in
hand with his child-wife Valeria. She by now was preening herself, between him
and me, rouging her pursed lips, tripling her chin to pick at her blouse-bosom
and so forth, and he spoke of her as if she were absent, and also as if she
were a kind of little ward that was in the act of being transferred, for her
own good, from one wise guardian to another even wiser one; and although my
helpless wrath may have exaggerated and disfigured certain impressions, I can
swear that he actually consulted me on such things as her diet, her periods,
her wardrobe and the books she had read or should read. "I think," -
he said, "She will like Jean Christophe?" Oh, he was quite a scholar,
Mr. Taxovich.
I put an end to
this gibberish by suggesting Valeria pack up her few belongings immediately,
upon which the platitudinous colonel gallantly offered to carry them into the
car. Reverting to his professional state, he drove the Humberts to their
residence and all the way Valeria talked, and Humbert the Terrible deliberated
with Humbert the Small whether Humbert Humbert should kill her or her lover, or
both, or neither. I remember once handling an automatic belonging to a fellow
student, in the days (I have not spoken of them, I think, but never mind) when
I toyed with the idea of enjoying his little sister, a most diaphanous nymphet
with a black hair bow, and then shooting myself. I now wondered if Valechka (as
the colonel called her) was really worth shooting, or strangling, or drowning.
She had very vulnerable legs, and I decided I would limit myself to hurting her
very horribly as soon as we were alone.
But we never
were. Valechka-by now shedding torrents of tears tinged with the mess of her
rainbow make-up,-started to fill anyhow a trunk, and two suitcases, and a
bursting carton, and visions of putting on my mountain boots and taking a
running kick at her rump were of course impossible to put into execution with
the cursed colonel hovering around all the time. I cannot say he behaved
insolently or anything like that; on the contrary, he displayed, as a small
sideshow in the theatricals I had been inveigled in, a discreet old-world
civility, punctuating his movements with all sorts of mispronounced apologies
(j'ai demande pardonne-excuse me-est-ce que j'ai puis-may I-and so forth), and
turning away tactfully when Valechka took down with a flourish her pink panties
from the clothesline above the tub; but he seemed to be all over the place at
once, le gredin, agreeing his frame with the anatomy of the flat, reading in my
chair my newspaper, untying a knotted string, rolling a cigarette, counting the
teaspoons, visiting the bathroom, helping his moll to wrap up the electric fan
her father had given her, and carrying streetward her luggage. I sat with arms
folded, one hip on the window sill, dying of hate and boredom. At last both
were out of the quivering apartment-the vibration of the door I had slammed
after them still rang in my every nerve, a poor substitute for the backhand
slap with which I ought to have hit her across the cheekbone according to the
rules of the movies. Clumsily playing my part, I stomped to the bathroom to
check if they had taken my English toilet water; they had not; but I noticed
with a spasm of fierce disgust that the former Counselor of the Tsar, after
thoroughly easing his bladder, had not flushed the toilet. That solemn pool of
alien urine with a soggy, tawny cigarette butt disintegrating in it struck me
as a crowning insult, and I wildly looked around for a weapon. Actually I
daresay it was nothing but middle-class Russian courtesy (with an oriental
tang, perhaps) that had prompted the good colonel (Maximovich! his name
suddenly taxies back to me), a very formal person as they all are, to muffle
his private need in decorous silence so as not to underscore the small size of
his host's domicile with the rush of a gross cascade on top of his own hushed
trickle. But this did not enter my mind at the moment, as groaning with rage I
ransacked the kitchen for something better than a broom. Then, canceling my
search, I dashed out of the house with the heroic decision of attacking him
barefisted; despite my natural vigor, I am no pugilist, while the short but
broad-shouldered Maximovich seemed made of pig iron. The void of the street,
revealing nothing of my wife's departure except a rhinestone button that she
had dropped in the mud after preserving it for three unnecessary years in a
broken box, may have spared me a bloody nose. But no matter. I had my little
revenge in due time. A man from Pasadena told me one day that Mrs. Maximovich nĘe
Zborovski had died in childbirth around 1945; the couple had somehow got over
to California and had been used there, for an excellent salary, in a year-long
experiment conducted by a distinguished American ethnologist. The experiment
dealt with human and racial reactions to a diet of bananas and dates in a
constant position on all fours. My informant, a doctor, swore he had seen with
his own eyes obese Valechka and her colonel, by then gray-haired and also quite
corpulent, diligently crawling about the well-swept floors of a brightly lit
set of rooms (fruit in one, water in another, mats in a third and so on) in the
company of several other hired quadrupeds, selected from indigent and helpless
groups. I tried to find the results of these tests in the Review of
Anthropology; but they appear not to have been published yet. These scientific
products take of course some time to fructuate. I hope they will be illustrated
with photographs when they do get printed, although it is not very likely that
a prison library will harbor such erudite works. The one to which I am
restricted these days, despite my lawyer's favors, is a good example of the
inane eclecticism governing the selection of books in prison libraries. They
have the Bible, of course, and Dickens (an ancient set, N.Y., G.W. Dillingham,
Publisher, MDCCCLXXXVII); and the Children's Encyclopedia (with some nice
photographs of sunshine-haired Girl Scouts in shorts), and A Murder Is
Announced by Agatha Christie; but they also have such coruscating trifles as A
vagabond in Italy by Percy Elphinstone, author of Venice Revisited, Boston,
1868, and a comparatively recent (1946) Who's Who in the Limelight-actors,
producers, playwrights, and shots of static scenes. In looking through the
latter volume, I was treated last night to one of those dazzling coincidences
that logicians loathe and poets love. I transcribe most of the page:
Pym, Roland. Born
in Lundy, Mass., 1922. Received stage training at Elsinore Playhouse, Derby,
N.Y. Made debut in Sunburst. Among his many appearances are Two Blocks from
Here, The Girl in Green, Scrambled Husbands, The Strange Mushroom, Touch and
Go, John Lovely, I Was Dreaming of You.
Quilty, Clare,
American dramatist. Born in Ocean City, N.J., 1911. Educated at Columbia
University. Started on a commercial career but turned to playwriting. Author of
The Little Nymph, The Lady Who Loved Lightning (in collaboration with Vivian
Darkbloom), Dark Age, The strange Mushroom, Fatherly Love, and others. His many
plays for children are notable. Little Nymph (1940) traveled 14,000 miles and
played 280 performances on the road during the winter before ending in New
York. Hobbies: fast cars, photography, pets.
Quine, Dolores.
Born in 1882, in Dayton, Ohio. Studied for stage at American Academy. First
played in Ottawa in 1900. Made New York debut in 1904 in Never Talk to
Strangers. Has disappeared since in [a list of some thirty plays follows].
How the look of
my dear love's name even affixed to some old hag of an actress, still makes me
rock with helpless pain! Perhaps, she might have been an actress too. Born
1935. Appeared (I notice the slip of my pen in the preceding paragraph, but
please do not correct it, Clarence) in The Murdered Playwright. Quine the
Swine. Guilty of killing Quilty. Oh, my Lolita, I have only words to play with!
9
Divorce
proceedings delayed my voyage, and the gloom of yet another World War had
settled upon the globe when, after a winter of ennui and pneumonia in Portugal,
I at last reached the States. In New York I eagerly accepted the soft job fate
offered me: it consisted mainly of thinking up and editing perfume ads. I
welcomed its desultory character and pseudoliterary aspects, attending to it
whenever I had nothing better to do. On the other hand, I was urged by a war-time
university in New York to complete my comparative history of French literature
for English-speaking students. The first volume took me a couple of years
during which I put in seldom less than fifteen hours of work daily. As I look
back on those days, I see them divided tidily into ample light and narrow
shade: the light pertaining to the solace of research in palatial libraries,
the shade to my excruciating desires and insomnias of which enough has been
said. Knowing me by now, the reader can easily imagine how dusty and hot I got,
trying to catch a glimpse of nymphets (alas, always remote) playing in Central
Park, and how repulsed I was by the glitter of deodorized career girls that a
gay dog in one of the offices kept unloading upon me. Let us skip all that. A
dreadful breakdown sent me to a sanatorium for more than a year; I went back to
my work-only to be hospitalized again.
Robust outdoor
life seemed to promise me some relief. One of my favorite doctors, a charming
cynical chap with a little brown beard, had a brother, and this brother was
about to lead an expedition into arctic Canada. I was attached to it as a
"recorder of psychic reactions." With two young botanists and an old
carpenter I shared now and then (never very successfully) the favors of one of
our nutritionists, a Dr. Anita Johnson-who was soon flown back, I am glad to
say. I had little notion of what object the expedition was pursuing. Judging by
the number of meteorologists upon it, we may have been tracking to its lair
(somewhere on Prince of Wales' Island, I understand) the wandering and wobbly
north magnetic pole. One group, jointly with the Canadians, established a
weather station on Pierre Point in Melville Sound. Another group, equally
misguided, collected plankton. A third studied tuberculosis in the tundra.
Bert, a film photographer-an insecure fellow with whom at one time I was made
to partake in a good deal of menial work (he, too, had some psychic
troubles)-maintained that the big men on our team, the real leaders we never
saw, were mainly engaged in checking the influence of climatic amelioration on
the coats of the arctic fox.
We lived in
prefabricated timber cabins amid a Pre-Cambrian world of granite. We had heaps
of supplies-the Reader's Digest, an ice cream mixer, chemical toilets, paper
caps for Christmas. My health improved wonderfully in spite or because of all
the fantastic blankness and boredom. Surrounded by such dejected vegetation as
willow scrub and lichens; permeated, and, I suppose, cleansed by a whistling
gale; seated on a boulder under a completely translucent sky (through which,
however, nothing of importance showed), I felt curiously aloof from my own
self. No temptations maddened me. The plump, glossy little Eskimo girls with
their fish smell, hideous raven hair and guinea pig faces, evoked even less
desire in me than Dr. Johnson had. Nymphets do not occur in polar regions.
I left my betters
the task of analyzing glacial drifts, drumlins, and gremlins, and kremlins, and
for a time tried to jot down what I fondly thought were "reactions"
(I noticed, for instance, that dreams under the midnight sun tended to be highly
colored, and this my friend the photographer confirmed). I was also supposed to
quiz my various companions on a number of important matters, such as nostalgia,
fear of unknown animals, food-fantasies, nocturnal emissions, hobbies, choice
of radio programs, changes in outlook and so forth. Everybody got so fed up
with this that I soon dropped the project completely, and only toward the end
of my twenty months of cold labor (as one of the botanists jocosely put it)
concocted a perfectly spurious and very racy report that the reader will find
published in he Annals of Adult Psychophysics for 1945 or 1946, as well as in
the issue of Arctic Explorations devoted to that particular expedition; which,
in conclusion, was not really concerned with Victoria Island copper or anything
like that, as I learned later from my genial doctor; for the nature of its real
purpose was what is termed "hush-hush," and so let me add merely that
whatever it was, that purpose was admirably achieved.
The reader will
regret to learn that soon after my return to civilization I had another bout
with insanity (if to melancholia and a sense of insufferable oppression that
cruel term must be applied). I owe my complete restoration to a discovery I
made while being treated at that particular very expensive sanatorium. I
discovered there was an endless source of robust enjoyment in trifling with
psychiatrists: cunningly leading them on; never letting them see that you know
all the tricks of the trade; inventing for them elaborate dreams, pure classics
in style (which make them, the dream-extortionists, dream and wake up
shrieking); teasing them with fake "primal scenes"; and never
allowing them the slightest glimpse of one's real sexual predicament. By
bribing a nurse I won access to some files and discovered, with glee, cards
calling me "potentially homosexual" and "totally impotent."
The sport was so excellent, its results-in my case-so ruddy that I stayed on
for a whole month after I was quite well (sleeping admirably and eating like a
schoolgirl). And then I added another week just for the pleasure of taking on a
powerful newcomer, a displaced (and, surely, deranged) celebrity, known for his
knack of making patients believe they had witnessed their own conception.
10
Upon signing out,
I cast around for some place in the New England countryside or sleepy small
town (elms, white church) where I could spend a studious summer subsisting on a
compact boxful of notes I had accumulated and bathing in some nearby lake. My
work had begun to interest me again-I mean my scholarly exertions; the other
thing, my active participation in my uncle's posthumous perfumes, had by then
been cut down to a minimum.
One of his former
employees, the scion of a distinguished family, suggested I spend a few months
in the residence of his impoverished cousins, a Mr. McCoo, retired, and his
wife, who wanted to let their upper story where a late aunt had delicately
dwelt. He said they had two little daughters, one a baby, the other a girl of
twelve, and a beautiful garden, not far from a beautiful lake, and I said it
sounded perfectly perfect.
I exchanged
letters with these people, satisfying them I was housebroken, and spent a
fantastic night on the train, imagining in all possible detail the enigmatic
nymphet I would coach in French and fondle in Humbertish. Nobody met me at the
toy station where I alighted with my new expensive bag, and nobody answered the
telephone; eventually, however, a distraught McCoo in wet clothes turned up at
the only hotel of green-and-pink Ramsdale with the news that his house had just
burned down-possibly, owing to the synchronous conflagration that had been
raging all night in my veins. His family, he said, had fled to a farm he owned,
and had taken the car, but a friend of his wife's, a grand person, Mrs. Haze of
342 Lawn Street, offered to accommodate me. A lady who lived opposite Mrs.
Haze's had lent McCoo her limousine, a marvelously old-fashioned, square-topped
affair, manned by a cheerful Negro. Now, since the only reason for my coming at
all had vanished, the aforesaid arrangement seemed preposterous. All right, his
house would have to be completely rebuilt, so what? Had he not insured it
sufficiently? I was angry, disappointed and bored, but being a polite European,
could not refuse to be sent off to Lawn Street in that funeral car, feeling
that otherwise McCoo would devise an even more elaborate means of getting rid
of me. I saw him scamper away, and my chauffeur shook his head with a soft
chuckle. En route, I swore to myself I would not dream of staying in Ramsdale
under any circumstance but would fly that very day to the Bermudas or the
Bahamas or the Blazes. Possibilities of sweetness on technicolor beaches had
been trickling through my spine for some time before, and McCoo's cousin had,
in fact, sharply diverted that train of thought with his well-meaning but as it
transpired now absolutely inane suggestion.
Speaking of sharp
turns: we almost ran over a meddlesome suburban dog (one of those who like in
wait for cars) as we swerved into Lawn Street. A little further, the Haze
house, a white-frame horror, appeared, looking dingy and old, more gray than
white-the kind of place you know will have a rubber tube affixable to the tub
faucet in lieu of shower. I tipped the chauffeur and hoped he would immediately
drive away so that I might double back unnoticed to my hotel and bag; but the
man merely crossed to the other side of the street where an old lady was
calling to him from her porch. What could I do? I pressed the bell button.
A colored maid
let me in-and left me standing on the mat while she rushed back to the kitchen
where something was burning that ought not to burn.
The front hall
was graced with door chimes, a white-eyed wooden thingamabob of commercial
Mexican origin, and that banal darling of the arty middle class, van Gogh's
"ArlĘsienne." A door ajar to the right afforded a glimpse of a
living room, with some more Mexican trash in a corner cabinet and a striped
sofa along the wall. There was a staircase at the end of the hallway, and as I stood
mopping my brow (only now did I realize how hot it had been out-of-doors) and
staring, to stare at something, at an old gray tennis ball that lay on an oak
chest, there came from the upper landing the contralto voice of Mrs. Haze, who
leaning over the banisters inquired melodiously, "Is that Monsieur
Humbert?" A bit of cigarette ash dropped from there in addition.
Presently, the lady herself-sandals, maroon slacks, yellow silk blouse,
squarish face, in that order-came down the steps, her index finger still
tapping upon her cigarette.
I think I had
better describe her right away, to get it over with. The poor lady was in her
middle thirties, she had a shiny forehead, plucked eyebrows and quite simple
but not unattractive features of a type that may be defined as a weak solution
of Marlene Dietrich. Patting her bronze-brown bun, she led me into the parlor
and we talked for a minute about the McCoo fire and the privilege of living in
Ramsdale. Her very wide-set sea-green eyes had a funny way of traveling all
over you, carefully avoiding your own eyes. Her smile was but a quizzical jerk
of one eyebrow; and uncoiling herself from the sofa as she talked, she kept
making spasmodic dashes at three ashtrays and the near fender (where lay the
brown core of an apple); whereupon she would sink back again, one leg folded
under her. She was, obviously, one of those women whose polished words may
reflect a book club or bridge club, or any other deadly conventionality, but
never her soul; women who are completely devoid of humor; women utterly
indifferent at heart to the dozen or so possible subjects of a parlor
conversation, but very particular about the rules of such conversations,
through the sunny cellophane of which not very appetizing frustrations can be
readily distinguished. I was perfectly aware that if by any wild chance I
became her lodger, she would methodically proceed to do in regard to me what
taking a lodger probably meant to her all along, and I would again be enmeshed
in one of those tedious affairs I knew so well.
But there was no
question of my settling there. I could not be happy in that type of household
with bedraggled magazines on every chair and a kind of horrible hybridization
between the comedy of so-called "functional modern furniture" and the
tragedy of decrepit rockers and rickety lamp tables with dead lamps. I was led
upstairs, and to the left-into "my" room. I inspected it through the
mist of my utter rejection of it; but I did discern above "my" bed
RenĘ Prinet's "Kreutzer Sonata." And she called that servant
maid's room a "semi-studio"! Let's get out of here at once, I firmly
said to myself as I pretended to deliberate over the absurdly, and ominously,
low price that my wistful hostess was asking for board and bed.
Old-world
politeness, however, obliged me to go on with the ordeal. We crossed the
landing to the right side of the house (where "I and Lo have our
rooms"-Lo being presumably the maid), and the lodger-lover could hardly
conceal a shudder when he, a very fastidious male, was granted a preview of the
only bathroom, a tiny oblong between the landing and "Lo's" room,
with limp wet things overhanging the dubious tub (the question mark of a hair
inside); and there were the expected coils of the rubber snake, and its
complement-a pinkish cozy, coyly covering the toilet lid.
"I see you
are not too favorably impressed," said the lady letting her hand rest for
a moment upon my sleeve: she combined a cool forwardness-the overflow of what I
think is called "poise"-with a shyness and sadness that caused her
detached way of selecting her words to seem as unnatural as the intonation of a
professor of "speech." "This is not a neat household, I
confess," the doomed ear continued, "but I assure you [she looked at
my lips], you will be very comfortable, very comfortable, indeed. Let me show
you the garden" (the last more brightly, with a kind of winsome toss of
the voice).
Reluctantly I
followed her downstairs again; then through the kitchen at the end of the hall,
on the right side of the house-the side where also the dining room and the
parlor were (under "my" room, on the left, there was nothing but a
garage). In the kitchen, the Negro maid, a plump youngish woman, said, as she
took her large glossy black purse from the knob of the door leading to the back
porch: "I'll go now, Mrs. Haze." "Yes, Louise," answered
Mrs. Haze with a sigh. "I'll settle with you Friday." We passed on to
a small pantry and entered the dining room, parallel to the parlor we had
already admired. I noticed a white sock on the floor. With a deprecatory grunt,
Mrs. Haze stooped without stopping and threw it into a closet next to the
pantry. We cursorily inspected a mahogany table with a fruit vase in the
middle, containing nothing but the still glistening stone of one plum. I groped
for the timetable I had in my pocket and surreptitiously fished it out to look
as soon as possible for a train. I was still walking behind Mrs. Haze though
the dining room when, beyond it, there came a sudden burst of
greenery-"the piazza," sang out my leader, and then, without the
least warning, a blue sea-wave swelled under my heart and, from a mat in a pool
of sun, half-naked, kneeling, turning about on her knees, there was my Riviera
love peering at me over dark glasses.
It was the same
child-the same frail, honey-hued shoulders, the same silky supple bare back,
the same chestnut head of hair. A polka-dotted black kerchief tied around her
chest hid from my aging ape eyes, but not from the gaze of young memory, the
juvenile breasts I had fondled one immortal day. And, as if I were the
fairy-tale nurse of some little princess (lost, kidnaped, discovered in gypsy
rags through which her nakedness smiled at the king and his hounds), I
recognized the tiny dark-brown mole on her side. With awe and delight (the king
crying for joy, the trumpets blaring, the nurse drunk) I saw again her lovely
indrawn abdomen where my southbound mouth had briefly paused; and those puerile
hips on which I had kissed the crenulated imprint left by the band of her
shorts-that last mad immortal day behind the "Roches Roses." The
twenty-five years I had lived since then, tapered to a palpitating point, and
vanished.
I find it most
difficult to express with adequate force that flash, that shiver, that impact
of passionate recognition. In the course of the sun-shot moment that my glance
slithered over the kneeling child (her eyes blinking over those stern dark
spectacles-the little Herr Doktor who was to cure me of all my aches) while I
passed by her in my adult disguise (a great big handsome hunk of movieland
manhood), the vacuum of my soul managed to suck in every detail of her bright
beauty, and these I checked against the features of my dead bride. A little
later, of course, she, thos nouvelle, this Lolita, my Lolita, was to eclipse
completely her prototype. All I want to stress is that my discovery of her was
a fatal consequence of that "princedom by the sea" in my tortured
past. Everything between the two events was but a series of gropings and
blunders, and false rudiments of joy. Everything they shared made one of them.
I have no
illusions, however. My judges will regard all this as a piece of mummery on the
part of a madman with a gross liking for the fruit vert. Au fond, Úa
m'est bien Ęgal. All I now is that while the Haze woman and I went down
the steps into the breathless garden, my knees were like reflections of knees
in rippling water, and my lips were like sand, and-
"That was my
Lo," she said, "and these are my lilies."
"Yes,"
I said, "yes. They are beautiful, beautiful, beautiful."
11
Exhibit number
two is a pocket diary bound in black imitation leather, with a golden year,
1947, en escalier, in its upper left-hand corner. I speak of this neat product
of the Blank Blank Co., Blankton, Mass., as if it were really before me.
Actually, it was destroyed five years go and what we examine now (by courtesy
of a photographic memory) is but its brief materialization, a puny unfledged
phenix.
I remember the
thing so exactly because I wrote it really twice. First I jotted down each
entry in pencil (with many erasures and corrections) on the leaves of what is
commercially known as a "typewriter tablet"; then, I copied it out
with obvious abbreviations in my smallest, most satanic, hand in the little
black book just mentioned.
May 30 is a Fast
Day by Proclamation in New Hampshire but not in the Carolinas. That day an
epidemic of "abdominal flu" (whatever that is) forced Ramsdale to
close its schools for the summer. The reader may check the weather data in the
Ramsdale Journal for 1947. A few days before that I moved into the Haze house,
and the little diary which I now propose to reel off (much as a spy delivers by
heart the contents of the note he swallowed) covers most of June.
Thursday. Very
warm day. From a vantage point (bathroom window) saw Dolores taking things off
a clothesline in the apple-green light behind the house. Strolled out. She wore
a plaid shirt, blue jeans and sneakers. Every movement she made in the dappled
sun plucked at the most secret and sensitive chord of my abject body. After a
while she sat down next to me on the lower step of the back porch and began to
pick up the pebbles between her feet-pebbles, my God, then a curled bit of
milk-bottle glass resembling a snarling lip-and chuck them at a can. Ping. You can't
a second time-you can't hit it-oh, marvelous: tender and tanned, not the least
blemish. Sundaes cause acne. The excess of the oily substance called sebum
which nourishes the hair follicles of the skin creates, when too profuse, an
irritation that opens the way to infection. But nymphets do not have acne
although they gorge themselves on rich food. God, what agony, that silky
shimmer above her temple grading into bright brown hair. And the little bone
twitching at the side of her dust-powdered ankle. "The McCoo girl? Ginny
McCoo? Oh, she's a fright. And mean. And lame. Nearly died of polio."
Ping. The glistening tracery of down on her forearm. When she got up to take in
the wash, I had a chance of adoring from afar the faded seat of her rolled-up
jeans. Out of the lawn, bland Mrs. Haze, complete with camera, grew up like a
fakir's fake tree and after some heliotropic fussing-sad eyes up, glad eyes
down-had the cheek of taking my picture as I sat blinking on the steps, Humbert
le Bel.
Friday. Saw her
going somewhere with a dark girl called Rose. Why does the way she walks-a
child, mind you, a mere child!-excite me so abominably? Analyze it. A faint
suggestion of turned in toes. A kind of wiggly looseness below the knee
prolonged to the end of each footfall. The ghost of a drag. Very infantile,
infinitely meretricious. Humbert Humbert is also infinitely moved by the little
one's slangy speech, by her harsh high voice. Later heard her volley crude
nonsense at Rose across the fence. Twanging through me in a rising rhythm.
Pause. "I must go now, kiddo."
Saturday.
(Beginning perhaps amended.) I know it is madness to keep this journal but it
gives me a strange thrill to do so; and only a loving wife could decipher my
microscopic script. Let me state with a sob that today my L. was sun-bathing on
the so-called "piazza," but her mother and some other woman were
around all the time. Of course, I might have sat there in the rocker and
pretended to read. Playing safe, I kept away, for I was afraid that the
horrible, insane, ridiculous and pitiful tremor that palsied me might prevent
me from making my entrĘe with any semblance of casualness.
Sunday. Heat
ripple still with us; a most favonian week. This time I took up a strategic
position, with obese newspaper and new pipe, in the piazza rocker before L.
arrived. To my intense disappointment she came with her mother, both in
two-piece bathing suits, black, as new as my pipe. My darling, my sweetheart
stood for a moment near me-wanted the funnies-and she smelt almost exactly like
the other one, the Riviera one, but more intensely so, with rougher overtones-a
torrid odor that at once set my manhood astir-but she had already yanked out of
me the coveted section and retreated to her mat near her phocine mamma. There
my beauty lay down on her stomach, showing me, showing the thousand eyes wide
open in my eyed blood, her slightly raised shoulder blades, and the bloom along
the incurvation of her spine, and the swellings of her tense narrow nates
clothed in black, and the seaside of her schoolgirl thighs. Silently, the
seventh-grader enjoyed her green-red-blue comics. She was the loveliest nymphet
green-red-blue Priap himself could think up. As I looked on, through prismatic
layers of light, dry-lipped, focusing my lust and rocking slightly under my
newspaper, I felt that my perception of her, if properly concentrated upon,
might be sufficient to have me attain a beggar's bliss immediately; but, like
some predator that prefers a moving prey to a motionless one, I planned to have
this pitiful attainment coincide with the various girlish movements she made
now and then as she read, such as trying to scratch the middle of her back and
revealing a stippled armpit-but fat Haze suddenly spoiled everything by turning
to me and asking me for a light, and starting a make-believe conversation about
a fake book by some popular fraud.
Monday.
Delectatio morosa. I spend my doleful days in dumps and dolors. We (mother
Haze, Dolores and I) were to go to Our Glass Lake this afternoon, and bathe,
and bask; but a nacreous morn degenerated at noon into rain, and Lo made a
scene.
The median age of
pubescence for girls has been found to be thirteen years and nine months in New
York and Chicago. The age varies for individuals from ten, or earlier, to
seventeen. Virginia was not quite fourteen when Harry Edgar possessed her. He
gave her lessons in algebra. Je m'imagine cela. They spent their honeymoon at
Petersburg, Fla. "Monsieur Poe-poe," as that boy in one of Monsieur
Humbert Humbert's classes in Paris called the poet-poet.
I have all the
characteristics which, according to writers on the sex interests of children,
start the responses stirring in a little girl: clean-cut jaw, muscular hand,
deep sonorous voice, broad shoulder. Moreover, I am said to resemble some
crooner or actor chap on whom Lo has a crush.
Tuesday. Rain.
Lake of the Rains. Mamma out shopping. L., I knew, was somewhere quite near. In
result of some stealthy maneuvering, I came across her in her mother's bedroom.
Prying her left eye open to get rid of a speck of something. Checked frock.
Although I do love that intoxicating brown fragrance of hers, I really think
she should wash her hair once in a while. For a moment, we were both in the
same warm green bath of the mirror that reflected the top of a poplar with us
in the sky. Held her roughly by the shoulders, then tenderly by the temples,
and turned her about. "It's right there," she said. "I can feel
it." "Swiss peasant would use the top of her tongue." "Lick
it out?" "Yeth. Shly try?" "Sure," she said. Gently I
pressed my quivering sting along her rolling salty eyeball. "Goody-goody,"
she said nictating. "It is gone." "Now the other?"
"You dope," she began, "there is noth-" but here she
noticed the pucker of my approaching lips. "Okay," she said
cooperatively, and bending toward her warm upturned russet face somber Humbert
pressed his mouth to her fluttering eyelid. She laughed, and brushed past me
out of the room. My heart seemed everywhere at once. Never in my life-not even
when fondling my child-love in France-never-
Night. Never have
I experienced such agony. I would like to describe her face, her ways-and I
cannot, because my own desire for her blinds me when she is near. I am not used
to being with nymphets, damn it. If I close my eyes I see but an immobilized
fraction of her, a cinematographic still, a sudden smooth nether loveliness, as
with one knee up under her tartan skirt she sits tying her shoe. "Dolores
Haze, ne nontrez pas vos zhambes" (this is her mother who thinks she knows
French).
A poet Â
mes heures, I composed a madrigal to the soot-black lashes of her pale-gray
vacant eyes, to the five asymmetrical freckles on her bobbed nose, to the blond
down of her brown limbs; but I tore it up and cannot recall it today. Only in
the tritest of terms (diary resumed) can I describe Lo's features: I might say
her hair is auburn, and her lips as red as licked red candy, the lower one
prettily plump-oh, that I were a lady writer who could have her pose naked in a
naked light! But instead I am lanky, big-boned, wooly-chested Humbert Humbert,
with thick black eyebrows and a queer accent, and a cesspoolful of rotting
monsters behind his slow boyish smile. And neither is she the fragile child of
a feminine novel. What drives me insane is the twofold nature of this
nymphet-of every nymphet, perhaps; this mixture in my Lolita of tender dreamy
childishness and a kind of eerie vulgarity, stemming from the snub-nosed
cuteness of ads and magazine pictures, from the blurry pinkness of adolescent
maidservants in the Old Country (smelling of crushed daisies and sweat); and
from very young harlots disguised as children in provincial brothels; and then
again, all this gets mixed up with the exquisite stainless tenderness seeping
through the musk and the mud, through the dirt and the death, oh God, oh God.
And what is most singular is that she, this Lolita, my Lolita, has
individualized the writer's ancient lust, so that above and over everything
there is-Lolita.
Wednesday.
"Look, make Mother take you and me to Our Glass Lake tomorrow." These
were the textual words said to me by my twelve-year-old flame in a voluptuous
whisper, as we happened to bump into one another on the front porch, I out, she
in. The reflection of the afternoon sun, a dazzling white diamond with
innumerable iridescent spikes quivered on the round back of a parked car. The leafage
of a voluminous elm played its mellow shadows upon the clapboard wall of the
house. Two poplars shivered and shook. You could make out the formless sounds
of remote traffic; a child calling "Nancy, Nan-cy!" In the house,
Lolita had put on her favorite "Little Carmen" record which I used to
call "Dwarf Conductors," making her snort with mock derision at my
mock wit.
Thursday. Last
night we sat on the piazza, the Haze woman, Lolita and I. Warm dusk had
deepened into amorous darkness. The old girl had finished relating in great
detail the plot of a movie she and L. had seen sometime in the winter. The
boxer had fallen extremely low when he met the good old priest (who had been a
boxer himself in his robust youth and could still slug a sinner). We sat on cushions
heaped on the floor, and L. was between the woman and me (she had squeezed
herself in, the pet). In my turn, I launched upon a hilarious account of my
arctic adventures. The muse of invention handed me a rifle and I shot a white
bear who sat down and said: Ah! All the while I was acutely aware of L.'s
nearness and as I spoke I gestured in the merciful dark and took advantage of
those invisible gestures of mine to touch her hand, her shoulder and a
ballerina of wool and gauze which she played with and kept sticking into my
lap; and finally, when I had completely enmeshed my glowing darling in this
weave of ethereal caresses, I dared stroke her bare leg along the gooseberry
fuzz of her shin, and I chuckled at my own jokes, and trembled, and concealed my
tremors, and once or twice felt with my rapid lips the warmth of her hair as I
treated her to a quick nuzzling, humorous aside and caressed her plaything.
She, too, fidgeted a good deal so that finally her mother told her sharply to
quit it and sent the doll flying into the dark, and I laughed and addressed
myself to Haze across Lo's legs to let my hand creep up my nymphet's thin back
and feel her skin through her boy's shirt.
But I knew it was
all hopeless, and was sick with longing, and my clothes felt miserably tight,
and I was almost glad when her mother's quiet voice announced in the dark:
"And now we all think that Lo should go to bed." "I think you
stink," said Lo. "Which means there will be no picnic tomorrow,"
said Haze. "This is a free country," said Lo. When angry Lo with a
Bronx cheer had gone, I stayed on from sheer inertia, while Haze smoked her
tenth cigarette of the evening and complained of Lo.
She had been
spiteful, if you please, at the age of one, when she used to throw her toys out
of her crib so that her poor mother should keep picking them up, the villainous
infant! Now, at twelve, she was a regular pest, said Haze. All she wanted from
life was to be one day a strutting and prancing baton twirler or a jitterbug.
Her grades were poor, but she was better adjusted in her new school than in
Pisky (Pisky was the Haze home town in the Middle West. The Ramsdale house was
her late mother-in-law's. They had moved to Ramsdale less than two years ago).
"Why was she unhappy there?" "Oh," said Haze, "poor me
should know, I went through that when I was a kid: boys twisting one's arm,
banging into one with loads of books, pulling one's hair, hurting one's
breasts, flipping one's skirt. Of course, moodiness is a common concomitant of
growing up, but Lo exaggerates. Sullen and evasive. Rude and defiant. Struck
Viola, an Italian schoolmate, in the seat with a fountain pen. Know what I
would like? If you, monsieur, happened to be still here in the fall, I'd ask
you to help her with her homework-you seem to know everything, geography,
mathematics, French." "Oh, everything," answered monsieur.
"That means," said Haze quickly, "you'll be here!" I wanted
to shout that I would stay on eternally if only I could hope to caress now and
then my incipient pupil. But I was wary of Haze. So I just grunted and
stretched my limbs nonconcomitantly (le mot juste) and presently went up to my
room. The woman, however, was evidently not prepared to call it a day. I was
already lying upon my cold bed both hands pressing to my face Lolita's fragrant
ghost when I heard my indefatigable landlady creeping stealthily up to my door
to whisper through it-just to make sure, she said, I was through with the
Glance and Gulp magazine I had borrowed the other day. From her room Lo yelled
she had it. We are quite a lending library in this house, thunder of God.
Friday. I wonder
what my academic publishers would say if I were to quote in my textbook
Ronsard's "la vermeillette fente" or Remy Belleau's "un petit
mont feutrĘ de mousse dĘlicate, tracĘ sur le milieu d'un fillet
escarlatte" and so forth. I shall probably have another breakdown if I
stay any longer in this house, under the strain of this intolerable temptation,
by the side of my darling-my darling-my life and my bride. Has she already been
initiated by mother nature to the Mystery of the Menarche? Bloated feelings.
The Curse of the Irish. Falling from the roof. Grandma is visiting. "Mr.
Uterus [I quote from a girls' magazine] starts to build a thick soft wall on
the chance a possible baby may have to be bedded down there." The tiny
madman in his padded cell.
Incidentally: if
I ever commit a serious murder . . . Mark the "if." The urge should
be something more than the kind of thing that happened to me with Valeria.
Carefully mark that then was rather inept. If and when you wish to sizzle me to
death, remember that only a spell of insanity could ever give me the simple
energy to be a brute (all this amended, perhaps). Sometimes I attempt to kill
in my dreams. But do you know what happens? For instance I hold a gun. For
instance I aim at a bland, quietly interested enemy. Oh, I press the trigger
all right, but one bullet after another feebly drops on the floor from the
sheepish muzzle. In those dreams, my only thought is to conceal the fiasco from
my foe, who is slowly growing annoyed.
At dinner tonight
the old cat said to me with a sidelong gleam of motherly mockery directed at Lo
(I had just been describing, in a flippant vein, the delightful little
toothbrush mustache I had not quite decided to grow): "Better don't if
somebody is not to go absolutely dotty." Instantly Lo pushed her plate of
boiled fish away, all but knocking her milk over, and bounced out of the dining
room. "Would it bore you very much," quoth Haze, "to come with
us tomorrow for a swim in Our Glass Lake if Lo apologizes for her
manners?"
Later, I heard a
great banging of doors and other sounds coming from quaking caverns where the
two rivals were having a ripping row.
She had not
apologized. The lake is out. It might have been fun.
Saturday. For
some days already I had been leaving the door ajar, while I wrote in my room;
but only today did the trap work. With a good deal of additional fidgeting,
shuffling, scraping-to disguise her embarrassment at visiting me without having
been called-Lo came in and after pottering around, became interested in the
nightmare curlicues I had penned on a sheet of paper. Oh no: they were not the
outcome of a belle-lettrist's inspired pause between two paragraphs; they were
the hideous hieroglyphics (which she could not decipher) of my fatal lust. As
she bent her brown curs over the desk at which I was sitting, Humbert the
Hoarse put his arm around her in a miserable imitation of blood-relationship;
and still studying, somewhat shortsightedly, the piece of paper she held, my
innocent little visitor slowly sank to a half-sitting position upon my knee.
Her adorable profile, parted lips, warm hair were some three inches from my
bared eyetooth; and I felt the heat of her limbs through her rough tomboy
clothes. All at once I knew I could kiss her throat or the wick of her mouth
with perfect impunity. I knew she would let me do so, and even close her eyes
as Hollywood teaches. A double vanilla with hot fudge-hardly more unusual than
that. I cannot tell my learned reader (whose eyebrows, I suspect, have by now
traveled all the way to the back of his bald head), I cannot tell him how the
knowledge came to me; perhaps my ape-ear had unconsciously caught some slight
change in the rhythm of her respiration-for now she was not really looking at
my scribble, but waiting with curiosity and composure-oh, my limpid
nymphet!-for the glamorous lodger to do what he was dying to do. A modern
child, an avid reader of movie magazines, an expert in dream-slow close-ups,
might not think it too strange, I guessed, if a handsome, intensely virile
grown-up friend-too late. The house was suddenly vibrating with voluble
Louise's voice telling Mrs. Haze who had just come home about a dead something
she and Leslie Tomson had found in the basement, and little Lolita was not one
to miss such a tale.
Sunday.
Changeful, bad-tempered, cheerful, awkward, graceful with the tart grace of her
coltish subteens, excruciatingly desirable from head to foot (all New England
for a lady-writer's pen!), from the black read-made bow and bobby pins holding
her hair in place to the little scar on the lower part of her neat calf (where
a roller-skater kicked her in Pisky), a couple of inches above her rough white
sock. Gone with her mother to the Hamiltons-a birthday party or something.
Full-skirted gingham frock. Her little doves seem well formed already.
Precocious pet!
Monday. Rainy
morning. "Ces matins gris si doux . . ." My white pajamas have a
lilac design on the back. I am like one of those inflated pale spiders you see
in old gardens. Sitting in the middle of a luminous web and giving little jerks
to this or that strand. My web is spread all over the house as I listen from my
chair where I sit like a wily wizard. Is Lo in her room? Gently I tug on the
silk. She is not. Just heard the toilet paper cylinder make its staccato sound
as it is turned; and no footfalls has my outflung filament traced from the
bathroom back to her room. Is she still brushing her teeth (the only sanitary
act Lo performs with real zest)? No. The bathroom door has just slammed, so one
has to feel elsewhere about the house for the beautiful warm-colored prey. Let
us have a strand of silk descend the stairs. I satisfy myself by this means
that she is not in the kitchen-not banging the refrigerator door or screeching
at her detested mamma (who, I suppose, is enjoying her third, cooing and
subduedly mirthful, telephone conversation of the morning). Well, let us grope
and hope. Ray-like, I glide in through to the parlor and find the radio silent
(and mamma still talking to Mrs. Chatfield or Mrs. Hamilton, very softly,
flushed, smiling, cupping the telephone with her free hand, denying by
implication that she denies those amusing rumors, rumor, roomer, whispering
intimately, as she never does, the clear-cut lady, in face to face talk). So my
nymphet is not in the house at all! Gone! What I thought was a prismatic weave
turns out to be but an old gray cobweb, the house is empty, is dead. And then
comes Lolita's soft sweet chuckle through my half-open door "Don't tell
Mother but I've eaten all your bacon." Gone when I scuttle out of my room.
Lolita, where are you? My breakfast tray, lovingly prepared by my landlady,
leers at me toothlessly, ready to be taken in. Lola, Lolita!
Tuesday. Clouds
again interfered with that picnic on that unattainable lake. Is it Fate
scheming? Yesterday I tried on before the mirror a new pair of bathing trunks.
Wednesday. In the
afternoon, Haze (common-sensical shoes, tailor-made dress), said she was
driving downtown to buy a present for a friend of a friend of hers, and would I
please come too because I have such a wonderful taste in textures and perfumes.
"Choose your favorite seduction," she purred. What could Humbert,
being in the perfume business, do? She had me cornered between the front porch
and her car. "Hurry up," she said as I laboriously doubled up my
large body in order to crawl in (still desperately devising a means of escape).
She had started the engine, and was genteelly swearing at a backing and turning
truck in front that had just brought old invalid Miss Opposite a brand new
wheel chair, when my Lolita's sharp voice came from the parlor window:
"You! Where are you going? I'm coming too! Wait!" "Ignore
her," yelped Haze (killing the motor); alas for my fair driver; Lo was
already pulling at the door on my side. "This is intolerable," began
Haze; but Lo had scrambled in, shivering with glee. "Move your bottom,
you," said Lo. "Lo!" cried Haze (sideglancing at me, hoping I
would throw rude Lo out). "And behold," said Lo (not for the first
time), as she jerked back, as I jerked back, as the car leapt forward. "It
is intolerable," said Haze, violently getting into second, "that a
child should be so ill-mannered. And so very persevering. When she knows she is
unwanted. And needs a bath."
My knuckles lay
against the child's blue jeans. She was barefooted; her toenails showed
remnants of cherry-red polish and there was a bit of adhesive tape across her
big toe; and, God, what would I not have given to kiss then and there those
delicate-boned, long-toed, monkeyish feet! Suddenly her hand slipped into mine
and without our chaperon's seeing, I held, and stroked, and squeezed that
little hot paw, all the way to the store. The wings of the diver's Marlenesque
nose shone, having shed or burned up their ration of powder, and she kept up an
elegant monologue anent the local traffic, and smiled in profile, and pouted in
profile, and beat her painted lashes in profile, while I prayed we would never
get to that store, but we did.
I have nothing
else to report, save, primo: that big Haze had little Haze sit behind on our
way home, and secundo: that the lady decided to keep Humbert's Choice for the
backs of her own shapely ears.
Thursday. We are
paying with hail and gale for the tropical beginning of the month. In a volume
of the Young People's Encyclopedia, I found a map of the states that a child's
pencil had started copying out on a sheet of lightweight paper, upon the other
side of which, counter to the unfinished outline of Florida and the Gulf, there
was a mimeographed list of names referring, evidently, to her class at the
Ramsdale school. It is a poem I know already by heart.
Angel, Grace
Austin, Floyd
Beale, Jack
Beale, Mary
Buck, Daniel
Byron, Marguerite
Campbell, Alice
Carmine, Rose
Chatfield,
Phyllis
Clarke, Gordon
Cowan, John
Cowan, Marion
Duncan, Walter
Falter, Ted
Fantasia, Stella
Flashman, Irving
Fox, George
Glave, Mabel
Goodale, Donald
Green, Lucinda
Hamilton, Mary Rose
Haze, Dolores
Honeck, Rosaline
Knight, Kenneth
McCoo, Virginia
McCrystal, Vivian
McFate, Aubrey
Miranda, Anthony
Miranda, Viola
Rosato, Emil
Schlenker, Lena
Scott, Donald
Sheridan, Agnes
Sherva, Oleg
Smith, Hazel
Talbot, Edgar
Talbot, Edwin
Wain, Lull
Williams, Ralph
Windmuller,
Louise
A poem, a poem,
forsooth! So strange and sweet was it to discover this "Haze,
Dolores" (she!) in its special bower of names, with its bodyguard of
roses-a fairy princess between her two maids of honor. I am trying to analyze
the spine-thrill of delight it gives me, this name among all those others. What
is it that excites me almost to tears (hot, opalescent, thick tears that poets
and lovers shed)? What is it? The tender anonymity of this name with its formal
veil ("Dolores") and that abstract transposition of first name and
surname, which is like a pair of new pale gloves or a mask? Is "mask"
the keyword? Is it because there is always delight in the semitranslucent
mystery, the flowing charshaf, through which the flesh and the eye you alone
are elected to know smile in passing at you alone? Or is it because I can
imagine so well the rest of the colorful classroom around my dolorous and hazy
darling: Grace and her ripe pimples; Ginny and her lagging leg; Gordon, the
haggard masturbator; Duncan, the foul-smelling clown; nail-biting Agnes; Viola,
of the blackheads and the bouncing bust; pretty Rosaline; dark Mary Rose;
adorable Stella, who has let strangers touch her; Ralph, who bullies and steals;
Irving, for whom I am sorry. And there she is there, lost in the middle,
gnawing a pencil, detested by teachers, all the boys' eyes on her hair and
neck, my Lolita.
Friday. I long
for some terrific disaster. Earthquake. Spectacular explosion. Her mother is
messily but instantly and permanently eliminated, along with everybody else for
miles around. Lolita whimpers in my arms. A free man, I enjoy her among the
ruins. Her surprise, my explanations, demonstrations, ullulations. Idle and
idiotic fancies! A brave Humbert would have played with her most disgustingly
(yesterday, for instance, when she was again in my room to show me her
drawings, school-artware); he might have bribed her-and got away with it. A
simpler and more practical fellow would have soberly stuck to various
commercial substitutes-if you know where to go, I don't. Despite my many looks,
I am horribly timid. My romantic soul gets all clammy and shivery at the
thought of running into some awful indecent unpleasantness. Those ribald sea
monsters. "Mais allez-y, allez-y!" Annabel skipping on one foot to
get into her shorts, I seasick with rage, trying to screen her.
Same date, later,
quite late. I have turned on the light to take down a dream. It had an evident
antecedent. Haze at dinner had benevolently proclaimed that since the weather
bureau promised a sunny weekend we would go to the lake Sunday after church. As
I lay in bed, erotically musing before trying to go to sleep, I thought of a
final scheme how to profit by the picnic to come. I was aware that mother Haze
hated my darling for her being sweet on me. So I planned my lake day with a
view to satisfying the mother. To her alone would I talk; but at some
appropriate moment I would say I had left my wrist watch or my sunglasses in
that glade yonder-and plunge with my nymphet into the wood. Reality at this
juncture withdrew, and the Quest for the Glasses turned into a quiet little
orgy with a singularly knowing, cheerful, corrupt and compliant Lolita behaving
as reason knew she could not possibly behave. At 3 a.m. I swallowed a sleeping
pill, and presently, a dream that was not a sequel but a parody revealed to me,
with a kind of meaningful clarity, the lake I had never yet visited: it was
glazed over with a sheet of emerald ice, and a pockmarked Eskimo was trying in
vain to break it with a pickax, although imported mimosas and oleanders
flowered on its gravelly banks. I am sure Dr. Blanche Schwarzmann would have
paid me a sack of schillings for adding such a libidream to her files.
Unfortunately, the rest of it was frankly eclectic. Big Haze and little Haze
rode on horseback around the lake, and I rode too, dutifully bobbing up and
down, bowlegs astraddle although there was no horse between them, only elastic
air-one of those little omissions due to the absentmindedness of the dream
agent.
Saturday. My
heart is still thumping. I still squirm and emit low moans of remembered
embarrassment.
Dorsal view.
Glimpse of shiny skin between T-shirt and white gym shorts. Bending, over a
window sill, in the act of tearing off leaves from a poplar outside while
engrossed in torrential talk with a newspaper boy below (Kenneth Knight, I
suspect) who had just propelled the Ramsdale Journal with a very precise thud
onto the porch. I began creeping up to her-"crippling" up to her as
pantomimists say. My arms and legs were convex surfaces between which-rather
than upon which-I slowly progressed by some neutral means of locomotion:
Humbert the Wounded Spider. I must have taken hours to reach her: I seemed to see
her through the wrong end of a telescope, and toward her taut little rear I
moved like some paralytic, on soft distorted limbs, in terrible concentration.
At last I was right behind her when I had the unfortunate idea of blustering a
trifle-shaking her by the scruff of the neck and that sort of thing to cover my
real manĘge, and she said in a shrill brief whine: "Cut it
out!"-most coarsely, the little wench, and with a ghastly grin Humbert the
Humble beat a gloomy retreat while she went on wisecracking streetward.
But now listen to
what happened next. After lunch I was reclining in a low chair trying to read.
Suddenly two deft little hands were over my eyes: she had crept up from behind
as if re-enacting, in a ballet sequence, my morning maneuver. Her fingers were
a luminous crimson as they tried to blot out the sun, and she uttered hiccups
of laughter and jerked this way and that as I stretched my arm sideways and
backwards without otherwise changing my recumbent position. My hand swept over
her agile giggling legs, and the book like a sleigh left my lap, and Mrs. Haze
strolled up and said indulgently: "Just slap her hard if she interferes
with your scholarly meditations. How I love this garden [no exclamation mark in
her tone]. Isn't it divine in the sun [no question mark either]." And with
a sign of feigned content, the obnoxious lady sank down on the grass and looked
up at the sky as she leaned back on her splayed-out hands, and presently an old
gray tennis ball bounced over her, and Lo's voice came from the house
haughtily: "Pardonnez, Mother. I was not aiming at you." Of course
not, my hot downy darling.
12
This proved to be
the last of twenty entries or so. It will be seem from them that for all the
devil's inventiveness, the scheme remained daily the same. First he would tempt
me-and then thwart me, leaving me with a dull pain in the very root of my
being. I knew exactly what I wanted to do, and how to do it, without impinging
on a child's chastity; after all, I had had some experience in my life of pederosis;
had visually possessed dappled nymphets in parks; had wedged my wary and
bestial way into the hottest, most crowded corner of a city bus full of
straphanging school children. But for almost three weeks I had been interrupted
in all my pathetic machinations. The agent of these interruptions was usually
the Haze woman (who, as the reader will mark, was more afraid of Lo's deriving
some pleasure from me than of my enjoying Lo). The passion I had developed for
that nymphet-for the first nymphet in my life that could be reached at last by
my awkward, aching, timid claws-would have certainly landed me again in a
sanatorium, had not the devil realized that I was to be granted some relief if
he wanted to have me as a plaything for some time longer.
The reader has
also marked the curious Mirage of the Lake. It would have been logical on the
part of Aubrey McFate (as I would like to dub that devil of mine) to arrange a
small treat for me on the promised beach, in the presumed forest. Actually, the
promise Mrs. Haze had made was a fraudulent one: she had not told me that Mary
Rose Hamilton (a dark little beauty in her own right) was to come too, and that
the two nymphets would be whispering apart, and playing apart, and having a
good time all by themselves, while Mrs. Haze and her handsome lodger conversed
sedately in the seminude, far from prying eyes. Incidentally, eyes did pry and
tongues did wag. How queer life is! We hasten to alienate the very fates we
intended to woo. Before my actual arrival, my landlady had planned to have an
old spinster, a Miss Phalen, whose mother had been cook in Mrs. Haze's family,
come to stay in the house with Lolita and me, while Mrs. Haze, a career girl at
heart, sought some suitable job in the nearest city. Mrs. Haze had seen the whole
situation very clearly: the bespectacled, round-backed Herr Humbert coming with
his Central-European trunks to gather dust in his corner behind a heap of old
books; the unloved ugly little daughter firmly supervised by Miss Phalen who
had already once had my Lo under her buzzard wing (Lo recalled that 1944 summer
with an indignant shudder); and Mrs. Haze herself engaged as a receptionist in
a great elegant city. But a not too complicated event interfered with that
program. Miss Phalen broke her hip in Savannah, Ga., on the very day I arrived
in Ramsdale.
13
The Sunday after
the Saturday already described proved to be as bright as the weatherman had
predicted. When putting the breakfast things back on the chair outside my room
for my good landlady to remove at her convenience, I gleaned the following
situation by listening from the landing across which I had softly crept to the
banisters in my old bedroom slippers-the only old things about me.
There had been
another row. Mrs. Hamilton had telephoned that her daughter "was running a
temperature." Mrs. Haze informed her daughter that the picnic would have
to be postponed. Hot little Haze informed big cold Haze that, if so, she would
not go with her to church. Mother said very well and left.
I had come out on
the landing straight after shaving, soapy-earlobed, still in my white pajamas
with the cornflower blue (not the lilac) design on the back; I now wiped off
the soap, perfumed my hair and armpits, slipped on a purple silk dressing gown,
and, humming nervously, went down the stairs in quest of Lo.
I want my learned
readers to participate in the scene I am about to replay; I want them to
examine its every detail and see for themselves how careful, how chaste, the
whole wine-sweet event is if viewed with what my lawyer has called, in a
private talk we have had, "impartial sympathy." So let us get
started. I have a difficult job before me.
Main character:
Humbert the Hummer. Time: Sunday morning in June. Place: sunlit living room.
Props: old, candy-striped davenport, magazines, phonograph, Mexican knickknacks
(the late Mr. Harold E. Haze-God bless the good man-had engendered my darling
at the siesta hour in a blue-washed room, on a honeymoon trip to Vera Cruz, and
mementoes, among these Dolores, were all over the place). She wore that day a
pretty print dress that I had seen on her once before, ample in the skirt,
tight in the bodice, short-sleeved, pink, checkered with darker pink, and, to
complete the color scheme, she had painted her lips and was holding in her
hollowed hands a beautiful, banal, Eden-red apple. She was not shod, however,
for church. And her white Sunday purse lay discarded near the phonograph.
My heart beat
like a drum as she sat down, cool skirt ballooning, subsiding, on the sofa next
to me, and played with her glossy fruit. She tossed it up into the sun-dusted
air, and caught it-it made a cupped polished plot.
Humbert Humbert
intercepted the apple.
"Give it
back," - she pleaded, showing the marbled flush of her palms. I produced
Delicious. She grasped it and bit into it, and my heart was like snow under
thin crimson skin, and with the nonkeyish nimbleness that was so typical of
that American nymphet, she snatched out of my abstract grip the magazine I had
opened (pity no film had recorded the curious pattern, the monogrammic linkage
of our simultaneous or overlapping moves). Rapidly, hardly hampered by the
disfigured apple she held, Lo flipped violently through the pages in search of
something she wished Humbert to see. Found it at last. I faked interest by
bringing my head so close that her hair touched my temple and her arm brushed
my cheek as she wiped her lips with her wrist. Because of the burnished mist
through which I peered at the picture, I was slow in reacting to it, and her
bare knees rubbed and knocked impatiently against each other. Dimly there came
into view: a surrealist painter relaxing, supine, on a beach, and near him,
likewise supine, a plaster replica of the Venus di Milo, half-buried in sand.
Picture of the Week, said the legend. I whisked the whole obscene thing away.
Next moment, in a sham effort to retrieve it, she was all over me. Caught her
by her thin knobby wrist. The magazine escaped to the floor like a flustered
fowl. She twisted herself free, recoiled, and lay back in the right-hand corner
of the davenport. Then, with perfect simplicity, the impudent child extended
her legs across my lap.
By this time I
was in a state of excitement bordering on insanity; but I also had the cunning
of the insane. Sitting there, on the sofa, I managed to attune, by a series of
stealthy movements, my masked lust to her guileless limbs. It was no easy
matter to divert the little maiden's attention while I performed the obscure
adjustments necessary for the success of the trick. Talking fast, lagging
behind my own breath, catching up with it, mimicking a sudden toothache to
explain the breaks in my patter-and all the while keeping a maniac's inner eye
on my distant golden goal, I cautiously increased the magic friction that was
doing away, in an illusional, if not factual, sense, with the physically
irremovable, but psychologically very friable texture of the material divide
(pajamas and robe) between the weight of two sunburnt legs, resting athwart my
lap, and the hidden tumor of an unspeakable passion. Having, in the course of
my patter, hit upon something nicely mechanical, I recited, garbling them
slightly, the words of a foolish song that was then popular-O my Carmen, my
little Carmen, something, something, those something nights, and the stars, and
the cars, and the bars, and the barmen; I kept repeating this automatic stuff
and holding her under its special spell (spell because of the garbling), and
all the while I was mortally afraid that some act of God might interrupt me,
might remove the golden load in the sensation of which all my being seemed
concentrated, and this anxiety forced me to work, for the first minute or so,
more hastily than was consensual with deliberately modulated enjoyment. The
stars that sparkled, and the cars that parkled, and the bars, and the barmen,
were presently taken over by her; her voice stole and corrected the tune I had
been mutilating. She was musical and apple-sweet. Her legs twitched a little as
they lay across my live lap; I stroked them; there she lolled in the right-hand
corner, almost asprawl, Lola the bobby-soxer, devouring her immemorial fruit,
singing through its juice, losing her slipper, rubbing the heel of her
slipperless foot in its sloppy anklet, against the pile of old magazines heaped
on my left on the sofa-and every movement she made, every shuffle and ripple,
helped me to conceal and to improve the secret system of tactile correspondence
between beast and beauty-between my gagged, bursting beast and the beauty of
her dimpled body in its innocent cotton frock.
Under my glancing
finger tips I felt the minute hairs bristle ever so slightly along her shins. I
lost myself in the pungent but healthy heat which like summer haze hung about
little Haze. Let her stay, let her stay . . . As she strained to chuck the core
of her abolished apple into the fender, her young weight, her shameless
innocent shanks and round bottom, shifted in my tense, tortured,
surreptitiously laboring lap; and all of a sudden a mysterious change came over
my senses. I entered a plane of being where nothing mattered, save the infusion
of joy brewed within my body. What had begun as a delicious distention of my
innermost roots became a glowing tingle which now had reached that state of
absolute security, confidence and reliance not found elsewhere in conscious
life. With the deep hot sweetness thus established and well on its way to the
ultimate convulsion, I felt I could slow down in order to prolong the glow.
Lolita had been safely solipsized. The implied sun pulsated in the supplied
poplars; we were fantastically and divinely alone; I watched her, rosy,
gold-dusted, beyond the veil of my controlled delight, unaware of it, alien to
it, and the sun was on her lips, and her lips were apparently still forming the
words of the Carmen-barmen ditty that no longer reached my consciousness.
Everything was now ready. The nerves of pleasure had been laid bare. The
corpuscles of Krause were entering the phase of frenzy. The least pressure
would suffice to set all paradise loose. I had ceased to be Humbert the Hound,
the sad-eyed degenerate cur clasping the boot that would presently kick him
away. I was above the tribulations of ridicule, beyond the possibilities of
retribution. In my self-made seraglio, I was a radiant and robust Turk,
deliberately, in the full consciousness of his freedom, postponing the moment
of actually enjoying the youngest and frailest of his slaves. Suspended on the
brink of that voluptuous abyss (a nicety of physiological equipoise comparable
to certain techniques in the arts) I kept repeating the chance words after
her-barmen, alarmin', my charmin', my carmen, ahmen, ahahamen-as one talking
and laughing in his sleep while my happy hand crept up her sunny leg as far as
the shadow of decency allowed. The day before she had collided with the heavy
chest in the hall and-"Look, look!"-I gasped-"look what you've
done, what you've done to yourself, ah, look"; for there was, I swear, a
yellowish-violet bruise on her lovely nymphet thigh which my huge hairy hand
massaged and slowly enveloped-and because of her very perfunctory underthings,
there seemed to be nothing to prevent my muscular thumb from reaching the hot
hollow of her groin-just as you might tickle and caress a giggling child-just
that-and: "Oh, it's nothing at all," she cried with a sudden shrill
note in her voice, and she wiggled, and squirmed, and threw her head back, and
her teeth rested on her glistening underlip as she half-turned away, and my
moaning mouth, gentlemen of the jury, almost reached her bare neck, while I
crushed out against her left buttock the last throb of the longest ecstasy man
or monster had ever known.
Immediately
afterward (as if we had been struggling and now my grip had eased) she rolled
off the sofa and jumped to her feet-to her foot, rather-in order to attend to
the formidably loud telephone that may have been ringing for ages as far as I
was concerned. There she stood and blinked, cheeks aflame, hair awry, her eyes
passing over me as lightly as they did over the furniture, and as she listened
or spoke (to her mother who was telling her to come to lunch with her at the
Chatfileds-neither Lo nor Hum knew yet what busybody Haze was plotting), she
kept tapping the edge of the table with the slipper she held in her hand.
Blessed be the Lord, she had noticed nothing!
With a
handkerchief of multicolored silk, on which her listening eyes rested in
passing, I wiped the sweat off my forehead, and, immersed in a euphoria of
release, rearranged my royal robes. She was still at the telephone, haggling
with her mother (wanted to be fetched by car, my little Carmen) when, singing
louder and louder, I swept up the stairs and set a deluge of steaming water
roaring into the tub.
At this point I
may as well give the words of that song hit in full-to the best of my
recollection at least-I don't think I ever had it right. Here goes:
O my Carmen, my
little Carmen!
Something,
something those something nights,
And the stars,
and the cars, and the bars and the barmen-
And, O my
charmin', our dreadful fights.
And the something
town where so gaily, arm in
Arm, we went, and
our final row,
And the gun I
killed you with, O my Carmen,
The gun I am
holding now.
(Drew his .32
automatic, I guess, and put a bullet through his moll's eye.)
14
I had lunch in
town-had not been so hungry for years. The house was still Lo-less when I
strolled back. I spent the afternoon musing, scheming, blissfully digesting my
experience of the morning.
I felt proud of
myself. I had stolen the honey of a spasm without impairing the morals of a
minor. Absolutely no harm done. The conjurer had poured milk, molasses, foaming
champagne into a young lady's new white purse; and lo, the purse was intact.
Thus had I delicately constructed my ignoble, ardent, sinful dream; and still
Lolita was safe-and I was safe. What I had madly possessed was not she, but my
own creation, another, fanciful Lolita-perhaps, more real than Lolita;
overlapping, encasing her; floating between me and her, and having no will, no
consciousness-indeed, no life of her own.
The child knew
nothing. I had done nothing to her. And nothing prevented me from repeating a
performance that affected her as little as if she were a photographic image
rippling upon a screen and I a humble hunchback abusing myself in the dark. The
afternoon drifted on and on, in ripe silence, and the sappy tall trees seemed
to be in the know; and desire, even stronger than before, began to afflict me
again. Let her come soon, I prayed, addressing a loan God, and while mamma is
in the kitchen, let a repetition of the davenport scene be staged, please, I
adore her so horribly.
No:
"horribly" is the wrong word. The elation with which the vision of
new delights filled me was not horrible but pathetic. I qualify it as pathetic.
Pathetic-because despite the insatiable fire of my venereal appetite, I
intended, with the most fervent force and foresight, to protect the purity of
that twelve-year-old child.
And now see how I
was repaid for my pains. No Lolita came home-she had gone with the Chatfields
to a movie. The table was laid with more elegance than usual: candlelight, if
you please. In this mawkish aura, Mrs. Haze gently touched the silver on both
sides of her plate as if touching piano keys, and smiled down on her empty
plate (was on a diet), and said she hoped I liked the salad (recipe lifted from
a woman's magazine). She hoped I liked the cold cuts, too. It had been a
perfect day. Mrs. Chatfield was a lovely person. Phyllis, her daughter, was
going to a summer camp tomorrow. For three weeks. Lolita, it was decided, would
go Thursday. Instead of waiting till July, as had been initially planned. And
stay there after Phyllis had left. Till school began. A pretty prospect, my
heart.
Oh, how I was
taken aback-for did it not mean I was losing my darling, just when I had
secretly made her mine? To explain my grim mood, I had to use the same
toothache I had already simulated in the morning. Must have been an enormous
molar, with an abscess as big as a maraschino cherry.
"We
have," said Haze, "an excellent dentist. Our neighbor, in fact. Dr.
Quilty. Uncle or cousin, I think, of the playwright. Think it will pass? Well,
just as you wish. In the fall I shall have him 'brace' her, as my mother used
to say. It may curb Lo a little. I am afraid she has been bothering you
frightfully all these days. And we are in for a couple of stormy ones before
she goes. She has flatly refused to go, and I confess I left her with the
Chatfields because I dreaded to face her alone just yet. The movie may mollify
her. Phyllis is a very sweet girl, and there is no earthly reason for Lo to
dislike her. Really, monsieur, I am very sorry about that tooth of yours. It
would be so much more reasonable to let me contact Ivor Quilty first thing
tomorrow morning if it still hurts. And, you know, I think a summer camp is so
much healthier, and-well, it is all so much more reasonable as I say than to
mope on a suburban lawn and use mamma's lipstick, and pursue shy studious
gentlemen, and go into tantrums at the least provocation."
"Are you
sure," I said at last, "that she will be happy there?" (lame,
lamentably lame!)
"She'd
better," said Haze. "And it won't be all play either. The camp is run
by Shirley Holmes-you know, the woman who wrote Campfire Girl. Camp will teach
Dolores Haze to grow in many things-health, knowledge, temper. And particularly
in a sense of responsibility towards other people. Shall we take these candles
with us and sit for a while on the piazza, or do you want to go to bed and
nurse that tooth?"
Nurse that tooth.
15
Next day they
drove downtown to buy things needed for the camp: any wearable purchase worked
wonders with Lo. She seemed her usual sarcastic self at dinner. Immediately
afterwards, she went up to her room to plunge into the comic books acquired for
rainy days at Camp Q (they were so thoroughly sampled by Thursday that she left
them behind). I too retired to my lair, and wrote letters. My plan now was to
leave for the seaside and then, when school began, resume my existence in the
Haze household; for I knew already that I could not live without the child. On
Tuesday they went shopping again, and I was asked to answer the phone if the
camp mistress rang up during their absence. She did; and a month or so later we
had occasion to recall our pleasant chat. That Tuesday, Lo had her dinner in
her room. She had been crying after a routine row with her mother and, as had
happened on former occasions, had not wished me to see her swollen eyes: she
had one of those tender complexions that after a good cry get all blurred and
inflamed, and morbidly alluring. I regretted keenly her mistake about my
private aesthetics, for I simply love that tinge of Botticellian pink, that raw
rose about the lips, those wet, matted eyelashes; and, naturally, her bashful
whim deprived me of many opportunities of specious consolation. There was,
however, more to it than I thought. As we sat in the darkness of the verandah
(a rude wind had put out her red candles), Haze, with a dreary laugh, said she
had told Lo that her beloved Humbert thoroughly approved of the whole camp idea
"and now," added Haze, "the child throws a fit; pretext: you and
I want to get rid of her; actual reason: I told her we would exchange tomorrow
for plainer stuff some much too cute night things that she bullied me into
buying for her. You see, she sees herself as a starlet; I see her as a sturdy,
healthy, but decidedly homely kid. This, I guess, is at the root of our
troubles."
On Wednesday I
managed to waylay Lo for a few seconds: she was on the landing, in sweatshirt
and green-stained white shorts, rummaging in a trunk. I said something meant to
be friendly and funny but she only emitted a snort without looking at me.
Desperate, dying Humbert patted her clumsily on her coccyx, and she struck him,
quite painfully, with one of the late Mr. Haze's shoetrees.
"Doublecrosser," she said as I crawled downstairs rubbing my arm with
a great show of rue. She did not condescend to have dinner with Hum and mum:
washed her hair and went to bed with her ridiculous books. And on Thursday
quiet Mrs. Haze drove her to Camp Q.
As greater
authors than I have put it: "Let readers imagine" etc. On second
thought, I may as well give those imaginations a kick in the pants. I knew I
had fallen in love with Lolita forever; but I also knew she would not be
forever Lolita. She would be thirteen on January 1. In two years or so she
would cease being a nymphet and would turn into a "young girl," and
then, into a "college girl"-that horror of horrors. The word
"forever" referred only to my own passion, to the eternal Lolita as
reflected in my blood. The Lolita whose iliac crests had not yet flared, the
Lolita that today I could touch and smell and hear and see, the Lolita of the
strident voice and rich brown hair-of the bangs and the swirls and the sides
and the curls at the back, and the sticky hot neck, and the vulgar
vocabulary-"revolting," "super," "luscious,"
"goon," "drip"-that Lolita, my Lolita, poor Catullus would
lose forever. So how could I afford not to see her for two months of summer
insomnias? Two whole months out of the two years of her remaining nymphage!
Should I disguise myself as a somber old-fashioned girl, gawky Mlle Humbert,
and put up my tent on the outskirts of Camp Q, in the hope that its russet
nymphets would clamor: "Let us adopt that deep-voiced D.P.," and drag
the said, shyly smiling Berthe au Grand Pied to their rustic hearth. Berthe
will sleep with Dolores Haze!
Idle dry dreams.
Two months of beauty, two months of tenderness, would be squandered forever,
and I could do nothing about it, but nothing, mais rien.
One drop of rare
honey, however, that Thursday did hold in its acorn cup. Haze was to drive her
to the camp in the early morning. Upon sundry sounds of departure reaching me,
I rolled out of bed and leaned out of the window. Under the poplars, the car
was already athrob. On the sidewalk, Louise stood shading her eyes with her
hand, as if the little traveler were already riding into the low morning sun.
The gesture proved to be premature. "Hurry up!" shouted Haze. My
Lolita, who was half in and about to slam the car door, wind down the glass,
wave to Louise and the poplars (whom and which she was never to see again),
interrupted the motion of fate: she looked up-and dashed back into the house
(Haze furiously calling after her). A moment later I heard my sweetheart
running up the stairs. My heart expanded with such force that it almost blotted
me out. I hitched up the pants of my pajamas, flung the door open: and
simultaneously Lolita arrived, in her Sunday frock, stamping, panting, and then
she was in my arms, her innocent mouth melting under the ferocious pressure of
dark male jaws, my palpitating darling! The next instant I heart her-alive,
unraped-clatter downstairs. The motion of fate was resumed. The blond leg was
pulled in, the car door was slammed-was re-slammed-and driver Haze at the
violent wheel, rubber-red lips writhing in angry, inaudible speech, swung my
darling away, while unnoticed by them or Louise, old Miss Opposite, an invalid,
feebly but rhythmically waved from her vined verandah.
16
The hollow of my
hand was still ivory-full of Lolita-full of the feel of her pre-adolescently
incurved back, that ivory-smooth, sliding sensation of her skin through the
thin frock that I had worked up and down while I held her. I marched into her
tumbled room, threw open the door of the closet, and plunged into a heap of
crumpled things that had touched her. There was particularly one pink texture,
sleazy, torn, with a faintly acrid odor in the seam. I wrapped in it Humbert's
huge engorged heart. A poignant chaos was welling within me-but I had to drop
those things and hurriedly regain my composure, as I became aware of the maid's
velvety voice calling me softly from the stairs. She had a message for me, she
said; and, topping my automatic thanks with a kindly "you're
welcome," good Louise left an unstamped, curiously clean-looking letter in
my shaking hand.
"This is a
confession. I love you [so the letter began; and for a distorted moment I
mistook its hysterical scrawl for a schoolgirl's scribble]. Last Sunday in
church-bad you, who refused to come to see our beautiful new windows!-only last
Sunday, my dear one, when I asked the Lord what to do about it, I was told to
act as I am acting now. You see, there is no alternative. I have loved you from
the minute I saw you. I am a passionate and lonely woman and you are the love
of my life.
Now, my dearest,
dearest, mon cher, cher monsieur, you have read this; now you know. So, will
you please, at once, pack and leave. This is a landlady's order. I am
dismissing a lodger. I am kicking you out. Go! Scram! Departez! I shall be back
by dinnertime, if I do eighty both ways and don't have an accident (but what
would it matter?), and I do not wish to find you in the house. Please, please,
leave at once, now, do not even read this absurd note to the end. Go. Adieu.
The situation,
chĘri, is quite simple. Of course, I know with absolute certainty that I
am nothing to you, nothing at all to you, nothing at all. Oh yes, you enjoy
talking to me (and kidding poor me), you have grown fond of our friendly house,
of the books I like, of my lovely garden, even of Lo's noisy ways-but I am
nothing to you. Right? Right. Nothing to you whatever. But if, after reading my
"confession," you decided, in your dark romantic European way, that I
am attractive enough for you to take advantage of my letter and make a pass at
me, then you would be a criminal-worse than a kidnaper who rapes a child. You
see, chĘri. If you decided to stay, if I found you at home (which I know I
won't-and that's why I am able to go on like this), the fact of your remaining
would only mean one thing: that you want me as much as I do you: as a lifelong
mate; and that you are ready to link up your life with mine forever and ever
and be a father to my little girl.
Let me rave and
ramble on for a teeny while more, my dearest, since I know this letter has been
by now torn by you, and its pieces (illegible) in the vortex of the toilet. My
dearest, mon trĘs, trĘs cher, what a world of love I have built up
for you during this miraculous June! I know how reserved you are, how
"British." Your old-world reticence, your sense of decorum may be
shocked by the boldness of an American girl! You who conceal your strongest
feelings must think me a shameless little idiot for throwing open my poor
bruised heart like this. In years gone by, many disappointments came my way.
Mr. Haze was a splendid person, a sterling soul, but he happened to be twenty
years my senior, and-well, let us not gossip about the past. My dearest, your
curiosity must be well satisfied if you have ignored my request and read this
letter to the bitter end. Never mind. Destroy it and go. Do not forget to leave
the key on the desk in your room. And some scrap of address so that I could
refund the twelve dollars I owe you till the end of the month. Good-bye, dear
one. Pray for me-if you ever pray.
C.H."
What I present
here is what I remember of the letter, and what I remember of the letter I
remember verbatim (including that awful French). It was at least twice longer.
I have left out a lyrical passage which I more or less skipped at the time,
concerning Lolita's brother who died at 2 when she was 4, and how much I would
have liked him. Let me see what else can I say? Yes. There is just a chance
that "the vortex of the toilet" (where the letter did go) is my own
matter-of-fact contribution. She probably begged me to make a special fire to
consume it.
My first movement
was one of repulsion and retreat. My second was like a friend's calm hand
falling upon my shoulder and bidding me take my time. I did. I came out of my
daze and found myself still in Lo's room. A full-page ad ripped out of a slick
magazine was affixed to the wall above the bed, between a crooner's mug and the
lashes of a movie actress. It represented a dark-haired young husband with a
kind of drained look in his Irish eyes. He was modeling a robe by So-and-So and
holding a bridgelike tray by So-and-So, with breakfast for two. The legend, by
the Rev. Thomas Morell, called him a "conquering hero." The
thoroughly conquered lady (not shown) was presumably propping herself up to
receive her half of the tray. How her bed-fellow was to get under the bridge
without some messy mishap was not clear. Lo had drawn a jocose arrow to the
haggard lover's face and had put, in block letters: H.H. And indeed, despite a
difference of a few years, the resemblance was striking. Under this was another
picture, also a colored ad. A distinguished playwright was solemnly smoking a
Drome. He always smoked Dromes. The resemblance was slight. Under this was Lo's
chase bed, littered with "comics." The enamel had come off the
bedstead, leaving black, more or less rounded, marks on the white. Having
convinced myself that Louise had left, I got into Lo's bed and reread the
letter.
17
Gentlemen of the
jury! I cannot swear that certain motions pertaining to the business in hand-if
I may coin an expression-had not drifted across my mind before. My mind had not
retained them in any logical form or in any relation to definitely recollected
occasions; but I cannot swear-let me repeat-that I had not toyed with them (to
rig up yet another expression), in my dimness of thought, in my darkness of
passion. There may have been times-there must have been times, if I know my
Humbert-when I had brought up for detached inspection the idea of marrying a
mature widow (say, Charlotte Haze) with not one relative left in the wide gray world,
merely in order to have my way with her child (Lo, Lola, Lolita). I am even
prepared to tell my tormentors that perhaps once or twice I had cast an
appraiser's cold eye at Charlotte's coral lips and bronze hair and dangerously
low neckline, and had vaguely tried to fit her into a plausible daydream. This
I confess under torture. Imaginary torture, perhaps, but all the more horrible.
I wish I might digress and tell you more of the pavor nocturnus that would rack
me at night hideously after a chance term had struck me in the random readings
of my boyhood, such as peine forte et dure (what a Genius of Pain must have
invented that!) or the dreadful, mysterious, insidious words
"trauma," "traumatic event," and "transom." But my
tale is sufficiently incondite already.
After a while I
destroyed the letter and went to my room, and ruminated, and rumpled my hair,
and modeled my purple robe, and moaned through clenched teeth and
suddenly-Suddenly, gentlemen of the jury, I felt a Dostoevskian grin dawning
(through the very grimace that twisted my lips) like a distant and terrible
sun. I imagined (under conditions of new and perfect visibility) all the casual
caresses her mother's husband would be able to lavish on his Lolita. I would
hold her against me three times a day, every day. All my troubles would be
expelled, I would be a healthy man. "To hold thee lightly on a gentle knee
and print on thy soft cheek a parent's kiss . . ." Well-read Humbert!
Then, with all
possible caution, on mental tiptoe so to speak, I conjured up Charlotte as a
possible mate. By God, I could make myself bring her that economically halved
grapefruit, that sugarless breakfast.
Humbert Humbert
sweating in the fierce white light, and howled at, and trodden upon by sweating
policemen, is now ready to make a further "statement" (quel mot!) as
he turns his conscience inside out and rips off its innermost lining. I did not
plan to marry poor Charlotte in order to eliminate her in some vulgar, gruesome
and dangerous manner such as killing her by placing five bichloride-of-mercury
tablets in her preprandial sherry or anything like that; but a delicately
allied, pharmacopoeial thought did tinkle in my sonorous and clouded brain. Why
limit myself to the modest masked caress I had tried already? Other visions of
venery presented themselves to me swaying and smiling. I saw myself
administering a powerful sleeping potion to both mother and daughter so as to
fondle the latter though the night with perfect impunity. The house was full of
Charlotte's snore, while Lolita hardly breathed in her sleep, as still as a
painted girl-child. "Mother, I swear Kenny never even touched me."
"You either lie, Dolores Haze, or it was an incubus." No, I would not
go that far.
So Humbert the
Cubus schemed and dreamed-and the red sun of desire and decision (the two
things that create a live world) rose higher and higher, while upon a
succession of balconies a succession of libertines, sparkling glass in hand,
toasted the bliss of past and future nights. Then, figuratively speaking, I
shattered the glass, and boldly imagined (for I was drunk on those visions by
then and underrated the gentleness of my nature) how eventually I might
blackmail-no, that it too strong a word-mauvemail big Haze into letting me
consort with the little Haze by gently threatening the poor doting Big Dove
with desertion if she tried to bar me from playing with my legal stepdaughter.
In a word, before such an Amazing Offer, before such a vastness and variety of
vistas, I was as helpless as Adam at the preview of early oriental history,
miraged in his apple orchard.
And now take down
the following important remark: the artist in me has been given the upper hand
over the gentleman. It is with a great effort of will that in this memoir I
have managed to tune my style to the tone of the journal that I kept when Mrs.
Haze was to me but an obstacle. That journal of mine is no more; but I have
considered it my artistic duty to preserve its intonations no matter how false
and brutal they may seem to me now. Fortunately, my story has reached a point
where I can cease insulting poor Charlotte for the sake of retrospective
verisimilitude.
Wishing to spare
poor Charlotte two or three hours of suspense on a winding road (and avoid,
perhaps, a head-on collision that would shatter our different dreams), I made a
thoughtful but abortive attempt to reach her at the camp by telephone. She had
left half an hour before, and getting Lo instead, I told her-trembling and
brimming with my mastery over fate-that I was going to marry her mother. I had
to repeat it twice because something was preventing her from giving me her
attention. "Gee, that's swell," she said laughing. "When is the
wedding? Hold on a sec, the pup-That put here has got hold of my sock. Listen-"
and she added she guessed she was going to have loads of fun . . . and I
realized as I hung up that a couple of hours at that camp had been sufficient
to blot out with new impressions the image of handsome Humbert Humbert from
little Lolita's mind. But what did it matter now? I would get her back as soon
as a decent amount of time after the wedding had elapsed. "The orange
blossom would have scarcely withered on the grave," as a poet might have
said. But I am no poet. I am only a very conscientious recorder.
After Louise had
gone, I inspected the icebox, and finding it much too puritanic, walked to town
and bought the richest foods available. I also bought some good liquor and two
or three kinds of vitamins. I was pretty sure that with the aid of these stimulants
and my natural resources, I would avert any embarrassment that my indifference
might incur when called upon to display a strong and impatient flame. Again and
again resourceful Humbert evoked Charlotte as seen in the raree-show of a manly
imagination. She was well groomed and shapely, this I could say for her, and
she was my Lolita's big sister-this notion, perhaps, I could keep up if only I
did not visualize too realistically her heavy hips, round knees, ripe bust, the
coarse pink skin of her neck ("coarse" by comparison with silk and
honey) and all the rest of that sorry and dull thing: a handsome woman.
The sun made its
usual round of the house as the afternoon ripened into evening. I had a drink.
And another. And yet another. Gin and pineapple juice, my favorite mixture,
always double my energy. I decided to busy myself with our unkempt lawn. Une
petite attention. It was crowded with dandelions, and a cursed dog-I loathe
dogs-had defiled the flat stones where a sundial had once stood. Most of the dandelions
had changed from suns to moons. The gin and Lolita were dancing in me, and I
almost fell over the folding chairs that I attempted to dislodge. Incarnadine
zebras! There are some eructations that sound like cheers-at least, mine did.
An old fence at the back of the garden separated us from the neighbor's garbage
receptacles and lilacs; but there was nothing between the front end of our lawn
(where it sloped along one side of the house) and the street. Therefore I was
able to watch (with the smirk of one about to perform a good action) for the
return of Charlotte: that tooth should be extracted at once. As I lurched and
lunged with the hand mower, bits of grass optically twittering in the low sun,
I kept an eye on that section of suburban street. It curved in from under an
archway of huge shade trees, then sped towards us down, down, quite sharply,
past old Miss Opposite's ivied brick house and high-sloping lawn (much trimmer
than ours) and disappeared behind our own front porch which I could not see from
where I happily belched and labored. The dandelions perished. A reek of sap
mingled with the pineapple. Two little girls, Marion and Mabel, whose comings
and goings I had mechanically followed of late (but who could replace my
Lolita?) went toward the avenue (from which our Lawn Street cascaded), one
pushing a bicycle, the other feeding from a paper bag, both talking at the top
of their sunny voices. Leslie, old Miss Opposite's gardener and chauffeur, a
very amiable and athletic Negro, grinned at me from afar and shouted,
re-shouted, commented by gesture, that I was mighty energetic today. The fool
dog of the prosperous junk dealer next door ran after a blue car-not
Charlotte's. The prettier of the two little girls (Mabel, I think), shorts,
halter with little to halt, bright hair-a nymphet, by Pan!-ran back down the
street crumpling her paper bag and was hidden from this Green Goat by the
frontage of Mr. And Mrs. Humbert's residence. A station wagon popped out of the
leafy shade of the avenue, dragging some of it on its roof before the shadows
snapped, and swung by at an idiotic pace, the sweatshirted driver roof-holding
with his left hand and the junkman's dog tearing alongside. There was a smiling
pause-and then, with a flutter in my breast, I witnessed the return of the Blue
Sedan. I saw it glide downhill and disappear behind the corner of the house. I
had a glimpse of her calm pale profile. It occurred to me that until she went
upstairs she would not know whether I had gone or not. A minute later, with an
expression of great anguish on her face, she looked down at me from the window
of Lo's room. By sprinting upstairs, I managed to reach that room before she
left it.
18
When the bride is
a window and the groom is a widower; when the former has lived in Our Great
Little Town for hardly two years, and the latter for hardly a month; when
Monsieur wants to get the whole damned thing over with as quickly as possible,
and Madame gives in with a tolerant smile; then, my reader, the wedding is
generally a "quiet" affair. The bride may dispense with a tiara of
orange blossoms securing her finger-tip veil, nor does she carry a white orchid
in a prayer book. The bride's little daughter might have added to the
ceremonies uniting H. and H. a touch of vivid vermeil; but I knew I would not
dare be too tender with cornered Lolita yet, and therefore agreed it was not
worth while tearing the child away from her beloved Camp Q.
My soi-disant
passionate and lonely Charlotte was in everyday life matter-of-fact and
gregarious. Moreover, I discovered that although she could not control her
heart or her cries, she was a woman of principle. Immediately after she had
become more or less my mistress (despite the stimulants, her "nervous,
eager chĘri-a heroic chĘri!-had some initial trouble, for which,
however, he amply compensated her by a fantastic display of old-world
endearments), good Charlotte interviewed me about my relations with God. I
could have answered that on that score my mind was open; I said, instead-paying
my tribute to a pious platitude-that I believed in a cosmic spirit. Looking
down at her fingernails, she also asked me had I not in my family a certain
strange strain. I countered by inquiring whether she would still want to marry
me if my father's maternal grandfather had been, say, a Turk. She said it did
not matter a bit; but that, if she ever found out I did not believe in Our
Christian God, she would commit suicide. She said it so solemnly that it gave
me the creeps. It was then I knew she was a woman of principle.
Oh, she was very
genteel: she said "excuse me" whenever a slight burp interrupted her
flowing speech, called an envelope and ahnvelope, and when talking to her
lady-friends referred to me as Mr. Humbert. I thought it would please her if I
entered the community trailing some glamour after me. On the day of our wedding
a little interview with me appeared in the Society Column of the Ramsdale
Journal, with a photograph of Charlotte, one eyebrow up and a misprint in her
name ("Hazer"). Despite this contretempts, the publicity warmed the
porcelain cockles of her heart-and made my rattles shake with awful glee. by
engaging in church work as well as by getting to know the better mothers of
Lo's schoolmates, Charlotte in the course of twenty months or so had managed to
become if not a prominent, at least an acceptable citizen, but never before had
she come under that thrilling rubrique, and it was I who put her there, Mr.
Edgar H. Humbert (I threw in the "Edgar" just for the heck of it),
"writer and explorer." McCoo's brother, when taking it down, asked me
what I had written. Whatever I told him came out as "several books on
Peacock, Rainbow and other poets." It was also noted that Charlotte and I
had known each other for several years and that I was a distant relation of her
first husband. I hinted I had had an affair with her thirteen years ago but
this was not mentioned in print. To Charlotte I said that society columns
should contain a shimmer of errors.
Let us go on with
this curious tale. When called upon to enjoy my promotion from lodger to lover,
did I experience only bitterness and distaste? No. Mr. Humbert confesses to a
certain titillation of his vanity, to some faint tenderness, even to a pattern
of remorse daintily running along the steel of his conspiratorial dagger. Never
had I thought that the rather ridiculous, through rather handsome Mrs. Haze,
with her blind faith in the wisdom of her church and book club, her mannerisms
of elocution, her harsh, cold, contemptuous attitude toward an adorable, downy-armed
child of twelve, could turn into such a touching, helpless creature as soon as
I laid my hands upon her which happened on the threshold of Lolita's room
whither she tremulously backed repeating "no, no, please no."
The
transformation improved her looks. Her smile that had been such a contrived
thing, thenceforth became the radiance of utter adoration-a radiance having
something soft and moist about it, in which, with wonder, I recognized a
resemblance to the lovely, inane, lost look that Lo had when gloating over a
new kind of concoction at the soda fountain or mutely admiring my expensive,
always tailor-fresh clothes. Deeply fascinated, I would watch Charlotte while
she swapped parental woes with some other lady and made that national grimace
of feminine resignation (eyes rolling up, mouth drooping sideways) which, in an
infantile form, I had seen Lo making herself. We had highballs before turning
in, and with their help, I would manage to evoke the child while caressing the
mother. This was the white stomach within which my nymphet had been a little
curved fish in 1934. This carefully dyed hair, so sterile to my sense of smell
and touch, acquired at certain lamplit moments in the poster bed the tinge, if
not the texture, of Lolita's curls. I kept telling myself, as I wielded my
brand-new large-as-life wife, that biologically this was the nearest I could
get to Lolita; that at Lolita's age, Lotte had been as desirable a schoolgirl
as her daughter was, and as Lolita's daughter would be some day. I had my wife
unearth from under a collection of shoes (Mr. Haze had a passion for them, it
appears) a thirty-year-old album, so that I might see how Lotte had looked as a
child; and even though the light was wrong and the dresses graceless, I was
able to make out a dim first version of Lolita's outline, legs, cheekbones,
bobbed nose. Lottelita, Lolitchen.
So I tom-peeped
across the hedges of years, into wan little windows. And when, by means of
pitifully ardent, naively lascivious caresses, she of the noble nipple and
massive thigh prepared me for the performance of my nightly duty, it was still
a nymphet's scent that in despair I tried to pick up, as I bayed through the
undergrowth of dark decaying forests.
I simply can't
tell you how gentle, how touching my poor wife was. At breakfast, in the
depressingly bright kitchen, with its chrome glitter and Hardware and Co.
Calendar and cute breakfast nook (simulating that Coffee Shoppe where in their
college days Charlotte and Humbert used to coo together), she would sit, robed
in red, her elbow on the plastic-topped table, her cheek propped on her fist,
and stare at me with intolerable tenderness as I consumed my ham and eggs.
Humbert's face might twitch with neuralgia, but in her eyes it vied in beauty
and animation with the sun and shadows of leaves rippling on the white
refrigerator. My solemn exasperation was to her the silence of love. My small
income added to her even smaller one impressed her as a brilliant fortune; not
because the resulting sum now sufficed for most middle-class needs, but because
even my money shone in her eyes with the magic of my manliness, and she saw our
joint account as one of those southern boulevards at midday that have solid
shade on one side and smooth sunshine on the other, all the way to the end of a
prospect, where pink mountains loom.
Into the fifty
days of our cohabitation Charlotte crammed the activities of as many years. The
poor woman busied herself with a number of things she had foregone long before
or had never been much interested in, as if (to prolong these Proustian
intonations) by my marrying the mother of the child I loved I had enabled my
wife to regain an abundance of youth by proxy. With the zest of a banal young
bride, she started to "glorify the home." Knowing as I did its every
cranny by heart-since those days when from my chair I mentally mapped out
Lolita's course through the house-I had long entered into a sort of emotional
relationship with it, with its very ugliness and dirt, and now I could almost
feel the wretched thing cower in its reluctance to endure the bath of ecru and
ocher and putt-buff-and-snuff that Charlotte planned to give it. She never got
as far as that, thank God, but she did use up a tremendous amount of energy in
washing window shades, waxing the slats of Venetian blinds, purchasing new
shades and new blinds, returning them to the store, replacing them by others,
and so on, in a constant chiaroscuro of smiles and frowns, doubts and pouts.
She dabbled in cretonnes and chintzes; she changed the colors of the sofa-the
sacred sofa where a bubble of paradise had once burst in slow motion within me.
She rearranged the furniture-and was pleased when she found, in a household
treatise, that "it is permissible to separate a pair of sofa commodes and
their companion lamps." With the authoress of Your Home Is You, she
developed a hatred for little lean chairs and spindle tables. She believed that
a room having a generous expanse of glass, and lots of rich wood paneling was
an example of the masculine type of room, whereas the feminine type was
characterized by lighter-looking windows and frailer woodwork. The novels I had
found her reading when I moved in were now replaced by illustrated catalogues
and homemaking guides. From a firm located at 4640 Roosevelt Blvd.,
Philadelphia, she ordered for our double bed a "damask covered 312 coil
mattress"-although the old one seemed to me resilient and durable enough
for whatever it had to support.
A Midwesterner,
as her late husband had also been, she had lived in coy Ramsdale, the gem of an
eastern state, not long enough to know all the nice people. She knew slightly
the jovial dentist who lived in a kind of ramshackle wooden chateau behind our
lawn. She had met at a church tea the "snooty" wife of the local junk
dealer who owned the "colonial" white horror at the corner of the
avenue. Now and then she "visited with" old Miss Opposite; but the
more patrician matrons among those she called upon, or met at lawn functions,
or had telephone chats with-such dainty ladies as Mrs. Glave, Mrs. Sheridan,
Mrs. McCrystal, Mrs. Knight and others, seldom seemed to call on my neglected
Charlotte. Indeed, the only couple with whom she had relations of real
cordiality, devoid of any arriĘre-pensĘe or practical foresight, were
the Farlows who had just come back from a business trip to Chile in time to
attend our wedding, with the Chatfields, McCoos, and a few others (but not Mrs.
Junk or the even prouder Mrs. Talbot). John Farlow was a middle-aged, quiet,
quietly athletic, quietly successful dealer in sporting goods, who had an
office at Parkington, forty miles away: it was he who got me the cartridges for
that Colt and showed me how to use it, during a walk in the woods one Sunday;
he was also what he called with a smile a part-time lawyer and had handled some
of Charlotte's affairs. Jean, his youngish wife (and first cousin), was a
long-limbed girl in harlequin glasses with two boxer dogs, two pointed breasts
and a big red mouth. She painted-landscapes and portraits-and vividly do I remember
praising, over cocktails, the picture she had made of a niece of hers, little
Rosaline Honeck, a rosy honey in a Girl Scout uniform, beret of green worsted,
belt of green webbing, charming shoulder-long curls-and John removed his pipe
and said it was a pity Dolly (my Dolita) and Rosaline were so critical of each
other at school, but he hoped, and we all hoped, they would get on better when
they returned from their respective camps. We talked of the school. It had its
drawbacks, and it had its virtues. "Of course, too many of the
tradespeople here are Italians," said John, "but on the other hand we
are still spared-" "I wish," interrupted Jean with a laugh,
"Dolly and Rosaline were spending the summer together." Suddenly I
imagined Lo returning from camp-brown, warm, drowsy, drugged-and was ready to
weep with passion and impatience.
19
A few words more
about Mrs. Humbert while the going is good (a bad accident is to happen quite
soon). I had been always aware of the possessive streak in her, but I never thought
she would be so crazily jealous of anything in my life that had not been she.
She showed a fierce insatiable curiosity for my past. She desired me to
resuscitate all my loves so that she might make me insult them, and trample
upon them, and revoke them apostately and totally, thus destroying my past. She
made me tell her about my marriage to Valeria, who was of course a scream; but
I also had to invent, or to pad atrociously, a long series of mistresses for
Charlotte's morbid delectation. To keep her happy, I had to present her with an
illustrated catalogue of them, all nicely differentiated, according to the
rules of those American ads where schoolchildren are pictured in a subtle ratio
of races, with one-only one, but as cute as they make them-chocolate-colored
round-eyed little lad, almost in the very middle of the front row. So I
presented my women, and had them smile and sway-the languorous blond, the fiery
brunette, the sensual copperhead-as if on parade in a bordello. The more
popular and platitudinous I made them, the more Mrs. Humbert was pleased with
the show.
Never in my life
had I confessed so much or received so many confessions. The sincerity and
artlessness with which she discussed what she called her "love-life,"
from first necking to connubial catch-as-catch-can, were, ethically, in
striking contrast with my glib compositions, but technically the two sets were
congeneric since both were affected by the same stuff (soap operas,
psychoanalysis and cheap novelettes) upon which I drew for my characters and
she for her mode of expression. I was considerably amused by certain remarkable
sexual habits that the good Harold Haze had had according to Charlotte who
thought my mirth improper; but otherwise her autobiography was as devoid of
interests as her autopsy would have been. I never saw a healthier woman than
she, despite thinning diets.
Of my Lolita she
seldom spoke-more seldom, in fact, than she did of the blurred, blond male baby
whose photograph to the exclusion of all others adorned our bleak bedroom. In
once of her tasteless reveries, she predicted that the dead infant's soul would
return to earth in the form of the child she would bear in her present wedlock.
And although I felt no special urge to supply the Humbert line with a replica of
Harold's production (Lolita, with an incestuous thrill, I had grown to regard
as my child), it occurred to me that a prolonged confinement, with a nice
Cesarean operation and other complications in a safe maternity ward sometime
next spring, would give me a chance to be alone with my Lolita for weeks,
perhaps-and gorge the limp nymphet with sleeping pills.
Oh, she simply
hated her daughter! What I thought especially vicious was that she had gone out
of her way to answer with great diligence the questionnaires in a fool's book
she had (A guide to Your Child's Development), published in Chicago. The
rigmarole went year by year, and Mom was supposed to fill out a kind of
inventory at each of her child's birthdays. On Lo's twelfth, January 1, 1947,
Charlotte Haze, nĘe Becker, had underlined the following epithets, ten out
of forty, under "Your Child's Personality": aggressive, boisterous,
critical, distrustful, impatient, irritable, inquisitive, listless,
negativistic (underlined twice) and obstinate. She had ignored the thirty
remaining adjectives, among which were cheerful, co-operative, energetic, and
so forth. It was really maddening. With a brutality that otherwise never
appeared in my loving wife's mild nature, she attacked and routed such of Lo's
little belongings that had wandered to various parts of the house to freeze
there like so many hypnotized bunnies. Little did the good lady dream that one
morning when an upset stomach (the result of my trying to improve on her
sauces) had prevented me from accompanying her to church, I deceived her with
one of Lolita's anklets. And then, her attitude toward my saporous darling's
letters!
"Dear Mummy
and Hummy,
Hope you are
fine. Thank you very much for the candy. I [crossed out and re-written again] I
lost my new sweater in the woods. It has been cold here for the last few days.
I'm having a time. Love,
Dolly."
"The dumb
child," said Mrs. Humbert, "has left out a word before 'time.' That
sweater was all-wool, and I wish you would not send her candy without consulting
me."
20
There was a
woodlake (Hourglass Lake-not as I had thought it was spelled) a few miles from
Ramsdale, and there was one week of great heat at the end of July when we drove
there daily. I am now obliged to describe in some tedious detail our last swim
there together, one tropical Tuesday morning.
We had left the
car in a parking area not far from the road and were making our way down a path
cut through the pine forest to the lake, when Charlotte remarked that Jean
Farlow, in quest of rare light effects (Jean belonged to the old school of
painting), had seen Leslie taking a dip "in the ebony" (as John had
quipped) at five o'clock in the morning last Sunday.
"The
water," I said, "must have been quite cold."
"That is not
the point," said the logical doomed dear. "He is subnormal, you see.
And," she continued (in that carefully phrased way of hers that was
beginning to tell on my health), "I have a very definite feeling our
Louise is in love with that moron."
Feeling. "We
feel Dolly is not doing as well" etc. (from an old school report).
The Humberts
walked on, sandaled and robed.
"Do you
know, Hum: I have one most ambitious dream," pronounced Lady Hum, lowering
her head-shy of that dream-and communing with the tawny ground. "I would
love to get hold of a real trained servant maid like that German girl the
Talbots spoke of; and have her live in the house."
"No
room," I said.
"Come,"
she said with her quizzical smile, "surely, chĘri, you underestimate
the possibilities of the Humbert home. We would put her in Lo's room. I
intended to make a guestroom of that hole anyway. It's the coldest and meanest
in the whole house."
"What are
you talking about?" I asked, the skin of my cheekbones tensing up (this I
take the trouble to note only because my daughter's skin did the same when she
felt that way: disbelief, disgust, irritation).
"Are you
bothered by Romantic Associations?" queried my wife-in allusion to her
first surrender.
"Hell
no," said I. "I just wonder where will you put your daughter when you
get your guest or your maid."
"Ah,"
said Mrs. Humbert, dreaming, smiling, drawing out the "Ah"
simultaneously with the raise of one eyebrow and a soft exhalation of breath.
"Little Lo, I'm afraid, does not enter the picture at all, at all. Little
Lo goes straight from camp to a good boarding school with strict discipline and
some sound religious training. And then-Beardsley College. I have it all mapped
out, you need not worry."
She went on to
say that she, Mrs. Humbert, would have to overcome her habitual sloth and write
to Miss Phalli's sister who taught at St. Algebra. The dazzling lake emerged. I
said I had forgotten my sunglasses in the car and would catch up with her.
I had always
thought that wringing one's hands was a fictional gesture-the obscure outcome,
perhaps, of some medieval ritual; but as I took to the woods, for a spell of
despair and desperate meditation, this was the gesture ("look, Lord, at
these chains!") that would have come nearest to the mute expression of my
mood.
Had Charlotte
been Valeria, I would have known how to handle the situation; and
"handle" is the word I want. In the good old days, by merely twisting
fat Valechka's brittle wrist (the one she had fallen upon from a bicycle) I
could make her change her mind instantly; but anything of the sort in regard to
Charlotte was unthinkable. Bland American Charlotte frightened me. My
lighthearted dream of controlling her through her passion for me was all wrong.
I dared not do anything to spoil the image of me she had set up to adore. I had
toadied to her when she was the awesome duenna of my darling, and a groveling
something still persisted in my attitude toward her. The only ace I held was
her ignorance of my monstrous love for her Lo. She had been annoyed by Lo's
liking me; but my feelings she could not divine. To Valeria I might have said:
"Look here, you fat fool, c'est moi qui dĘcide what is good for
Dolores Humbert." To Charlotte, I could not even say (with ingratiating calm):
"Excuse me, my dear, I disagree. Let us give the child one more chance.
Let me be her private tutor for a year or so. You once told me yourself-"
In fact, I could not say anything at all to Charlotte about the child without
giving myself away. Oh, you cannot imagine (as I had never imagined) what these
women of principle are! Charlotte, who did not notice the falsity of all the
everyday conventions and rules of behavior, and foods, and books, and people
she doted upon, would distinguish at once a false intonation in anything I
might say with a view to keeping Lo near. She was like a musician who may be an
odious vulgarian in ordinary life, devoid of tact and taste; but who will hear
a false note in music with diabolical accuracy of judgment. To break
Charlotte's will, I would have to break her heart. If I broke her heart, her
image of me would break too. If I said: "Either I have my way with Lolita,
and you help me to keep the matter quiet, or we part at once," she would
have turned as pale as a woman of clouded glass and slowly replied: "All
right, whatever you add or retract, this is the end." And the end it would
be.
Such, then, was
the mess. I remember reaching the parking area and pumping a handful of
rust-tasting water, and drinking it as avidly as if it would give me magic
wisdom, youth, freedom, a tiny concubine. For a while, purple-robed,
heel-dangling, I sat on the edge of one of the rude tables, under the whooshing
pines. In the middle distance, two little maidens in shorts and halters came
out of a sun-dappled privy marked "Women." Gum-chewing Mabel (or
Mabel's understudy) laboriously, absentmindedly straddled a bicycle, and
Marion, shaking her hair because of the flies, settled behind, legs wide apart;
and wobbling, they slowly, absently, merged with the light and shade. Lolita!
Father and daughter melting into these woods! The natural solution was to
destroy Mrs. Humbert. But how?
No man can bring
about the perfect murder; chance, however, can do it. There was the famous
dispatch of a Mme Lacour in Arles, southern France, at the close of last
century. An unidentified bearded six-footer, who, it was later conjectured, had
been the lady's secret lover, walked up to her in a crowded street, soon after
her marriage to Colonel Lacour, and mortally stabbed her in the back, three
times, while the Colonel, a small bulldog of a man, hung onto the murderer's
arm. By a miraculous and beautiful coincidence, right at the moment when the
operator was in the act of loosening the angry little husband's jaws (while
several onlookers were closing in upon the group), a cranky Italian in the
house nearest to the scene set off by sheer accident some kind of explosive he
was tinkering with, and immediately the street was turned into a pandemonium of
smoke, falling bricks and running people. The explosion hurt no one (except
that it knocked out game Colonel Lacour); but the lady's vengeful lover ran
when the others ran-and lived happily ever after.
Now look what
happens when the operator himself plans a perfect removal.
I walked down to
Hourglass Lake. The spot from which we and a few other "nice" couples
(the Farlows, the Chatfields) bathed was a kind of small cove; my Charlotte
liked it because it was almost "a private beach." The main bathing
facilities (or drowning facilities" as the Ramsdale Journal had had
occasion to say) were in the left (eastern) part of the hourglass, and could
not be seen from our covelet. To our right, the pines soon gave way to a curve
of marshland which turned again into forest on the opposite side.
I sat down beside
my wife so noiselessly that she started.
"Shall we go
in?" she asked.
"We shall in
a minute. Let me follow a train of thought."
I thought. More
than a minute passed.
"All right.
Come on."
"Was I on
that train?"
"You
certainly were."
"I hope
so," said Charlotte entering the water. It soon reached the gooseflesh of
her thick thighs; and then, joining her outstretched hands, shutting her mouth
tight, very plain-faced in her black rubber headgear, charlotte flung herself
forward with a great splash.
Slowly we swam
out into the shimmer of the lake.
On the opposite
bank, at least a thousand paces away (if one cold walk across water), I could
make out the tiny figures of two men working like beavers on their stretch of
shore. I knew exactly who they were: a retired policeman of Polish descent and
the retired plumber who owned most of the timber on that side of the lake. And
I also knew they were engaged in building, just for the dismal fun of the
thing, a wharf. The knocks that reached us seemed so much bigger than what
could be distinguished of those dwarfs' arms and tools; indeed, one suspected
the director of those acrosonic effects to have been at odds with the
puppet-master, especially since the hefty crack of each diminutive blow lagged
behind its visual version.
The short
white-sand strip of "our" beach-from which by now we had gone a
little way to reach deep water-was empty on weekday mornings. There was nobody
around except those two tiny very busy figures on the opposite side, and a
dark-red private plane that droned overhead, and then disappeared in the blue.
The setting was really perfect for a brisk bubbling murder, and here was the
subtle point: the man of law and the man of water were just near enough to
witness an accident and just far enough not to observe a crime. They were near
enough to hear a distracted bather thrashing about and bellowing for somebody
to come and help him save his drowning wife; and they were too far to
distinguish (if they happened to look too soon) that the anything but
distracted swimmer was finishing to tread his wife underfoot. I was not yet at
that stage; I merely want to convey the ease of the act, the nicety of the
setting! So there was Charlotte swimming on with dutiful awkwardness (she was a
very mediocre mermaid), but not without a certain solemn pleasure (for was not
her merman by her side?); and as I watched, with the stark lucidity of a future
recollection (you know-trying to see things as you will remember having seen
them), the glossy whiteness of her wet face so little tanned despite all her
endeavors, and her pale lips, and her naked convex forehead, and the tight
black cap, and the plump wet neck, I knew that all I had to do was to drop
back, take a deep breath, then grab her by the ankle and rapidly dive with my
captive corpse. I say corpse because surprise, panic and inexperience would
cause her to inhale at once a lethal gallon of lake, while I would be able to
hold on for at least a full minute, open-eyed under water. The fatal gesture passed
like the tail of a falling star across the blackness of the contemplated crime.
It was like some dreadful silent ballet, the male dancer holding the ballerina
by her foot and streaking down through watery twilight. I might come up for a
mouthful of air while still holding her down, and then would dive again as many
times as would be necessary, and only when the curtain came down on her for
good, would I permit myself to yell for help. And when some twenty minutes
later the two puppets steadily growing arrived in a rowboat, one half newly
painted, poor Mrs. Humbert Humbert, the victim of a cramp or coronary
occlusion, or both, would be standing on her head in the inky ooze, some thirty
feet below the smiling surface of Hourglass Lake.
Simple, was it
not? But what d'ye know, folks-I just could not make myself do it!
She swam beside
me, a trustful and clumsy seal, and all the logic of passion screamed in my
ear: Now is the time! And, folks, I just couldn't! In silence I turned
shoreward and gravely, dutifully, she also turned, and still hell screamed its
counsel, and still I could not make myself drown the poor, slippery, big-bodied
creature. The scream grew more and more remote as I realized the melancholy
fact that neither tomorrow, nor Friday, nor any other day or night, could I
make myself put her to death. Oh, I could visualize myself slapping Valeria's
breasts out of alignment, or otherwise hurting her-and I could see myself, no
less clearly, shooting her lover in the underbelly and making him say
"akh!" and sit down. But I could not kill Charlotte-especially when
things were on the whole not quite as hopeless, perhaps, as they seemed at
first wince on that miserable morning. Were I to catch her by her strong
kicking foot; were I to see her amazed look, hear her awful voice; were I still
to go through with the ordeal, her ghost would haunt me all my life. Perhaps if
the year were 1447 instead of 1947 I might have hoodwinked my gentle nature by
administering her some classical poison from a hollow agate, some tender
philter of death. But in our middle-class nosy era it would not have come off
the way it used to in the brocaded palaces of the past. Nowadays you have to be
a scientist if you want to be a killer. No, no, I was neither. Ladies and
gentlemen of the jury, the majority of sex offenders that hanker for some
throbbing, sweet-moaning, physical but not necessarily coital, relation with a
girl-child, are innocuous, inadequate, passive, timid strangers who merely ask
the community to allow them to pursue their practically harmless, so-called
aberrant behavior, their little hot wet private acts of sexual deviation
without the police and society cracking down upon them. We are not sex fiends!
We do not rape as good soldiers do. We are unhappy, mild, dog-eyed gentlemen,
sufficiently well integrated to control our urge in the presence of adults, but
ready to give years and years of life for one chance to touch a nymphet.
Emphatically, no killers are we. Poets never kill. Oh, my poor Charlotte, do
not hate me in your eternal heaven among an eternal alchemy of asphalt and
rubber and metal and stone-but thank God, not water, not water!
Nonetheless it
was a very close shave, speaking quite objectively. And now comes the point of
my perfect-crime parable.
We sat down on
our towels in the thirsty sun. She looked around, loosened her bra, and turned
over on her stomach to give her back a chance to be feasted upon. She said she
loved me. She sighed deeply. She extended one arm and groped in the pocket of
her robe for her cigarettes. She sat up and smoked. She examined her right
shoulder. She kissed me heavily with open smoky mouth. Suddenly, down the sand
bank behind us, from under the bushes and pines, a stone rolled, then another.
"Those
disgusting prying kids," said Charlotte, holding up her big bra to her
breast and turning prone again. "I shall have to speak about that to Peter
Krestovski."
From the
debouchment of the trail came a rustle, a footfall, and Jean Farlow marched
down with her easel and things.
"You scared
us," said Charlotte.
Jean said she had
been up there, in a place of green concealment, spying on nature (spies are
generally shot), trying to finish a lakescape, but it was no good, she had no
talent whatever (which was quite true)-"And have you ever tried painting,
Humbert?" Charlotte, who was a little jealous of Jean, wanted to know if
John was coming.
He was. He was
coming home for lunch today. He had dropped her on the way to Parkington and
should be picking her up any time now. It was a grand morning. She always felt
a traitor to Cavall and Melampus for leaving them roped on such gorgeous days.
She sat down on the white sand between Charlotte and me. She wore shorts. Her
long brown legs were about as attractive to me as those of a chestnut mare. She
showed her gums when she smiled.
"I almost
put both of you into my lake," she said. "I even noticed something
you overlooked. You [addressing Humbert] had your wrist watch on in, yes, sir,
you had."
"Waterproof,"
said Charlotte softly, making a fish mouth.
Jean took my
wrist upon her knee and examined Charlotte's gift, then put back Humbert's hand
on the sand, palm up.
"You could
see anything that way," remarked Charlotte coquettishly.
Jean sighed.
"I once saw," she said, "two children, male and female, at
sunset, right here, making love. Their shadows were giants. And I told you
about Mr. Tomson at daybreak. Next time I expect to see fat old Ivor in the
ivory. He is really a freak, that man. Last time he told me a completely indecent
story about his nephew. It appears-"
"Hullo
there," said John's voice.
21
My habit of being
silent when displeased or, more exactly, the cold and scaly quality of my
displeased silence, used to frighten Valeria out of her wits. She used to
whimper and wail, saying "Ce qui me rend folle, c'est que je ne sais
 quoi tu penses quand tu es comme Úa." I tried being silent
with Charlotte-and she just chirped on, or chucked my silence under the chin.
An astonishing woman! I would retire to my former room, now a regular
"studio," mumbling I had after all a learned opus to write, and
cheerfully Charlotte went on beautifying the home, warbling on the telephone
and writing letters. From my window, through the lacquered shiver of poplar
leaves, I could see her crossing the street and contentedly mailing her letter
to Miss Phalen's sister.
The week of
scattered showers and shadows which elapsed after our last visit to the
motionless sands of Hourglass Lake was one of the gloomiest I can recall. Then
came two or three dim rays of hope-before the ultimate sunburst.
It occurred to me
that I had a fine brain in beautiful working order and that I might as well use
it. If I dared not meddle with my wife's plans for her daughter (getting warmer
and browner every day in the fair weather of hopeless distance), I could surely
devise some general means to assert myself in a general way that might be later
directed toward a particular occasion. One evening, Charlotte herself provided
me with an opening.
"I have a
surprise for you," she said looking at me with fond eyes over a spoonful
of soup. "In the fall we two are going to England."
I swallowed my
spoonful, wiped my lips with pink paper (Oh, the cool rich linens of Mirana
Hotel!) and said:
"I have also
a surprise for you, my dear. We two are not going to England."
"Why, what's
the matter?" she said, looking-with more surprise than I had counted
upon-at my hands (I was involuntarily folding and tearing and crushing and
tearing again the innocent pink napkin). My smiling face set her somewhat at
ease, however.
"The matter
is quite simple," I replied. "Even in the most harmonious of
households, as ours is, not all decisions are taken by the female partner.
There are certain things that the husband is there to decide. I can well
imagine the thrill that you, a healthy American gal, must experience at
crossing the Atlantic on the same ocean liner with Lady Bumble-or Sam Bumble,
the Frozen Meat King, or a Hollywood harlot. And I doubt not that you and I
would make a pretty ad for the Traveling Agency when portrayed looking-you,
frankly starry-eyed, I, controlling my envious admiration-at the Palace
Sentries, or Scarlet Guards, or Beaver Eaters, or whatever they are called. But
I happen to be allergic to Europe, including merry old England. As you well
know, I have nothing but very sad associations with the Old and rotting World.
No colored ads in your magazines will change the situation."
"My
darling," said Charlotte. "I really-"
"No, wait a
minute. The present matter is only incidental. I am concerned with a general
trend. When you wanted me to spend my afternoons sunbathing on the Lake instead
of doing my work, I gladly gave in and became a bronzed glamour boy for your
sake, instead of remaining a scholar and, well, an educator. When you lead me
to bridge and bourbon with the charming Farlows, I meekly follow. No, please,
wait. When you decorate your home, I do not interfere with your schemes. When
you decide-when you decide all kinds of matters, I may be in complete, or in partial,
let us say, disagreement-but I say nothing. I ignore the particular. I cannot
ignore the general. I love being bossed by you, but every game has its rules. I
am not cross. I am not cross at all. Don't do that. But I am one half of this
household, and have a small but distinct voice."
She had come to
my side and had fallen on her knees and was slowly, but very vehemently,
shaking her head and clawing at my trousers. She said she had never realized.
She said I was her ruler and her god. She said Louise had gone, and let us make
love right away. She said I must forgive her or she would die.
This little
incident filled me with considerable elation. I told her quietly that it was a
matter not of asking forgiveness, but of changing one's ways; and I resolved to
press my advantage and spend a good deal of time, aloof and moody, working at
my book-or at least pretending to work.
The "studio
bed" in my former room had long been converted into the sofa it had always
been at heart, and Charlotte had warned me since the very beginning of our
cohabitation that gradually the room would be turned into a regular
"writer's den." A couple of days after the British Incident, I was
sitting in a new and very comfortable easy chair, with a large volume in my
lap, when Charlotte rapped with her ring finger and sauntered in. How different
were her movements from those of my Lolita, when she used to visit me in her
dear dirty blue jeans, smelling of orchards in nymphetland; awkward and fey,
and dimly depraved, the lower buttons of her shirt unfastened. Let me tell you,
however, something. Behind the brashness of little Haze, and the poise of big Haze,
a trickle of shy life ran that tasted the same, that murmured the same. A great
French doctor once told my father that in near relatives the faintest gastric
gurgle has the same "voice."
So Charlotte
sauntered in. She felt all was not well between us. I had pretended to fall
asleep the night before, and the night before that, as soon as we had gone to
bed, and had risen at dawn.
Tenderly, she
inquired if she were not "interrupting."
"Not at the
moment," I said, turning volume C of the Girls' Encyclopedia around to
examine a picture printed "bottom-edge" as printers say.
Charlotte went up
to a little table of imitation mahogany with a drawer. She put her hand upon
it. The little table was ugly, no doubt, but it had done nothing to her.
"I have
always wanted to ask you," she said (businesslike, not coquettish),
"why is this thing locked up? Do you want it in this room? It's so
abominably uncouth."
"Leave it
alone," I said. I was Camping in Scandinavia.
"Is there a
key?"
"Hidden."
"Oh, Hum . .
. "
"Locked up
love letters."
She gave me one
of those wounded-doe looks that irritated me so much, and then, not quite
knowing if I was serious, or how to keep up the conversation, stood for several
slow pages (Campus, Canada, Candid Camera, Candy) peering at the window pane
rather than through it, drumming upon it with sharp almond-and-rose
fingernails.
Presently (at
Canoeing or Canvasback) she strolled up to my chair and sank down, tweedily,
weightily, on its arm, inundating me with the perfume my first wife had used.
"Would his lordship like to spend the fall here?" she asked, pointing
with her little finger at an autumn view in a conservative Eastern State.
"Why?" (very distinctly and slowly). She shrugged. (Probably Harold
used to take a vacation at that time. Open season. Conditional reflex on her
part.)
"I think I
know where that is," she said, still pointing. "There is a hotel I
remember, Enchanted Hunters, quaint, isn't it? And the food is a dream. And
nobody bothers anybody."
She rubbed her
cheek against my temple. Valeria soon got over that.
"Is there
anything special you would like for dinner, dear? John and Jean will drop in
later."
I answered with a
grunt. She kissed me on my underlip, and, brightly saying she would bake a cake
(a tradition subsisted from my lodging days that I adored her cakes), left me
to my idleness.
Carefully putting
down the open book where she had sat (it attempted to send forth a rotation of
waves, but an inserted pencil stopped the pages), I checked the hiding place of
the key: rather self-consciously it lay under the old expensive safety razor I
had used before she bought me a much better and cheaper one. Was it the perfect
hiding place-there, under the razor, in the groove of its velvet-lined case?
The case lay in a small trunk where I kept various business papers. Could I
improve upon this? Remarkable how difficult it is to conceal things-especially
when one's wife keeps monkeying with the furniture.
22
I think it was
exactly a week after our last swim that the noon mail brought a reply from the
second Miss Phalen. The lady wrote she had just returned to St. Algebra from
her sister's funeral. "Euphemia had never been the same after breaking
that hip." As to the matter of Mrs. Humbert's daughter, she wished to
report that it was too late to enroll her this year; but that she, the
surviving Phalen, was practically certain that if Mr. and Mrs. Humbert brought
Dolores over in January, her admittance might be arranged.
Next day, after
lunch, I went to see "our" doctor, a friendly fellow whose perfect
bedside manner and complete reliance on a few patented drugs adequately masked
his ignorance of, and indifference to, medical science. The fact that Lo would
have to come back to Ramsdale was a treasure of anticipation. For this event I
wanted to be fully prepared. I had in fact begun my campaign earlier, before
Charlotte made that cruel decision of hers. I had to be sure when my lovely
child arrived, that very night, and then night after night, until St. Algebra
took her away from me, I would possess the means of putting two creatures to
sleep so thoroughly that neither sound nor touch should rouse them. Throughout
most of July I had been experimenting with various sleeping powders, trying
them out on Charlotte, a great taker of pills. The last dose I had given her
(she thought it was a tablet of mild bromides-to anoint her nerves) had knocked
her out for four solid hours. I had put the radio at full blast. I had blazed
in her face an olisbos-like flashlight. I had pushed her, pinched her, prodded
her-and nothing had disturbed the rhythm of her calm and powerful breathing.
However, when I had done such a simple thing as kiss her, she had awakened at
once, as fresh and strong as an octopus (I barely escaped). This would not do,
I thought; had to get something still safer. At first, Dr. Byron did not seem
to believe me when I said his last prescription was no match for my insomnia.
He suggested I try again, and for a moment diverted my attention by showing me
photographs of his family. He had a fascinating child of Dolly's age; but I saw
through his tricks and insisted he prescribe the mightiest pill extant. He
suggested I play golf, but finally agreed to give me something that, he said,
"would really work"; and going to a cabinet, he produced a vial of
violet-blue capsules banded with dark purple at one end, which, he said, had
just been placed on the market and were intended not for neurotics whom a draft
of water could calm if properly administered, but only for great sleepless artists
who had to die for a few hours in order to live for centuries. I love to fool
doctors, and though inwardly rejoicing, pocketed the pills with a skeptical
shrug. Incidentally, I had had to be careful with him. Once, in another
connection, a stupid lapse on my part made me mention my last sanatorium, and I
thought I saw the tips of his ears twitch. Being not at all keen for Charlotte
or anybody else to know that period of my past, I had hastily explained that I
had once done some research among the insane for a novel. But no matter; the
old rogue certainly had a sweet girleen.
I left in great
spirits. Steering my wife's car with one finger, I contentedly rolled homeward.
Ramsdale had, after all, lots of charm. The cicadas whirred; the avenue had
been freshly watered. Smoothly, almost silkily, I turned down into our steep
little street. Everything was somehow so right that day. So blue and green. I
knew the sun shone because my ignition key was reflected in the windshield; and
I knew it was exactly half past three because the nurse who came to massage
Miss Opposite every afternoon was tripping down the narrow sidewalk in her
white stockings and shoes. As usual, Junk's hysterical setter attacked me as I
rolled downhill, and as usual, the local paper was lying on the porch where it
had just been hurled by Kenny.
The day before I
had ended the regime of aloofness I had imposed upon myself, and now uttered a
cheerful homecoming call as I opened the door of the living room. With her
ream-white nape and bronze bun to me, wearing the yellow blouse and maroon
slacks she had on when I first met her, Charlotte sat at the corner bureau
writing a letter. My hand still on the doorknob, I repeated my hearty cry. Her
writing hand stopped. She sat still for a moment; then she slowly turned in her
chair and rested her elbow on its curved back. Her face, disfigured by her
emotion, was not a pretty sight as she stared at my legs and said:
"The Haze
woman, the big bitch, the old cat, the obnoxious mamma, the-the old stupid Haze
is no longer your dupe. She has-she has . . ."
My fair accuser
stopped, swallowing her venom and her tears. Whatever Humbert Humbert said-or
attempted to say-is inessential. She went on:
"You're a
monster. You're a detestable, abominable, criminal fraud. If you come near-I'll
scream out the window. Get back!"
Again, whatever
H.H. murmured may be omitted, I think.
"I am
leaving tonight. This is all yours. Only you'll never, never see that miserable
brat again. Get out of this room."
Reader, I did. I
went up to the ex-semi-studio. Arms akimbo, I stood for a moment quite still
and self-composed, surveying from the threshold the raped little table with its
open drawer, a key hanging from the lock, four other household keys on the
table top. I walked across the landing into the Humberts' bedroom, and calmly
removed my diary from under her pillow into my pocket. Then I started to walk
downstairs, but stopped half-way: she was talking on the telephone which
happened to be plugged just outside the door of the living room. I wanted to
hear what she was saying: she canceled an order for something or other, and
returned to the parlor. I rearranged my respiration and went through the
hallway to the kitchen. There, I opened a bottle of Scotch. She could never
resist Scotch. Then I walked into the dining room and from there, through the
half-open door, contemplated Charlotte's broad back.
"You are
ruining my life and yours," I said quietly. "Let us be civilized
people. It is all your hallucination. You are crazy, Charlotte. The notes you
found were fragments of a novel. Your name and hers were put in by mere chance.
Just because they came handy. Think it over. I shall bring you a drink."
She neither
answered nor turned, but went on writing in a scorching scrawl whatever she was
writing. A third letter, presumably (two in stamped envelopes were already laid
out on the desk). I went back to the kitchen.
I set out two
glasses (to St. Algebra? to Lo?) and opened the refrigerator. It roared at me
viciously while I removed the ice from its heart. Rewrite. Let her read it
again. She will not recall details. Change, forge. Write a fragment and show it
to her or leave it lying around. Why do faucets sometimes whine so horribly? A
horrible situation, really. The little pillow-shaped blocks of ice-pillows for
polar teddy bear, Lo-emitted rasping, crackling, tortured sounds as the warm
water loosened them in their cells. I bumped down the glasses side by side. I
poured in the whiskey and a dram of soda. She had tabooed my pin. Bark and bang
went the icebox. Carrying the glasses, I walked through the dining room and
spoke through the parlor door which was a fraction ajar, not quite space enough
for my elbow.
"I have made
you a drink," I said.
She did not
answer, the mad bitch, and I placed the glasses on the sideboard near the
telephone, which had started to ring.
"Leslie
speaking. Leslie Tomson," said Leslie Tomson who favored a dip at dawn.
"Mrs. Humbert, sir, has been run over and you'd better come quick."
I answered,
perhaps a bit testily, that my wife was safe and sound, and still holding the
receiver, I pushed open the door and said:
"There's
this man saying you've been killed, Charlotte."
But there was no
Charlotte in the living room.
23
I rushed out. The
far side of our steep little street presented a peculiar sight. A big black
glossy Packard had climbed Miss Opposite's sloping lawn at an angle from the
sidewalk (where a tartan laprobe had dropped in a heap), and stood there,
shining in the sun, its doors open like wings, its front wheels deep in
evergreen shrubbery. To the anatomical right of this car, on the trim turn of
the lawn-slope, an old gentleman with a white mustache,
well-dressed-double-breasted gray suit, polka-dotted bow-tie-lay supine, his
long legs together, like a death-size wax figure. I have to put the impact of
an instantaneous vision into a sequence of words; their physical accumulation
in the page impairs the actual flash, the sharp unity of impression: Rug-heap,
car, old man-doll, Miss O.'s nurse running with a rustle, a half-empty tumbler
in her hand, back to the screened porch-where the propped-up, imprisoned,
decrepit lady herself may be imagined screeching, but not loud enough to drown
the rhythmical yaps of the Junk setter walking from group to group-from a bunch
of neighbors already collected on the sidewalk, near the bit of checked stuff,
and back to the car which he had finally run to earth, and then to another
group on the lawn, consisting of Leslie, two policemen and a sturdy man with
tortoise shell glasses. At this point, I should explain that the prompt
appearance of the patrolmen, hardly more than a minute after the accident, was
due to their having been ticketing the illegally parked cars in a cross lane
two blocks down the grade; that the fellow with the glasses was Frederick
Beale, Jr., driver of the Packard; that his 79-year-old father, whom the nurse
had just watered on the green bank where he lay-a banked banker so to speak-was
not in a dead faint, but was comfortably and methodically recovering from a
mild heart attack or its possibility; and, finally, that the laprobe on the
sidewalk (where she had so often pointed out to me with disapproval the crooked
green cracks) concealed the mangled remains of Charlotte Humbert who had been
knocked down and dragged several feet by the Beale car as she was hurrying
across the street to drop three letters in the mailbox, at the corner of Miss
Opposite's lawn. These were picked up and handed to me by a pretty child in a
dirty pink frock, and I got rid of them by clawing them to fragments in my
trouser pocket.
Three doctors and
the Farlows presently arrived on the scene and took over. The widower, a man of
exceptional self-control, neither wept nor raved. He staggered a bit, that he
did; but he opened his mouth only to impart such information or issue such
directions as were strictly necessary in connection with the identification,
examination and disposal of a dead woman, the top of her head a porridge of
bone, brains, bronze hair and blood. The sun was still a blinding red when he
was put to bed in Dolly's room by his two friends, gentle John and dewy-eyed
Jean; who, to be near, retired to the Humberts' bedroom for the night; which,
for all I know, they may not have spent as innocently as the solemnity of the
occasion required.
I have no reason
to dwell, in this very special memoir, on the pre-funeral formalities that had
to be attended to, or on the funeral itself, which was as quiet as the marriage
had been. But a few incidents pertaining to those four or five days after
Charlotte's simple death, have to be noted.
My first night of
widowhood I was so drunk that I slept as soundly as the child who had slept in
that bed. Next morning I hastened to inspect the fragments of letters in my
pocket. They had got too thoroughly mixed up to be sorted into three complete
sets. I assumed that ". . . and you had better find it because I cannot
buy . . . " came from a letter to Lo; and other fragments seemed to point
to Charlotte's intention of fleeing with Lo to Parkington, or even back to
Pisky, lest the vulture snatch her precious lamb. Other tatters and shreds
(never had I thought I had such strong talons) obviously referred to an
application not to St. A. but to another boarding school which was said to be
so harsh and gray and gaunt in its methods (although supplying croquet under
the elms) as to have earned the nickname of "Reformatory for Young
Ladies." Finally, the third epistle was obviously addressed to me. I made
out such items as ". . . after a year of separation we may . . . "
". . . oh, my dearest, oh my . . . " ". . . worse than if it had
been a woman you kept . . ." ". . . or, maybe, I shall die . .
." But on the whole my gleanings made little sense; the various fragments
of those three hasty missives were as jumbled in the palms of my hands as their
elements had been in poor Charlotte's head.
That day John had
to see a customer, and Jean had to feed her dogs, and so I was to be deprived
temporarily of my friends' company. The dear people were afraid I might commit
suicide if left alone, and since no other friends were available (Miss Opposite
was incommunicado, the McCoos were busy building a new house miles away, and
the Chatfields had been recently called to Maine by some family trouble of
their own), Leslie and Louise were commissioned to keep me company under the
pretense of helping me to sort out and pack a multitude of orphaned things. In
a moment of superb inspiration I showed the kind and credulous Farlows (we were
waiting for Leslie to come for his paid tryst with Louise) a little photograph
of Charlotte I had found among her affairs. From a boulder she smiled through
blown hair. It had been taken in April 1934, a memorable spring. While on a
business visit to the States, I had had occasion to spend several months in
Pisky. We met-and had a mad love affair. I was married, alas, and she was
engaged to Haze, but after I returned to Europe, we corresponded through a
friend, now dead. Jean whispered she had heard some rumors and looked at the
snapshot, and, still looking, handed it to John, and John removed his pipe and
looked at lovely and fast Charlotte Becker, and handed it back to me. Then they
left for a few hours. Happy Louise was gurgling and scolding her swain in the
basement.
hardly had the
Farlows gone than a blue-chinned cleric called-and I tried to make the
interview as brief as was consistent with neither hurting his feelings nor
arousing his doubts. Yes, I would devote all my life to the child's welfare.
Here, incidentally, was a little cross that Charlotte Becker had given me when
we were both young. I had a female cousin, a respectable spinster in New York.
There we would find a good private school for Dolly. Oh, what a crafty Humbert!
For the benefit
of Leslie and Louise who might (and did) report it to John and Jean I made a
tremendously loud and beautifully enacted long-distance call and simulated a
conversation with Shirley Holmes. When John and Jean returned, I completely
took them in by telling them, in a deliberately wild and confused mutter, that
Lo had gone with the intermediate group on a five-day hike and could not be
reached.
"Good
Lord," said Jean, "what shall we do?"
John said it was
perfectly simple-he would get the Climax police to find the hikers-it would not
take them an hour. In fact, he knew the country and-
"Look,"
he continued, "why don' I drive there right now, and you may sleep with
Jean"-(he did not really add that but Jean supported his offer so
passionately that it might be implied).
I broke down. I
pleaded with John to let things remain the way they were. I said I could not
bear to have the child all around me, sobbing, clinging to me, she was so
high-strung, the experience might react on her future, psychiatrists have
analyzed such cases. There was a sudden pause.
"Well, you
are the doctor," said John a little bluntly. "But after all I was
Charlotte's friend and adviser. One would like to know what you are going to do
about the child anyway."
"John,"
cried Jean, "she is his child, not Harold Haze's. Don't you understand?
Humbert is Dolly's real father."
"I
see," said John. "I am sorry. Yes. I see. I did not realize that. It
simplifies matters, of course. And whatever you feel is right."
The distraught
father went on to say he would go and fetch his delicate daughter immediately
after the funeral, and would do his best to give her a good time in totally
different surroundings, perhaps a trip to New Mexico or California-granted, of
course, he lived.
So artistically
did I impersonate the calm of ultimate despair, the hush before some crazy
outburst, that the perfect Farlows removed me to their house. They had a good
cellar, as cellars go in this country; and that was helpful, for I feared
insomnia and a ghost.
Now I must
explain my reasons for keeping Dolores away. Naturally, at first, when
Charlotte had just been eliminated and I re-entered the house a free father,
and gulped down the two whiskey-and-sodas I had prepared, and topped them with
a pint or two of my "pin," and went to the bathroom to get away from
neighbors and friends, there was but one thing in my mind and pulse-namely, the
awareness that a few hours hence, warm, brown-haired, and mine, mine, mine,
Lolita would be in my arms, shedding tears that I would kiss away faster than
they could well. But as I stood wide-eyed and flushed before the mirror, John
Farlow tenderly tapped to inquire if I was okay-and I immediately realized it
would be madness on my part to have her in the house with all those busybodies
milling around and scheming to take her away from me. Indeed, unpredictable Lo
herself might-who knows?-show some foolish distrust of me, a sudden repugnance,
vague fear and the like-and gone would be the magic prize at the very instant
of triumph.
Speaking of
busybodies, I had another visitor-friend Beale, the fellow who eliminated my
wife. Stodgy and solemn, looking like a kind of assistant executioner, with his
bulldog jowls, small black eyes, thickly rimmed glasses and conspicuous
nostrils, he was ushered in by John who then left us, closing the door upon us,
with the utmost tact. Suavely saying he had twins in my stepdaughter's class,
my grotesque visitor unrolled a large diagram he had made of the accident. It
was, as my stepdaughter would have put it, "a beaut," with all kinds
of impressive arrows and dotted lines in varicolored inks. Mrs. H.H.'s
trajectory was illustrated at several points by a series of those little
outline figures-doll-like wee career girl or WAC-used in statistics as visual aids.
Very clearly and conclusively, this route came into contact with a boldly
traced sinuous line representing two consecutive swerves-one which the Beale
car made to avoid the Junk dog (dog not shown), and the second, a kind of
exaggerated continuation of the first, meant to avert the tragedy. A very black
cross indicated the spot where the trim little outline figure had at last come
to rest on the sidewalk. I looked for some similar mark to denote the place on
the embankment where my visitor's huge wax father had reclined, but there was
none. That gentleman, however, had signed the document as a witness underneath
the name of Leslie Tomson, Miss Opposite and a few other people.
With his
hummingbird pencil deftly and delicately flying from one point to another,
Frederick demonstrated his absolute innocence and the recklessness of my wife:
while he was in the act of avoiding the dog, she slipped on the freshly watered
asphalt and plunged forward whereas she should have flung herself not forward
but backward (Fred showed how by a jerk of his padded shoulder). I said it was
certainly not his fault, and the inquest upheld my view.
Breathing
violently though jet-black tense nostrils, he shook his head and my hand; then,
with an air of perfect savoir vivre and gentlemanly generosity, he offered to
pay the funeral-home expenses. He expected me to refuse his offer. With a
drunken sob of gratitude I accepted it. This took him aback. Slowly,
incredulously, he repeated what he had said. I thanked him again, even more
profusely than before.
In result of that
weird interview, the numbness of my soul was for a moment resolved. And no
wonder! I had actually seen the agent of fate. I had palpated the very flesh of
fate-and its padded shoulder. A brilliant and monstrous mutation had suddenly
taken place, and here was the instrument. Within the intricacies of the pattern
(hurrying housewife, slippery pavement, a pest of a dog, steep grade, big car,
baboon at its wheel), I could dimly distinguish my own vile contribution. Had I
not been such a fool-or such an intuitive genius-to preserve that journal,
fluids produced by vindictive anger and hot shame would not have blinded
Charlotte in her dash to the mailbox. But even had they blinded her, still
nothing might have happened, had not precise fate, that synchronizing phantom,
mixed within its alembic the car and the dog and the sun and the shade and the
wet and the weak and the strong and the stone. Adieu, Marlene! Fat fate's
formal handshake (as reproduced by Beale before leaving the room) brought me
out of my torpor; and I wept. Ladies and gentlemen of the jury-I wept.
24
The elms and the
poplars were turning their ruffled backs to a sudden onslaught of wind, and a
black thunderhead loomed above Ramsdale's white church tower when I looked
around me for the last time. For unknown adventures I was leaving the livid
house where I had rented a room only ten weeks before. The shades-thrifty,
practical bamboo shades-were already down. On porches or in the house their
rich textures lend modern drama. The house of heaven must seem pretty bare
after that. A raindrop fell on my knuckles. I went back into the house for
something or other while John was putting my bags into the car, and then a
funny thing happened. I do not know if in these tragic notes I have
sufficiently stressed the peculiar "sending" effect that the writer's
good looks-pseudo-Celtic, attractively simian, boyishly manly-had on women of
every age and environment. Of course, such announcements made in the first person
may sound ridiculous. But every once in a while I have to remind the reader of
my appearance much as a professional novelist, who has given a character of his
some mannerism or a dog, has to go on producing that dog or that mannerism
every time the character crops up in the course of the book. There may be more
to it in the present case. My gloomy good looks should be kept in the mind's
eye if my story is to be properly understood. Pubescent Lo swooned to Humbert's
charm as she did to hiccuppy music; adult Lotte loved me with a mature,
possessive passion that I now deplore and respect more than I care to say. Jean
Farlow, who was thirty-one and absolutely neurotic, had also apparently
developed a strong liking for me. She was handsome in a carved-Indian sort of way,
with a burnt sienna complexion. Her lips were like large crimson polyps, and
when she emitted her special barking laugh, she showed large dull teeth and
pale gums.
She was very
tall, wore either slacks with sandals or billowing skirts with ballet slippers,
drank any strong liquor in any amount, had had two miscarriages, wrote stories
about animals, painted, as the reader knows, lakescapes, was already nursing
the cancer that was to kill her at thirty-three, and was hopelessly
unattractive to me. Judge then of my alarm when a few seconds before I left
(she and I stood in the hallway) Jean, with her always trembling fingers, took
me by the temples, and, tears in her bright blue eyes, attempted,
unsuccessfully, to glue herself to my lips.
"Take care
of yourself," she said, "kiss your daughter for me."
A clap of thunder
reverberated throughout the house, and she added:
"Perhaps,
somewhere, some day, at a less miserable time, we may see each other
again" (Jean, whatever, wherever you are, in minus time-space or plus
soul-time, forgive me all this, parenthesis included).
And presently I
was shaking hands with both of them in the street, the sloping street, and
everything was whirling and flying before the approaching white deluge, and a
truck with a mattress from Philadelphia was confidently rolling down to an
empty house, and dust was running and writhing over the exact slab of stone
where Charlotte, when they lifted the laprobe for me, had been revealed, curled
up, her eyes intact, their black lashes still wet, matted, like yours, Lolita.
25
One might suppose
that with all blocks removed and a prospect of delirious and unlimited delights
before me, I would have mentally sunk back, heaving a sigh of delicious relief.
Eh bine, pas du tout! Instead of basking in the beams of smiling Chance, I was
obsessed by all sorts of purely ethical doubts and fears. For instance: might
it not surprise people that Lo was so consistently debarred from attending
festive and funeral functions in her immediate family? You remember-we had not
had her at our wedding. Or another thing: granted it was the long hairy arm of
Coincidence that had reached out to remove an innocent woman, might Coincidence
not ignore in a heathen moment what its twin lamb had done and hand Lo a
premature note of commiseration? True, the accident had been reported only by
the Ramsdale Journal-not by the Parkington Recorder or the Climax Herald, Camp
Q being in another state, and local deaths having no federal news interest; but
I could not help fancying that somehow Dolly Haze had been informed already,
and that at the very time I was on my way to fetch her, she was being driven to
Ramsdale by friends unknown to me. Still more disquieting than all these
conjectures and worries, was the fact that Humbert Humbert, a brand-new
American citizen of obscure European origin, had taken no steps toward becoming
the legal guardian of his dead wife's daughter (twelve years and seven months
old). Would I ever dare take those steps? I could not repress a shiver whenever
I imagined my nudity hemmed in by mysterious statutes in the merciless glare of
the Common Law.
My scheme was a
marvel of primitive art: I would whizz over to Camp Q, tell Lolita her mother
was about to undergo a major operation at an invented hospital, and then keep
moving with my sleepy nymphet from inn to inn while her mother got better and
better and finally died. But as I traveled campward my anxiety grew. I could
not bear to think I might not find Lolita there-or find, instead, another,
scared, Lolita clamoring for some family friend: not the Farlows, thank God-she
hardly knew them-but might there not be other people I had not reckoned with?
Finally, I decided to make the long-distance call I had simulated so well a few
days before. It was raining hard when I pulled up in a muddy suburb of
Parkington, just before the Fork, one prong of which bypassed the city and led
to the highway which crossed the hills to Lake Climax and Camp Q. I flipped off
the ignition and for quite a minute sat in the car bracing myself for that
telephone call, and staring at the rain, at the inundated sidewalk, at a
hydrant: a hideous thing, really, painted a thick silver and red, extending the
red stumps of its arms to be varnished by the rain which like stylized blood
dripped upon its argent chains. No wonder that stopping beside those nightmare
cripples is taboo. I drove up to a gasoline station. A surprise awaited me when
at last the coins had satisfactorily clanked down and a voice was allowed to
answer mine.
Holmes, the camp
mistress, informed me that Dolly had gone Monday (this was Wednesday) on a hike
in the hills with her group and was expected to return rather late today. Would
I care to come tomorrow, and what was exactly-Without going into details, I
said that her mother was hospitalized, that the situation was grave, that the
child should not be told it was grave and that she should be ready to leave
with me tomorrow afternoon. The two voices parted in an explosion of warmth and
good will, and through some freak mechanical flaw all my coins came tumbling
back to me with a hitting-the-jackpot clatter that almost made me laugh despite
the disappointment at having to postpone bliss. One wonders if this sudden
discharge, this spasmodic refund, was not correlated somehow, in the mind of
McFate, with my having invented that little expedition before ever learning of
it as I did now.
What next? I
proceeded to the business center of Parkington and devoted the whole afternoon
(the weather had cleared, the wet town was like silver-and-glass) to buying
beautiful things for Lo. Goodness, what crazy purchases were prompted by the
poignant predilection Humbert had in those days for check weaves, bright
cottons, frills, puffed-out short sleeves, soft pleats, snug-fitting bodices
and generously full skirts! Oh Lolita, you are my girl, as Vee was Poe's and
Bea Dante's, and what little girl would not like to whirl in a circular skirt
and scanties? Did I have something special in mind? coaxing voices asked me.
Swimming suits? We have them in all shades. Dream pink, frosted aqua, glans
mauve, tulip red, oolala black. What about paysuits? Slips? No slips. Lo and I
loathed slips.
One of my guides
in these matters was an anthropometric entry made by her mother on Lo's twelfth
birthday (the reader remembers that Know-Your-Child book). I had the feeling
that Charlotte, moved by obscure motives of envy and dislike, had added an inch
here, a pound there; but since the nymphet had no doubt grown somewhat in the
last seven months, I thought I could safely accept most of those January
measurements: hip girth, twenty-nine inches; thigh girth (just below the
gluteal sulcus), seventeen; calf girth and neck circumference, eleven; chest
circumference, twenty-seven; upper arm girth, eight; waist, twenty-three;
stature, fifty-seven inches; weight, seventy-eight pounds; figure, linear;
intelligence quotient, 121; vermiform appendix present, thank God.
Apart from
measurements, I could of course visualize Lolita with hallucinational lucidity;
and nursing as I did a tingle on my breastbone at the exact spot her silky top
had come level once or twice with my heart; and feeling as I did her warm
weight in my lap (so that, in a sense, I was always "with Lolita" as
a woman is "with child"), I was not surprised to discover later that
my computation had been more or less correct. Having moreover studied a
midsummer sale book, it was with a very knowing air that I examined various
pretty articles, sport shoes, sneakers, pumps of crushed kid for crushed kids.
The painted girl in black who attended to all these poignant needs of mine
turned parental scholarship and precise description into commercial euphemisms,
such as "petite." Another, much older woman, in a white dress, with a
pancake make-up, seemed to be oddly impressed by my knowledge of junior
fashions; perhaps I had a midget for mistress; so, when shown a skirt with
"cute" pockets in front, I intentionally put a naive male question
and was rewarded by a smiling demonstration of the way the zipper worked in the
back of the skirt. I had next great fun with all kinds of shorts and
briefs-phantom little Lolitas dancing, falling, daisying all over the counter.
We rounded up the deal with some prim cotton pajamas in popular butcher-boy
style. Humbert, the popular butcher.
There is a touch
of the mythological and the enchanted in those large stores where according to
ads a career girl can get a complete desk-to-date wardrobe, and where little
sister can dream of the day when her wool jersey will make the boys in the back
row of the classroom drool. Life-size plastic figures of snubbed-nosed children
with dun-colored, greenish, brown-dotted, faunish faces floated around me. I
realized I was the only shopper in that rather eerie place where I moved about
fishlike, in a glaucous aquarium. I sensed strange thoughts form in the minds
of the languid ladies that escorted me from counter to counter, from rock ledge
to seaweed, and the belts and the bracelets I chose seemed to fall from siren
hands into transparent water. I bought an elegant valise, had my purchases put
into it, and repaired to the nearest hotel, well pleased with my day.
Somehow, in
connection with that quiet poetical afternoon of fastidious shopping, I
recalled the hotel or inn with the seductive name of The Enchanted Hunters with
Charlotte had happened to mention shortly before my liberation. With the help
of a guidebook I located it in the secluded town of Briceland, a four-hour
drive from Lo's camp. I could have telephoned but fearing my voice might go out
of control and lapse into coy croaks of broken English, I decided to send a
wire ordering a room with twin beds for the next night. What a comic, clumsy,
wavering Prince Charming I was! How some of my readers will laugh at me when I
tell them the trouble I had with the wording of my telegram! What should I put:
Humbert and daughter? Humberg and small daughter? Homberg and immature girl?
Homburg and child? The droll mistake-the "g" at the end-which
eventually came through may have been a telepathic echo of these hesitations of
mine.
And then, in the
velvet of a summer night, my broodings over the philer I had with me! Oh
miserly Hamburg! Was he not a very Enchanted Hunter as he deliberated with
himself over his boxful of magic ammunition? To rout the monster of insomnia
should he try himself one of those amethyst capsules? There were forty of them,
all told-forty nights with a frail little sleeper at my throbbing side; could I
rob myself of one such night in order to sleep? Certainly not: much too
precious was each tiny plum, each microscopic planetarium with its live
startdust. Oh, let me be mawkish for the nonce! I am so tired of being cynical.
26
This daily
headache in the opaque air of this tombal jail is disturbing, but I must
persevere. Have written more than a hundred pages and not got anywhere yet. My
calendar is getting confused. That must have been around August 15, 1947. Don't
think I can go on. Heart, head-everything. Lolita, Lolita, Lolita, Lolita,
Lolita, Lolita, Lolita, Lolita, Lolita, Lolita. Repeat till the page is full,
printer.
27
Still in
Parkington. Finally, I did achieve an hour's slumber-from which I was aroused
by gratuitous and horribly exhausting congress with a small hairy
hermaphrodite, a total stranger. By then it was six in the morning, and it
suddenly occurred to me it might be a good thing to arrive at the camp earlier
than I had said. From Parkington I had still a hundred miles to go, and there
would be more than that to the Hazy Hills and Briceland. If I had said I would
come for Dolly in the afternoon, it was only because my fancy insisted on
merciful night falling as soon as possible upon my impatience. But now I
foresaw all kinds of misunderstandings and was all a-jitter lest delay might
give her the opportunity of some idle telephone call to Ramsdale. However, when
at 9.30 a.m. I attempted to start, I was confronted by a dead battery, and noon
was nigh when at last I left Parkington.
I reached my
destination around half past two; parked my car in a pine grove where a
green-shirted, redheaded impish lad stood throwing horseshoes in sullen
solitude; was laconically directed by him to an office in a stucco cottage; in
a dying state, had to endure for several minutes the inquisitive commiseration
of the camp mistress, a sluttish worn out female with rusty hair. Dolly she
said was all packed and ready to go. She knew her mother was sick but not
critically. Would Mr. Haze, I mean, Mr. Humbert, care to meet the camp
counselors? Or look at the cabins where the girls live? Each dedicated to a
Disney creature? Or visit the Lodge? Or should Charlie be sent over to fetch
her? The girls were just finishing fixing the Dining Room for a dance. (And perhaps
afterwards she would say to somebody or other: "The poor guy looked like
his own ghost.")
Let me retain for
a moment that scene in all its trivial and fateful detail: hag Holmes writing
out a receipt, scratching her head, pulling a drawer out of her desk, pouring
change into my impatient palm, then neatly spreading a banknote over it with a
bright ". . . and five!"; photographs of girl-children; some gaudy
moth or butterfly, still alive, safely pinned to the wall ("nature
study"); the framed diploma of the camp's dietitian; my trembling hands; a
card produced by efficient Holmes with a report of Dolly Haze's behavior for
July ("fair to good; keen on swimming and boating"); a sound of trees
and birds, and my pounding heart . . . I was standing with my back to the open
door, and then I felt the blood rush to my head as I heart her respiration and
voice behind me. She arrived dragging and bumping her heavy suitcase.
"Hi!" she said, and stood still, looking at me with sly, glad eyes,
her soft lips parted in a slightly foolish but wonderfully endearing smile.
She was thinner
and taller, and for a second it seemed to me her face was less pretty than the
mental imprint I had cherished for more than a month: her cheeks looked
hollowed and too much lentigo camouflaged her rosy rustic features; and that
first impression (a very narrow human interval between two tiger heartbeats)
carried the clear implication that all widower Humbert had to do, wanted to do,
or would do, was to give this wan-looking though sun-colored little orphan au
yeux battus (and even those plumbaceous umbrae under her eyes bore freckles) a
sound education, a healthy and happy girlhood, a clean home, nice girl-friends
of her age among whom (if the fates deigned to repay me) I might find, perhaps,
a pretty little Magdlein for Herr Doktor Humbert alone. But "in a
wink," as the Germans say, the angelic line of conduct was erased, and I
overtook my prey (time moves ahead of our fancies!), and she was my Lolita
again-in fact, more of my Lolita than ever. I let my hand rest on her warm
auburn head and took up her bag. She was all rose and honey, dressed in her
brightest gingham, with a pattern of little red apples, and her arms and legs
were of a deep golden brown, with scratches like tiny dotted lines of
coagulated rubies, and the ribbed cuffs of her white socks were turned down at
the remembered level, and because of her childish gait, or because I had
memorized her as always wearing heelless shoes, her saddle oxfords looked
somehow too large and too high-heeled for her. Good-bye, Camp Q, merry Camp Q.
Good-bye, plain unwholesome food, good-bye Charlie boy. In the hot car she
settled down beside me, slapped a prompt fly on her lovely knee; then, her
mouth working violently on a piece of chewing gum, she rapidly cranked down the
window on her side and settled back again. We sped through the striped and
speckled forest.
"How's
Mother?" she asked dutifully.
I said the
doctors did not quite know yet what the trouble was. Anyway, something
abdominal. Abominable? No, abdominal. We would have to hang around for a while.
The hospital was in the country, near the gay town of Lepingville, where a
great poet had resided in the early nineteenth century and where we would take
in all the shows. She thought it a peachy idea and wondered if we could make
Lepingville before nine p.m.
"We should
be at Briceland by dinner time," I said, "and tomorrow we'll visit
Lepingville. How was the hike? Did you have a marvelous time at the camp?"
"Uh-huh."
"Sorry to
leave?"
"Un-un."
"Talk,
Lo-don't grunt. Tell me something."
"What thing,
Dad?" (she let the word expand with ironic deliberation).
"Any old
thing."
"Okay, if I
call you that?" (eyes slit at the road).
"Quite."
"It's a
sketch, you know. When did you fall for my mummy?"
"Some day,
Lo, you will understand many emotions and situations, such as for example the
harmony, the beauty of spiritual relationship."
"Bah!"
said the cynical nymphet.
Shallow lull in
the dialogue, filled with some landscape.
"Look, Lo,
at all those cows on that hillside."
"I think
I'll vomit if I look at a cow again."
"You know, I
missed you terribly, Lo."
"I did not.
Fact I've been revoltingly unfaithful to you, but it does not matter one bit,
because you've stopped caring for me, anyway. You drive much faster than my
mummy, mister."
I slowed down
from a blind seventy to a purblind fifty.
"Why do you
think I have ceased caring for you, Lo?"
"Well, you
haven't kissed me yet, have you?"
Inly dying, inly
moaning, I glimpsed a reasonably wide shoulder of road ahead, and bumped and
wobbled into the weeds. Remember she is only a child, remember she is only-
Hardly had the
car come to a standstill than Lolita positively flowed into my arms. Not
daring, not daring let myself go-not even daring let myself realize that this
(sweet wetness and trembling fire) was the beginning of the ineffable life
which, ably assisted by fate, I had finally willed into being-not daring really
kiss her, I touched her hot, opening lips with the utmost piety, tiny sips,
nothing salacious; but she, with an impatient wriggle, pressed her mouth to
mine so hard that I felt her big front teeth and shared in the peppermint taste
of her saliva. I knew, of course, it was but an innocent game on her part, a
bit of backfisch foolery in imitation of some simulacrum of fake romance, and
since (as the psychotherapist, as well as the rapist, will tell you) the limits
and rules of such girlish games are fluid, or at least too childishly subtle
for the senior partner to grasp-I was dreadfully afraid I might go too far and
cause her to start back in revulsion and terror. And, as above all I was
agonizingly anxious to smuggle her into the hermetic seclusion of The Enchanged
Hunters, and we had still eighty miles to go, blessed intuition broke our
embrace-a split second before a highway patrol car drew up alongside.
Florid and
beetle-browed, its driver stared at me:
"Happen to
see a blue sedan, same make as yours, pass you before the junction?"
"Why,
no."
"We
didn't," said Lo, eagerly leaning across me, her innocent hand on my legs,
"but are you sure it was blue, because-"
The cop (what
shadow of us was he after?) gave the little colleen his best smile and went
into a U-turn.
We drove on.
"The
fruithead!" remarked Lo. "He should have nabbed you."
"Why me for
heaven's sake?"
"Well, the
speed in this bum state is fifty, and-No, don't slow down, you, dull bulb. He's
gone now."
"We have
still quite a stretch," I said, "and I want to get there before dark.
So be a good girl."
"Bad, bad
girl," said Lo comfortably. "Juvenile delickwent, but frank and
fetching. That light was red. I've never seen such driving."
We rolled
silently through a silent townlet.
"Say,
wouldn't Mother be absolutely mad if she found out we were lovers?"
"Good Lord,
Lo, let us not talk that way."
"But we are
lovers, aren't we?"
"Not that I
know of. I think we are going to have some more rain. Don't you want to tell me
of those little pranks of yours in camp?"
"You talk
like a book, Dad."
"What have
you been up to? I insist you tell me."
"Are you
easily shocked?"
"No. Go
on."
"Let us turn
into a secluded lane and I'll tell you."
"Lo, I must
seriously ask you not to play the fool. Well?"
"Well-I
joined in all the activities that were offered."
"Ensuite?"
"Ansooit, I
was taught to live happily and richly with others and to develop a wholesome
personality. Be a cake, in fact."
"Yes. I saw
something of the sort in the booklet."
"We loved
the sings around the fire in the big stone fireplace or under the darned stars,
where every girl merged her own spirit of happiness with the voice of the
group."
"Your memory
is excellent, Lo, but I must trouble you to leave out the swear words. Anything
else?"
"The Girl
Scout's motto," said Lo rhapsodically, "is also mine. I fill my life
with worthwhile deeds such as-well, never mind what. My duty is-to be useful. I
am a friend to male animals. I obey orders. I am cheerful. That was another
police car. I am thrifty and I am absolutely filthy in thought, word and
deed."
"Now I do
hope that's all, you witty child."
"Yep. That's
all. No-wait a sec. We baked in a reflector oven. Isn't that terrific?"
"Well,
that's better."
"We washed
zillions of dishes. 'Zillions' you know is schoolmarm's slang for
many-many-many-many. Oh yes, last but not least, as Mother says-Now let me
see-what was it? I know we made shadowgraphs. Gee, what fun."
"C'est bien
tout?"
"C'est.
Except for one little thing, something I simply can't tell you without blushing
all over."
"Will you
tell it me later?"
"If we sit
in the dark and you let me whisper, I will. Do you sleep in your old room or in
a heap with Mother?"
"Old room.
Your mother may have to undergo a very serious operation, Lo."
"Stop at
that candy bar, will you," said Lo.
Sitting on a high
stool, a band of sunlight crossing her bare brown forearm, Lolita was served an
elaborate ice-cream concoction topped with synthetic syrup. It was erected and
brought her by a pimply brute of a boy in a greasy bow-tie who eyed my fragile
child in her thin cotton frock with carnal deliberation. My impatience to reach
Briceland and The Enchanted Hunters was becoming more than I could endure.
Fortunately she dispatched the stuff with her usual alacrity.
"How much
cash do you have?" I asked.
"Not a
cent," she said sadly, lifting her eyebrows, showing me the empty inside
of her money purse.
"This is a
matter that will be mended in due time," I rejoined archly. "Are you
coming?"
"Say, I
wonder if they have a washroom."
"you are not
going there," I said Firmly. "It is sure to be a vile place. Do come
on."
She was on the
whole an obedient little girl and I kissed her in the neck when we got back
into the car.
"Don't do
that," she said looking at me with unfeigned surprise. "Don't drool
on me. You dirty man."
She rubbed the
spot against her raised shoulder.
"Sorry,"
I murmured. "I'm rather fond of you, that's all."
We drove under a
gloomy sky, up a winding road, then down again.
"Well, I'm
also sort of fond of you," said Lolita in a delayed soft voice, with a
sort of sigh, and sort of settled closer to me.
(Oh, my Lolita,
we shall never get there!)
Dusk was
beginning to saturate pretty little Briceland, its phony colonial architecture,
curiosity sops and imported shade trees, when we drove through the weakly
lighted streets in search of the Enchanted Hunters. The air, despite a steady
drizzle beading it, was warm and green, and a queue of people, mainly children
and old men, had already formed before the box office of a movie house,
dripping with jewel-fires.
"Oh, I want
to see that picture. Let's go right after dinner. Oh, let's!"
"We
might," chanted Humbert-knowing perfectly well, the sly tumescent devil,
that by nine, when his show began, she would be dead in his arms.
"Easy!"
cried Lo, lurching forward, as an accursed truck in front of us, its backside
carbuncles pulsating, stopped at a crossing.
If we did not get
to the hotel soon, immediately, miraculously, in the very next block, I felt I
would lose all control over the Haze jalopy with its ineffectual wipers and
whimsical brakes; but the passers-by I applied to for directions were either
strangers themselves or asked with a frown "Enchanted what?" as if I
were a madman; or else they went into such complicated explanations, with
geometrical gestures, geographical generalities and strictly local clues (. . .
then bear south after you hit the court-house. . .) that I could not help
losing my way in the maze of their well-meaning gibberish. Lo, whose lovely
prismatic entrails had already digested the sweetmeat, was looking forward to a
big meal and had begun to fidget. As to me, although I had long become used to
a kind of secondary fate (McFate's inept secretary, so to speak) pettily
interfering with the boss's generous magnificent plan-to grind and grope
through the avenues of Briceland was perhaps the most exasperating ordeal I had
yet faced. In later months I could laugh at my inexperience when recalling the
obstinate boyish way in which I had concentrated upon that particular inn with
its fancy name; for all along our route countless motor courts proclaimed their
vacancy in neon lights, ready to accommodate salesmen, escaped convicts,
impotents, family groups, as well as the most corrupt and vigorous couples. Ah,
gentle drivers gliding through summer's black nights, what frolics, what twists
of lust, you might see from your impeccable highways if Kumfy Kabins were
suddenly drained of their pigments and became as transparent as boxes of glass!
The miracle I
hankered for did happen after all. A man and a girl, more or less conjoined in
a dark car under dripping trees, told us we were in the heart of The Park, but
had only to turn left at the next traffic light and there we would be. We did
not see any next traffic light-in fact, The Park was as black as the sins it
concealed-but soon after falling under the smooth spell of a nicely graded
curve, the travelers became aware of a diamond glow through the mist, then a
gleam of lakewater appeared-and there it was, marvelously and inexorably, under
spectral trees, at the top of a graveled drive-the pale palace of The Enchanted
Hunters.
A row of parked
cars, like pigs at a trough, seemed at first sight to forbid access; but then,
by magic, a formidable convertible, resplendent, rubious in the lighted rain,
came into motion-was energetically backed out by a broad-shouldered driver-and
we gratefully slipped into the gap it had left. I immediately regretted my haste
for I noticed that my predecessor had now taken advantage of a garage-like
shelter nearby where there was ample space for another car; but I was too
impatient to follow his example.
"Wow! Looks
swank," remarked my vulgar darling squinting at the stucco as she crept
out into the audible drizzle and with a childish hand tweaked loose the
frock-fold that had struck in the peach-cleft-to quote Robert Browning. Under
the arclights enlarged replicas of chestnut leaves plunged and played on white
pillars. I unlocked the trunk compartment. A hunchbacked and hoary Negro in a
uniform of sorts took our bags and wheeled them slowly into the lobby. It was
full of old ladies and clergy men. Lolita sank down on her haunches to caress a
pale-faced, blue-freckled, black-eared cocker spaniel swooning on the floral
carpet under her hand-as who would not, my heart-while I cleared my throat
through the throng to the desk. There a bald porcine old man-everybody was old
in that old hotel-examined my features with a polite smile, then leisurely
produced my (garbled) telegram, wrestled with some dark doubts, turned his head
to look at the clock, and finally said he was very sorry, he had held the room
with the twin beds till half past six, and now it was gone. A religious convention,
he said, had clashed with a flower show in Briceland, and-"The name,"
I said coldly, "is not Humberg and not Humbug, but Herbert, I mean
Humbert, and any room will do, just put in a cot for my little daughter. She is
ten and very tired."
The pink old
fellow peered good-naturedly at Lo-still squatting, listening in profile, lips
parted, to what the dog's mistress, an ancient lady swathed in violet veils,
was telling her from the depths of a cretonne easy chair.
Whatever doubts
the obscene fellow had, they were dispelled by that blossom-like vision. He
said, he might still have a room, had one, in fact-with a double bed. As to the
cot-
"Mr. Potts,
do we have any cots left?" Potts, also pink and bald, with white hairs
growing out of his ears and other holes, would see what could be done. He came
and spoke while I unscrewed my fountain pen. Impatient Humbert!
"Our double
beds are really triple," Potts cozily said tucking me and my kid in.
"One crowded night we had three ladies and a child like yours sleep
together. I believe one of the ladies was a disguised man [my static].
However-would there be a spare cot in 49, Mr. Swine?
"I think it
went to the Swoons," said Swine, the initial old clown.
"We'll
manage somehow," I said. "My wife may join us later-but even then, I
suppose, we'll manage."
The two pink pigs
were now among my best friends. In the slow clear hand of crime I wrote: Dr.
Edgar H. Humbert and daughter, 342 Lawn Street, Ramsdale. A key (342!) was
half-shown to me (magician showing object he is about to palm)-and handed over
to Uncle tom. Lo, leaving the dog as she would leave me some day, rose from her
haunches; a raindrop fell on Charlotte's grave; a handsome young Negress
slipped open the elevator door, and the doomed child went in followed by her
throat-clearing father and crayfish Tom with the bags.
Parody of a hotel
corridor. Parody of silence and death.
"Say, it's
our house number," said cheerful Lo.
There was a
double bed, a mirror, a double bed in the mirror, a closet door with mirror, a
bathroom door ditto, a blue-dark window, a reflected bed there, the same in the
closet mirror, two chairs, a glass-topped table, two bedtables, a double bed: a
big panel bed, to be exact, with a Tuscan rose chenille spread, and two frilled,
pink-shaded nightlamps, left and right.
I was tempted to
place a five-dollar bill in that sepia palm, but thought the largesse might be
misconstrued, so I placed a quarter. Added another. He withdrew. Click. Enfin
seuls.
"Are we
going to sleep in one room?" said Lo, her features working in that dynamic
way they did-not cross or disgusted (though plain on the brink of it) but just
dynamic-when she wanted to load a question with violent significance.
"I've asked
them to put in a cot. Which I'll use if you like."
"You are
crazy," said Lo.
"Why, my
darling?"
"Because, my
dahrling, when dahrling Mother finds out she'll divorce you and strangle
me."
Just dynamic. Not
really taking the matter too seriously.
"Now look
here," I said, sitting down, while she stood, a few feet away from me, and
stared at herself contentedly, not unpleasantly surprised at her own
appearance, filling with her own rosy sunshine the surprised and pleased
closet-door mirror.
"Look here,
Lo. Let's settle this once for all. For all practical purposes I am your
father. I have a feeling of great tenderness for you. In your mother's absence
I am responsible for your welfare. We are not rich, and while we travel, we
shall be obliged-we shall be thrown a good deal together. Two people sharing
one room, inevitably enter into a kind-how shall I say-a kind-"
"The word is
incest," said Lo-and walked into the closet, walked out again with a young
golden giggle, opened the adjoining door, and after carefully peering inside
with her strange smoky eyes lest she make another mistake, retired to the
bathroom.
I opened the
window, tore off my sweat-drenched shirt, changed, checked the pill vial in my
coat pocket, unlocked the-
She drifted out.
I tried to embrace her: casually, a bit of controlled tenderness before dinner.
She said:
"Look, let's cut out the kissing game and get something to eat."
It was then that
I sprang my surprise.
Oh, what a dreamy
pet! She walked up to the open suitcase as if stalking it from afar, at a kind
of slow-motion walk, peering at that distant treasure box on the luggage
support. (Was there something wrong, I wondered, with those great gray eyes of
hers, or were we both plunged in the same enchanted mist?) She stepped up to
it, lifting her rather high-heeled feet rather high, and bending her beautiful
boy-knees while she walked through dilating space with the lentor of one
walking under water or in a flight dream. Then she raised by the armlets a
copper-colored, charming and quite expensive vest, very slowly stretching it
between her silent hands as if she were a bemused bird-hunter holding his
breath over the incredible bird he spreads out by the tips of its flaming
wings. Then (while I stood waiting for her) she pulled out the slow snake of a
brilliant belt and tried it on.
Then she crept
into my waiting arms, radiant, relaxed, caressing me with her tender,
mysterious, impure, indifferent, twilight eyes-for all the world, like the
cheapest of cheap cuties. For that is what nymphets imitate-while we moan and
die.
"What's the
katter with misses?" I muttered (word-control gone) into her hair.
"If you must
know," she said, "you do it the wrong way."
"Show, wight
ray."
"All in good
time," responded the spoonerette.
Seva ascendes,
pulsata, brulans, kizelans, dementissima. Elevator clatterans, pausa,
clatterans, populus in corridoro. Hanc nisi mors mihi adimet nemo! Juncea
puellula, jo pensavo fondissime, nobserva nihil quidquam; but, of course, in
another moment I might have committed some dreadful blunder; fortunately, she
returned to the treasure box.
From the
bathroom, where it took me quite a time to shift back into normal gear for a
humdrum purpose, I heard, standing, drumming, retaining my breath, my Lolita's
"oo's" and "gee's" of girlish delight.
She had used the
soap only because it was sample soap.
"Well, come
on, my dear, if you are as hungry as I am."
And so to the
elevator, daughter swinging her old white purse, father walking in front (nota
bene: never behind, she is not a lady). As we stood (now side by side) waiting
to be taken down, she threw back her head, yawned without restraint and shook
her curls.
"When did
they make you get up at that camp?"
"Half-past-"
she stifled another yawn-"six"-yawn in full with a shiver of all her
frame. "Half-past," she repeated, her throat filling up again.
The dining room
met us with a smell of fried fat and a faded smile. It was a spacious and
pretentious place with maudlin murals depicting enchanted hunters in various
postures and states of enchantment amid a medley of pallid animals, dryads and
trees. A few scattered old ladies, two clergymen, and a man in a sports coat
were finishing their meals in silence. The dining room closed at nine, and the
green-clad, poker-faced serving girls were, happily, in a desperate hurry to
get rid of us.
"Does not he
look exactly, but exactly, like Quilty?" said Lo in a soft voice, her
sharp brown elbow not pointing, but visibly burning to point, at the lone diner
in the loud checks, in the far corner of the room.
"Like our
fat Ramsdale dentist?"
Lo arrested the
mouthful of water she had just taken, and put down her dancing glass.
"Course
not," she said with a splutter of mirth. "I meant the writer fellow
in the Dromes ad."
Oh, Fame! Oh,
Femina!
When the dessert
was plunked down-a huge wedge of cherry pie for the young lady and vanilla ice
cream her protector, most of which she expeditiously added to her pie-I
produced a small vial containing Papa's Purple Pills. As I look back at those
seasick murals, at that strange and monstrous moment, I can only explain my
behavior then by the mechanism of that dream vacuum wherein revolves a deranged
mind; but at the time, it all seemed quite simple and inevitable to me. I
glanced around, satisfied myself that the last diner had left, removed the
stopped, and with the utmost deliberation tipped the philter into my palm. I
had carefully rehearsed before a mirror the gesture of clapping my empty hand
to my open mouth and swallowing a (fictitious) pill. As I expected, she pounced
upon the vial with its plump, beautifully colored capsules loaded with Beauty's
Sleep.
"Blue!"
she exclaimed. "Violet blue. What are they made of?"
"Summer
skies," I said, "and plums and figs, and the grapeblood of emperors."
"No,
seriously-please."
"Oh, just
purpills. Vitamin X. Makes one strong as an ox or an ax. Want to try one?"
Lolita stretched
out her hand, nodding vigorously.
I had hoped the
drug would work fast. It certainly did. She had had a long long day, she had
gone rowing in the morning with Barbara whose sister was Waterfront Director,
as the adorable accessible nymphet now started to tell me in between suppressed
palate-humping yawns, growing in volume-oh, how fast the magic potion
worked!-and had been active in other ways too. The movie that had vaguely
loomed in her mind was, of course, by the time we watertreaded out of the
dining room, forgotten. As we stood in the elevator, she leaned against me,
faintly smiling-wouldn't you like me to tell you-half closing her dark-lidded
eyes. "Sleepy, huh?" said Uncle Tom who was bringing up the quiet
Franco-Irish gentleman and his daughter as well as two withered women, experts
in roses. They looked with sympathy at my frail, tanned, tottering, dazed
rosedarling. I had almost to carry her into our room. There, she sat down on
the edge of the bed, swaying a little, speaking in dove-dull, long-drawn tones.
"If I tell
you-if I tell you, will you promise [sleepy, so sleepy-head lolling, eyes going
out], promise you won't make complaints?"
"Later, Lo.
Now go to bed. I'll leave you here, and you go to bed. Give you ten
minutes."
"Oh, I've
been such a disgusting girl," she went on, shaking her hair, removing with
slow fingers a velvet hair ribbon. "Lemme tell you-"
"Tomorrow,
Lo. Go to bed, go to bed-for goodness sake, to bed."
I pocketed the
key and walked downstairs.
28
Gentlewomen of
the jury! Bear with me! Allow me to take just a tiny bit of your precious time.
So this was le grand moment. I had left my Lolita still sitting on the edge of
the abysmal bed, drowsily raising her foot, fumbling at the shoelaces and
showing as she did so the nether side of her thigh up to the crotch of her
panties-she had always been singularly absentminded, or shameless, or both, in
matters of legshow. This, then, was the hermetic vision of her which I had
locked in-after satisfying myself that the door carried no inside bolt. The
key, with its numbered dangler of carved wood, became forthwith the weighty
sesame to a rapturous and formidable future. It was mine, it was part of my hot
hairy fist. In a few minutes-say, twenty, say half-an-hour, sicher its sicher
as my uncle Gustave used to say-I would let myself into that "342"
and find my nymphet, my beauty and bride, imprisoned in her crystal sleep.
Jurors! If my happiness could have talked, it would have filled that genteel
hotel with a deafening roar. And my only regret today is that I did not quietly
deposit key "342" at the office, and leave the town, the country, the
continent, the hemisphere,-indeed, the globe-that very same night.
Let me explain. I
was not unduly disturbed by her self-accusatory innuendoes. I was still firmly
resolved to pursue my policy of sparing her purity by operating only in the
stealth of night, only upon a completely anesthetized little nude. Restraint
and reverence were still my motto-even if that "purity"
(incidentally, thoroughly debunked by modern science) had been slightly damaged
through some juvenile erotic experience, no doubt homosexual, at that accursed
camp of hers. Of course, in my old-fashioned, old-world way, I, Jean-Jacques
Humbert, had taken for granted, when I first met her, that she was as
unravished as the stereotypical notion of "normal child" had been
since the lamented end of the Ancient World B.C. and its fascinating practices.
We are not surrounded in our enlighted era by little slave flowers that can be
casually plucked between business and bath as they used to be in the days of
the Romans; and we do not, as dignified Orientals did in still more luxurious
times, use tiny entertainers fore and aft between the mutton and the rose
sherbet. The whole point is that the old link between the adult world and the
child world has been completely severed nowadays by new customs and new laws.
Despite my having dabbled in psychiatry and social work, I really knew very
little about children. After all, Lolita was only twelve, and no matter what
concessions I made to time and place-even bearing in mind the crude behavior of
American schoolchildren-I still was under the impression that whatever went on among
those brash brats, went on at a later age, and in a different environment.
Therefore (to retrieve the thread of this explanation) the moralist in me
by-passed the issue by clinging to conventional notions of what twelve-year-old
girls should be. The child therapist in me (a fake, as most of them are-but no
matter) regurgitated neo-Freudian hash and conjured up a dreaming and
exaggerating Dolly in the "latency" period of girlhood. Finally, the
sensualist in me (a great and insane monster) had no objection to some
depravity in his prey. But somewhere behind the raging bliss, bewildered
shadows conferred-and not to have heeded them, this is what I regret! Human
beings, attend! I should have understood that Lolita had already proved to be
something quite different from innocent Annabel, and that the nymphean evil
breathing through every pore of the fey child that I had prepared for my secret
delectation, would make the secrecy impossible, and the delectation lethal. I
should have known (by the signs made to me by something in Lolita-the real
child Lolita or some haggard angel behind her back) that nothing but pain and
horror would result from the expected rapture. Oh, winged gentlemen of the
jury!
And she was mine,
she was mine, the key was in my fist, my fist was in my pocket, she was mine.
In the course of evocations and schemes to which I had dedicated so many
insomnias, I had gradually eliminated all the superfluous blur, and by stacking
level upon level of translucent vision, had evolved a final picture. Naked,
except for one sock and her charm bracelet, spread-eagled on the bed where my
philter had felled her-so I foreglimpsed her; a velvet hair ribbon was still
clutched in her hand; her honey-brown body, with the white negative image of a
rudimentary swimsuit patterned against her tan, presented to me its pale
breastbuds; in the rosy lamplight, a little pubic floss glistened on its plump
hillock. The cold key with its warm wooden addendum was in my pocket.
I wandered
through various public rooms, glory below, gloom above: for the look of lust
always is gloomy; lust is never quite sure-even when the velvety victim is
locked up in one's dungeon-that some rival devil or influential god may still
not abolish one's prepared triumph. In common parlance, I needed a drink; but
there was no barroom in that venerable place full of perspiring philistines and
period objects.
I drifted to the
Men's Room. There, a person in the clerical black-a "hearty party"
comme on dit-checking with the assistance of Vienna, if it was still there,
inquired of me how I had liked Dr. Boyd's talk, and looked puzzled when I (King
Sigmund the Second) said Boyd was quite a boy. Upon which, I neatly chucked the
tissue paper I had been wiping my sensitive finger tips with into the receptacle
provided for it, and sallied lobbyward. Comfortably resting my elbows on the
counter, I asked Mr. Potts was he quite sure my wife had not telephoned, and
what about that cot? He answered she had not (she was dead, of course) and the
cot would be installed tomorrow if we decided to stay on. From a big crowded
place called The Hunters' Hall came a sound of many voices discussing
horticulture or eternity. Another room, called The Raspberry Room, all bathed
in light, with bright little tables and a large one with
"refreshments," was still empty except for a hostess (that type of
worn woman with a glassy smile and Charlotte's manner of speaking); she floated
up to me to ask if I was Mr. Braddock, because if so, Miss Beard had been
looking for me. "What a name for a woman," I said and strolled away.
In and out of my
heart flowed my rainbow blood. I would give her till half-past-nine. Going back
to the lobby, I found there a change: a number of people in floral dresses or
black cloth had formed little groups here and there, and some elfish chance
offered me the sight of a delightful child of Lolita's age, in Lolita's type of
frock, but pure white, and there was a white ribbon in her black hair. She was
not pretty, but she was a nymphet, and her ivory pale legs and lily neck formed
for one memorable moment a most pleasurable antiphony (in terms of spinal
music) to my desire for Lolita, brown and pink, flushed and fouled. The pale
child noticed my gaze (which was really quite casual and debonair), and being
ridiculously self-conscious, lost countenance completely, rolling her eyes and
putting the back of her hand to her cheek, and pulling at the hem of her skirt,
and finally turning her thin mobile shoulder blades to me in specious chat with
her cow-like mother.
I left the loud
lobby and stood outside, on the white steps, looking at the hundreds of
powdered bugs wheeling around the lamps in the soggy black night, full of
ripple and stir. All I would do-all I would dare do-would amount to such a
trifle . . . Suddenly I was aware that in the darkness next to me there was
somebody sitting in a chair on the pillared porch. I could not really see him
but what gave him away was the rasp of a screwing off, then a discreet gurgle,
then the final note of a placid screwing on. I was about to move away when his
voice addressed me:
"Where the
devil did you get her?"
"I beg your
pardon?"
"I said: the
weather is getting better."
"Seems
so."
"Who's the
lassie?"
"My
daughter."
"You
lie-she's not."
"I beg your
pardon?"
"I said: July
was hot. Where's her mother?"
"Dead."
"I see.
Sorry. By the way, why don't you two lunch with me tomorrow. That dreadful
crowd will be gone by then."
"We'll be
gone too. Good night."
"Sorry. I'm
pretty drunk. Good night. That child of yours needs a lot of sleep. Sleep is a
rose, as the Persians say. Smoke?"
"Not
now."
He struck a
light, but because he was drunk, or because the wind was, the flame illumined
not him but another person, a very old man, one of those permanent guests of
old hotels-and his white rocker. Nobody said anything and the darkness returned
to its initial place. Then I heard the old-timer cough and deliver himself of
some sepulchral mucus.
I left the porch.
At least half an hour in all had elapsed. I ought to have asked for a sip. The
strain was beginning to tell. If a violin string can ache, then I was that
string. But it would have been unseemly to display any hurry. As I made my way
through a constellation of fixed people in one corner of the lobby, there came
a blinding flash-and beaming Dr. Braddock, two orchid-ornamentalized matrons,
the small girl in white, and presumably the bared teeth of Humbert Humbert
sidling between the bridelike lassie and the enchanted cleric, were
immortalized-insofar as the texture and print of small-town newspapers can be
deemed immortal. A twittering group had gathered near the elevator. I again
chose the stairs. 342 was near the fire escape. One could still-but the key was
already in the lock, and then I was in the room.
29
The door of the
lighted bathroom stood ajar; in addition to that, a skeleton glow came though
the Venetian blind from the outside arclights; these intercrossed rays
penetrated the darkness of the bedroom and revealed the following situation.
Clothed in one of
her old nightgowns, my Lolita lay on her side with her back to me, in the
middle of the bed. Her lightly veiled body and bare limbs formed a Z. She had
put both pillows under her dark rousled head; a band of pale light crossed her
top vertebrae.
I seemed to have
shed my clothes and slipped into pajamas with the kind of fantastic
instantaneousness which is implied when in a cinematographic scene the process
of changing is cut; and I had already placed my knee on the edge of the bed
when Lolita turned her head and stared at me though the striped shadows.
Now this was
something the intruder had not expected. The whole pill-spiel (a rather sordid
affair, entre nous soit dit) had had for object a fastness of sleep that a
whole regiment would not have disturbed, and here she was staring at me, and
thickly calling me "Barbara." Barbara, wearing my pajamas which were
much too tight for her, remained poised motionless over the little
sleep-talker. Softly, with a hopeless sigh, Dolly turned away, resuming her
initial position. For at least two minutes I waited and strained on the brink,
like that tailor with his homemade parachute forty years ago when about to jump
from the Eiffel Tower. Her faint breathing had the rhythm of sleep. Finally I
heaved myself onto my narrow margin of bed, stealthily pulled at the odds and
ends of sheets piled up to the south of my stone-cold heels-and Lolita lifted
her head and gaped at me.
As I learned
later from a helpful pharmaceutist, the purple pill did not even belong to the
big and noble family of barbiturates, and though it might have induced sleep in
a neurotic who believed it to be a potent drug, it was too mild a sedative to
affect for any length of time a wary, albeit weary, nymphet. Whether the
Ramsdale doctor was a charlatan or a shrewd old rogue, does not, and did not,
really matter. What mattered, was that I had been deceived. When Lolita opened
her eyes again, I realized that whether or not the drug might work later in the
night, the security I had relied upon was a sham one. Slowly her head turned
away and dropped onto her unfair amount of pillow. I lay quite still on my
brink, peering at her rumpled hair, at the glimmer of nymphet flesh, where half
a haunch and half a shoulder dimly showed, and trying to gauge the depth of her
sleep by the rate of her respiration. Some time passed, nothing changed, and I
decided I might risk getting a little closer to that lovely and maddening
glimmer; but hardly had I moved into its warm purlieus than her breathing was
suspended, and I had the odious feeling that little Dolores was wide awake and
would explode in screams if I touched her with any part of my wretchedness.
Please, reader: no matter your exasperation with the tenderhearted, morbidly
sensitive, infinitely circumspect hero of my book, do not skip these essential
pages! Imagine me; I shall not exist if you do not imagine me; try to discern
the doe in me, trembling in the forest of my own iniquity; let's even smile a
little. After all, there is no harm in smiling. For instance (I almost wrote
"frinstance"), I had no place to rest my head, and a fit of heartburn
(they call those fries "French," grand Dieu!) was added to my
discomfort.
She was again
fast asleep, my nymphet, but still I did not dare to launch upon my enchanted
voyage. La Petite Dormeuse ou l'Amant Ridicule. Tomorrow I would stuff her with
those earlier pills that had so thoroughly numbed her mummy. In the glove
compartment-or in the Gladstone bag? Should I wait a solid hour and then creep
up again? The science of nympholepsy is a precise science. Actual contact would
do it in one second flat. An interspace of a millimeter would do it in ten. Let
us wait.
There is nothing louder
than an American hotel; and, mind you, this was supposed to be a quiet, cozy,
old-fashioned, homey place-"gracious living" and all that stuff. The
clatter of the elevator's gate-some twenty yards northeast of my head but as
clearly perceived as if it were inside my left temple-alternated with the
banging and booming of the machine's various evolutions and lasted well beyond
midnight. Every now and then, immediately east of my left ear (always assuming
I lay on my back, not daring to direct my viler side toward the nebulous haunch
of my bed-mate), the corridor would brim with cheerful, resonant and inept
exclamations ending in a volley of good-nights. When that stopped, a toilet
immediately north of my cerebellum took over. It was a manly, energetic, deep-throated
toilet, and it was used many times. Its gurgle and gush and long afterflow
shook the wall behind me. Then someone in a southern direction was
extravagantly sick, almost coughing out his life with his liquor, and his
toilet descended like a veritable Niagara, immediately beyond our bathroom. And
when finally all the waterfalls had stopped, and the enchanted hunters were
sound asleep, the avenue under the window of my insomnia, to the west of my
wake-a staid, eminently residential, dignified alley of huge trees-degenerated
into the despicable haunt of gigantic trucks roaring through the wet and windy
night.
And less than six
inches from me and my burning life, was nebulous Lolita! After a long stirless
vigil, my tentacles moved towards her again, and this time the creak of the
mattress did not awake her. I managed to bring my ravenous bulk so close to her
that I felt the aura of her bare shoulder like a warm breath upon my cheek. And
then, she sat up, gasped, muttered with insane rapidity something about boats,
tugged at the sheets and lapsed back into her rich, dark, young
unconsciousness. As she tossed, within that abundant flow of sleep, recently
auburn, at present lunar, her arm struck me across the face. For a second I
held her. She freed herself from the shadow of my embrace-doing this not
consciously, not violently, not with any personal distaste, but with the
neutral plaintive murmur of a child demanding its natural rest. And again the
situation remained the same: Lolita with her curved spine to Humbert, Humbert
resting his head on his hand and burning with desire and dyspepsia.
The latter
necessitated a trip to the bathroom for a draft of water which is the best
medicine I know in my case, except perhaps milk with radishes; and when I re-entered
the strange pale-striped fastness where Lolita's old and new clothes reclined
in various attitudes of enchantment on pieces of furniture that seemed vaguely
afloat, my impossible daughter sat up and in clear tones demanded a drink, too.
She took the resilient and cold paper cup in her shadowy hand and gulped down
its contents gratefully, her long eyelashes pointing cupward, and then, with an
infantile gesture that carried more charm than any carnal caress, little Lolita
wiped her lips against my shoulder. She fell back on her pillow (I had
subtracted mine while she drank) and was instantly asleep again.
I had not dared
offer her a second helping of the drug, and had not abandoned hope that the
first might still consolidate her sleep. I started to move toward her, ready
for any disappointment, knowing I had better wait but incapable of waiting. My
pillow smelled of her hair. I moved toward my glimmering darling, stopping or
retreating every time I thought she stirred or was about to stir. A breeze from
wonderland had begun to affect my thoughts, and now they seemed couched in
italics, as if the surface reflecting them were wrinkled by the phantasm of
that breeze. Time and again my consciousness folded the wrong way, my shuffling
body entered the sphere of sleep, shuffled out again, and once or twice I
caught myself drifting into a melancholy snore. Mists of tenderness enfolded
mountains of longing. Now and then it seemed to me that the enchanted prey was
about to meet halfway the enchanted hunter, that her haunch was working its way
toward me under the soft sand of a remote and fabulous beach; and then her
dimpled dimness would stir, and I would know she was farther away from me than
ever.
If I dwell at
some length on the tremors and groupings of that distant night, it is because I
insist upon proving that I am not, and never was, and never could have been, a
brutal scoundrel. The gentle and dreamy regions though which I crept were the
patrimonies of poets-not crime's prowling ground. Had I reached my goal, my
ecstasy would have been all softness, a case of internal combustion of which
she would hardly have felt the heat, even if she were wide awake. But I still
hoped she might gradually be engulfed in a completeness of stupor that would
allow me to taste more than a glimmer of her. And so, in between tentative
approximations, with a confusion of perception metamorphosing her into eyespots
of moonlight or a fluffy flowering bush, I would dream I regained
consciousness, dream I lay in wait.
In the first antemeridian
hours there was a lull in the restless hotel night. Then around four the
corridor toilet cascaded and its door banged. A little after five a
reverberating monologue began to arrive, in several installments, from some
courtyard or parking place. It was not really a monologue, since the speaker
stopped every few seconds to listen (presumably) to another fellow, but that
other voice did not reach me, and so no real meaning could be derived from the
part heard. Its matter-of-fact intonations, however, helped to bring in the
dawn, and the room was already suffused with lilac gray, when several
industrious toilets went to work, one after the other, and the clattering and
whining elevator began to rise and take down early risers and downers, and for
some minutes I miserably dozed, and Charlotte was a mermaid in a greenish tank,
and somewhere in the passage Dr. Boyd said "Good morning to you" in a
fruity voice, and birds were busy in the trees, and then Lolita yawned.
Frigid
gentlewomen of the jury! I had thought that months, perhaps years, would elapse
before I dared to reveal myself to Dolores Haze; but by six she was wide awake,
and by six fifteen we were technically lovers. I am going to tell you something
very strange: it was she who seduced me.
Upon hearing her
first morning yawn, I feigned handsome profiled sleep. I just did not know what
to do. Would she be shocked at finding me by her side, and not in some spare
bed? Would she collect her clothes and lock herself up in the bathroom? Would
she demand to be taken at once to Ramsdale-to her mother's bedside-back to
camp? But my Lo was a sportive lassie. I felt her eyes on me, and when she
uttered at last that beloved chortling note of hers, I knew her eyes had been
laughing. She rolled over to my side, and her warm brown hair came against my
collarbone. I gave a mediocre imitation of waking up. We lay quietly. I gently
caressed her hair, and we gently kissed. Her kiss, to my delirious
embarrassment, had some rather comical refinements of flutter and probe which
made me conclude she had been coached at an early age by a little Lesbian. No
Charlie boy could have taught her that. As if to see whether I had my fill and
learned the lesson, she drew away and surveyed me. Her cheekbones were flushed,
her full underlip glistened, my dissolution was near. All at once, with a burst
of rough glee (the sign of the nymphet!), she put her mouth to my ear-but for
quite a while my mind could not separate into words the hot thunder of her
whisper, and she laughed, and brushed the hair off her face, and tried again,
and gradually the odd sense of living in a brand new, mad new dream world,
where everything was permissible, came over me as I realized what she was
suggesting. I answered I did not know what game she and Charlie had played.
"You mean you have never-?"-her features twisted into a stare of
disgusted incredulity. "You have never-" she started again. I took
time out by nuzzling her a little. "Lay off, will you," she said with
a twangy whine, hastily removing her brown shoulder from my lips. (It was very
curious the way she considered-and kept doing so for a long time-all caresses
except kisses on the mouth or the stark act of love either "romantic
slosh" or "abnormal".)
"You
mean," she persisted, now kneeling above me, "you never did it when
you were a kid?"
"Never,"
I answered quite truthfully.
"Okay,"
said Lolita, "here is where we start."
However, I shall
not bore my learned readers with a detailed account of Lolita's presumption.
Suffice it to say that not a trace of modesty did I perceive in this beautiful
hardly formed young girl whom modern co-education, juvenile mores, the campfire
racket and so forth had utterly and hopelessly depraved. She saw the stark act
merely as part of a youngster's furtive world, unknown to adults. What adults
did for purposes of procreation was no business of hers. My life was handled by
little Lo in an energetic, matter-of-fact manner as if it were an insensate
gadget unconnected with me. While eager to impress me with the world of tough
kids, she was not quite prepared for certain discrepancies between a kid's life
and mine. Pride alone prevented her from giving up; for, in my strange
predicament, I feigned supreme stupidity and had her have her way-at least
while I could still bear it. But really these are irrelevant matters; I am not
concerned with so-called "sex" at all. Anybody can imagine those
elements of animality. A greater endeavor lures me on: to fix once for all the
perilous magic of nymphets.
30
I have to tread
carefully. I have to speak in a whisper. Oh you, veteran crime reporter, you
grave old usher, you once popular policeman, now in solitary confinement after
gracing that school crossing for years, you wretched emeritus read to by a boy!
It would never do, would it, to have you fellows fall madly in love with my
Lolita! had I been a painter, had the management of The Enchanted Hunters lost
its mind one summer day and commissioned me to redecorate their dining room
with murals of my own making, this is what I might have thought up, let me list
some fragments:
There would have
been a lake. There would have been an arbor in flame-flower. There would have
been nature studies-a tiger pursuing a bird of paradise, a choking snake
sheathing whole the flayed trunk of a shoat. There would have been a sultan,
his face expressing great agony (belied, as it were, by his molding caress),
helping a callypygean slave child to climb a column of onyx. There would have
been those luminous globules of gonadal glow that travel up the opalescent
sides of juke boxes. There would have been all kinds of camp activities on the
part of the intermediate group, Canoeing, Coranting, Combing Curls in the
lakeside sun. There would have been poplars, apples, a suburban Sunday. There
would have been a fire opal dissolving within a ripple-ringed pool, a last
throb, a last dab of color, stinging red, smearing pink, a sigh, a wincing
child.
31
I am trying to
describe these things not to relive them in my present boundless misery, but to
sort out the portion of hell and the portion of heaven in that strange, awful,
maddening world-nymphet love. The beastly and beautiful merged at one point,
and it is that borderline I would like to fix, and I feel I fail to do so
utterly. Why?
The stipulation
of the Roman law, according to which a girl may marry at twelve, was adopted by
the Church, and is still preserved, rather tacitly, in some of the United
States. And fifteen is lawful everywhere. There is nothing wrong, say both
hemispheres, when a brute of forty, blessed by the local priest and bloated
with drink, sheds his sweat-drenched finery and thrusts himself up to the hilt
into his youthful bride. "In such stimulating temperate climates [says an
old magazine in this prison library] as St. Louis, Chicago and Cincinnati,
girls mature about the end of their twelfth year." Dolores Haze was born
less than three hundred miles from stimulating Cincinnati. I have but followed
nature. I am nature's faithful hound. Why then this horror that I cannot shake
off? Did I deprive her of her flower? Sensitive gentlewomen of the jury, I was
not even her first lover.
32
She told me the
way she had been debauched. We ate flavorless mealy bananas, bruised peaches
and very palatable potato chips, and die Lleine told me everything. Her voluble
but disjointed account was accompanied by many a droll moue. As I think I have
already observed, I especially remember one wry face on an "ugh!"
basis: jelly-mouth distended sideways and eyes rolled up in a routine blend of
comic disgust, resignation and tolerance for young frailty.
Her astounding
tale started with an introductory mention of her tent-mate of the previous
summer, at another camp, a "very select" one as she put it. That
tent-mate ("quite a derelict character," "half-crazy," but
a "swell kid") instructed her in various manipulations. At first,
loyal Lo refused to tell me her name.
"Was it
Grace Angel?" I asked.
She shook her
head. No, it wasn't it was the daughter of a big shot. He-
"Was it
perhaps Rose Carmine?"
"No, of
course not. Her father-"
"Was it,
then, Agnes Sheridan perchance?"
She swallowed and
shook her head-and then did a double take.
"Say, how
come you know all those kids?"
I explained.
"Well,"
she said. "They are pretty bad, some of that school bunch, but not that
bad. If you have to know, her name was Elizabeth Talbot, she goes now to a
swanky private school, her father is an executive."
I recalled with a
funny pang the frequency with which poor Charlotte used to introduce into party
chat such elegant tidbits as "when my daughter was out hiking last year
with the Talbot girl."
I wanted to know
if either mother learned of those sapphic diversions?
"Gosh
no," exhaled limp Lo mimicking dread and relief, pressing a falsely
fluttering hand to her chest.
I was more
interested, however, in heterosexual experience. She had entered the sixth
grade at eleven, soon after moving to Ramsdale from the Middle West. What did
she mean by "pretty bad"?
Well, the Miranda
twins had shared the same bed for years, and Donald Scott, who was the dumbest
boy in the school, had done it with Hazel Smith in his uncle's garage, and
Kenneth Knight-who was the brightest-used to exhibit himself wherever and
whenever he had a chance, and-
"Let us
switch to Camp Q," I said. And presently I got the whole story.
Barbara Burke, a
sturdy blond, two years older than Lo and by far the camp's best swimmer, had a
very special canoe which she shared with Lo "because I was the only other
girl who could make Willow Island" (some swimming test, I imagine).
Through July, every morning-mark, reader, every blessed morning-Barbara and Lo
would be helped to carry the boat to Onyx or Eryx (two small lakes in the wood)
by Charlie Holmes, the camp mistress' son, aged thirteen-and the only human
male for a couple of miles around (excepting an old meek stone-deaf handyman,
and a farmer in an old Ford who sometimes sold the campers eggs as farmers
will); every morning, oh my reader, the three children would take a short cut
through the beautiful innocent forest brimming with all the emblems of youth,
dew, birdsongs, and at one point, among the luxuriant undergrowth, Lo would be
left as sentinel, while Barbara and the boy copulated behind a bush.
At first, Lo had
refused "to try what it was like," but curiosity and camaraderie
prevailed, and soon she and Barbara were doing it by turns with the silent,
coarse and surly but indefatigable Charlie, who had as much sex appeal as a raw
carrot but sported a fascinating collection of contraceptives which he used to
fish out of a third nearby lake, a considerably larger and more populous one,
called Lake Climax, after the booming young factory town of that name. Although
conceding it was "sort of fun" and "fine for the
complexion," Lolita, I am glad to say, held Charlie's mind and manners in
the greatest contempt. Nor had her temperament been roused by that filthy
fiend. In fact, I think he had rather stunned it, despite the "fun."
By that time it
was close to ten. With the ebb of lust, an ashen sense of awfulness, abetted by
the realistic drabness of a gray neuralgic day, crept over me and hummed within
my temples. Brown, naked, frail Lo, her narrow white buttocks to me, her sulky
face to a door mirror, stood, arms akimbo, feet (in new slippers with pussy-fur
tops) wide apart, and through a forechanging lock tritely mugged at herself in
the glass. From the corridor came the cooing voices of colored maids at work,
and presently there was a mild attempt to open the door of our room. I had Lo
go to the bathroom and take a much-needed soap shower. The bed was a frightful
mess with overtones of potato chips. She tried on a two-piece navy wool, then a
sleeveless blouse with a swirly clathrate skirt, but the first was too tight
and the second too ample, and when I begged her to hurry up (the situation was
beginning to frighten me), Lo viciously sent those nice presents of mine
hurtling into a corner, and put on yesterday's dress. When she was ready at
last, I gave her a lovely new purse of simulated calf (in which I had slipped
quite a few pennies and two mint-bright dimes) and told her to buy herself a
magazine in the lobby.
"I'll be
down in a minute," I said. "And if I were you, my dear, I would not
talk to strangers."
Except for my
poor little gifts, there was not much to pack; but I was forced to devote a
dangerous amount of time (was she up to something downstairs?) to arranging the
bed in such a way as to suggest the abandoned nest of a restless father and his
tomboy daughter, instead of an ex-convict's saturnalia with a couple of fat old
whores. Then I finished dressing and had the hoary bellboy come up for the
bags.
Everything was
fine. There, in the lobby, she sat, deep in an overstuffed blood-red armchair,
deep in a lurid movie magazine. A fellow of my age in tweeds (the genre of the
place had changed overnight to a spurious country-squire atmosphere) was
staring at my Lolita over his dead cigar and stale newspaper. She wore her
professional white socks and saddle oxfords, and that bright print frock with
the square throat; a splash of jaded lamplight brought out the golden down on
her warm brown limbs. There she sat, her legs carelessly highcrossed, and her
pale eyes skimming along the lines with every now and then a blink. Bill's wife
had worshipped him from afar long before they ever met: in fact, she used to
secretly admire the famous young actor as he ate sundaes in Schwab's drugstore.
Nothing could have been more childish than her snubbed nose, freckled face or
the purplish spot on her naked neck where a fairytale vampire had feasted, or
the unconscious movement of her tongue exploring a touch of rosy rash around
her swollen lips; nothing could be more harmless than to read about Jill, an
energetic starlet who made her own clothes and was a student of serious
literature; nothing could be more innocent than the part in that glossy brown
hair with that silky sheen on the temple; nothing could be more naive-But what
sickening envy the lecherous fellow whoever he was-come to think of it, he
resembled a little my Swiss uncle Gustave, also a great admirer of le
dĘcouvert-would have experienced had he known that every nerve in me was
still anointed and ringed with the feel of her body-the body of some immortal
demon disguised as a female child.
Was pink pig Mr.
Swoon absolutely sure my wife had not telephoned? He was. If she did, would he
tell her we had gone on to Aunt Clare's place? He would, indeedie. I settled
the bill and roused Lo from her chair. She read to the car. Still reading, she
was driven to a so-called coffee shop a few blocks south. Oh, she ate all
right. She even laid aside her magazine to eat, but a queer dullness had
replaced her usual cheerfulness. I knew little Lo could be very nasty, so I braced
myself and grinned, and waited for a squall. I was unbathed, unshaven, and had
had no bowel movement. My nerves were a-jangle. I did not like the way my
little mistress shrugged her shoulders and distended her nostrils when I
attempted casual small talk. Had Phyllis been in the know before she joined her
parents in Maine? I asked with a smile. "Look," said Lo making a
weeping grimace, "let us get off the subject." I then tried-also
unsuccessfully, no matter how I smacked my lips-to interest her in the road
map. Our destination was, let me remind my patient reader whose meek temper Lo
ought to have copied, the gay town of Lepingville, somewhere near a
hypothetical hospital. That destination was in itself a perfectly arbitrary one
(as, alas, so many were to be), and I shook in my shoes as I wondered how to
keep the whole arrangement plausible, and what other plausible objectives to
invent after we had taken in all the movies in Lepingville. More and more
uncomfortable did Humbert Feel. It was something quite special, that feeling:
an oppressive, hideous constraint as if I were sitting with the small ghost of
somebody I had just killed.
As she was in the
act of getting back into the car, an expression of pain flitted across Lo's
face. It flitted again, more meaningfully, as she settled down beside me. No
doubt, she reproduced it that second time for my benefit. Foolishly, I asked
her what was the matter. "Nothing, you brute," she replied. "You
what?" I asked. She was silent. Leaving Briceland. Loquacious Lo was
silent. Cold spiders of panic crawled down my back. This was an orphan. This
was a lone child, an absolute waif, with whom a heavy-limbed, foul-smelling
adult had had strenuous intercourse three times that very morning. Whether or
not the realization of a lifelong dream had surpassed all expectation, it had,
in a sense, overshot its mark-and plunged into a nightmare. I had been
careless, stupid, and ignoble. And let me be quite frank: somewhere at the
bottom of that dark turmoil I felt the writhing of desire again, so monstrous
was my appetite for that miserable nymphet. Mingled with the pangs of guilt was
the agonizing through that her mood might prevent me from making love to her
again as soon as I found a nice country road where to park in peace. In other
words, poor Humbert Humbert was dreadfully unhappy, and while steadily and
inanely driving toward Lepingville, he kept racking his brains for some quip,
under the bright wing of which he might dare turn to his seatmate. It was she,
however, who broke the silence:
"Oh, a
squashed squirrel," she said. "What a shame."
"Yes, isn't
it?" (eager, hopeful Hum).
"Let us stop
at the next gas station," Lo continued. "I want to go to the
washroom."
"We shall
stop wherever you want," I said. And then as a lovely, lonely,
supercilious grove (oaks, I thought; American trees at that stage were beyond
me) started to echo greenly the rush of our car, a red and ferny road on our
right turned its head before slanting into the woodland, and I suggested we
might perhaps-
"Drive
on," my Lo cried shrilly.
"Righto.
Take it easy." (Down, poor beast, down.)
I glanced at her.
Thank God, the child was smiling.
"You
chump," she said, sweetly smiling at me. "You revolting creature. I
was a daisy-fresh girl, and look what you've done to me. I ought to call the
police and tell them you raped me. Oh, you dirty, dirty old man."
Was she just
joking? An ominous hysterical note rang through her silly words. Presently,
making a sizzling sound with her lips, she started complaining of pains, said
she could not sit, said I had torn something inside her. The sweat rolled down
my neck, and we almost ran over some little animal or other that was crossing
the road with tail erect, and again my vile-tempered companion called me an
ugly name. When we stopped at the filling station, she scrambled out without a
word and was a long time away. Slowly, lovingly, an elderly friend with a
broken nose wiped my windshield-they do it differently at every place, from
chamois cloth to soapy brush, this fellow used a pink sponge.
She appeared at
last. "Look," she said in that neutral voice that hurt me so,
"give me some dimes and nickels. I want to call mother in that hospital.
What's the number?"
"Get
in," I said. "You can't call that number."
"Why?"
"Get in and
slam the door."
She got in and
slammed the door. The old garage man beamed at her. I swung onto the highway.
"Why can't I
call my mother if I want to?"
"Because,"
I answered, "your mother is dead."
33
In the gay town
of Lepingville I bought her four books of comics, a box of candy, a box of
sanitary pads, two cokes, a manicure set, a travel clock with a luminous dial,
a ring with a real topaz, a tennis racket, roller skates with white high shoes,
field glasses, a portable radio set, chewing gum, a transparent raincoat,
sunglasses, some more garments-swooners, shorts, all kinds of summer frocks. At
the hotel we had separate rooms, but in the middle of the night she came
sobbing into mine, and we made it up very gently. You see, she had absolutely
nowhere else to go.
* PART TWO *
1
It was then that
began our extensive travels all over the States. To any other type of tourist
accommodation I soon grew to prefer the Functional Motel-clean, neat, safe
nooks, ideal places for sleep, argument, reconciliation, insatiable illicit
love. At first, in my dread of arousing suspicion, I would eagerly pay for both
sections of one double unit, each containing a double bed. I wondered what type
of foursome this arrangement was even intended for, since only a pharisaic
parody of privacy could be attained by means of the incomplete partition
dividing the cabin or room into two communicating love nests. By and by, the
very possibilities that such honest promiscuity suggested (two young couples
merrily swapping mates or a child shamming sleep to earwitness primal
sonorities) made me bolder, and every now and then I would take a bed-and-cot
or twin-bed cabin, a prison cell or paradise, with yellow window shades pulled
down to create a morning illusion of Venice and sunshine when actually it was
Pennsylvania and rain.
We came to
know-nous connŮmes, to use a Flaubertian intonation-the stone cottages
under enormous Chateaubriandesque trees, the brick unit, the adobe unit, the
stucco court, on what the Tour Book of the Automobile Association describes as
"shaded" or "spacious" or "landscaped" grounds.
The log kind, finished in knotty pine, reminded Lo, by its golden-brown glaze,
of friend-chicken bones. We held in contempt the plain whitewashed clapboard
Kabins, with their faint sewerish smell or some other gloomy self-conscious
stench and nothing to boast of (except "good beds"), and an unsmiling
landlady always prepared to have her gift (". . . well, I could give you .
. .") turned down.
Nous
connŮmes (this is royal fun) the would-be enticements of their repetitious
names-all those Sunset Motels, U-Beam Cottages, Hillcrest Courts, Pine View
Courts, Mountain View Courts, Skyline Courts, Park Plaza Courts, Green Acres,
Mac's Courts. There was sometimes a special line in the write-up, such as
"Children welcome, pets allowed" (You are welcome, you are allowed).
The baths were mostly tiled showers, with an endless variety of spouting
mechanisms, but with one definitely non-Laodicean characteristic in common, a propensity,
while in use, to turn instantly beastly hot or blindingly cold upon you,
depending on whether your neighbor turned on his cold or his hot to deprive you
of a necessary complement in the shower you had so carefully blended. Some
motels had instructions pasted above the toilet (on whose tank the towels were
unhygienically heaped) asking guests not to throw into its bowl garbage, beer
cans, cartons, stillborn babies; others had special notices under glass, such
as Things to Do (Riding: You will often see riders coming down Main Street on
their way back from a romantic moonlight ride. "Often at 3 a.m.,"
sneered unromantic Lo).
Nous
connŮmes the various types of motor court operators, the reformed
criminal, the retired teacher and the business flop, among the males; and the
motherly, pseudo-ladylike and madamic variants among the females. And sometimes
trains would cry in the monstrously hot and humid night with heartrending and
ominous plangency, mingling power and hysteria in one desperate scream.
We avoided Tourist
Homes, country cousins of Funeral ones, old-fashioned, genteel and showerless,
with elaborate dressing tables in depressingly white-and-pink little bedrooms,
and photographs of the landlady's children in all their instars. But I did
surrender, now and then, to Lo's predilection for "real" hotels. She
would pick out in the book, while I petted her in the parked car in the silence
of a dusk-mellowed, mysterious side-road, some highly recommended lake lodge
which offered all sorts of things magnified by the flashlight she moved over
them, such as congenial company, between-meals snacks, outdoor barbecues-but
which in my mind conjured up odious visions of stinking high school boys in
sweatshirts and an ember-red cheek pressing against hers, while poor Dr. Humbert,
embracing nothing but two masculine knees, would cold-humor his piles on the
damp turf. Most empty to her, too, were those "Colonial" Inns, which
apart from "gracious atmosphere" and picture windows, promised
"unlimited quantities of M-m-m food." Treasured recollections of my
father's palatial hotel sometimes led me to seek for its like in the strange
country we traveled through. I was soon discouraged; but Lo kept following the
scent of rich food ads, while I derived a not exclusively economic kick from
such roadside signs as Timber Hotel, Children under 14 Free. On the other hand,
I shudder when recalling that soi-disant "high-class" resort in a
Midwestern state, which advertised "raid-the-icebox" midnight snacks
and, intrigued by my accent, wanted to know my dead wife's and dead mother's
maiden names. A two-days' stay there cost me a hundred and twenty-four dollars!
And do you remember, Miranda, that other "ultrasmart" robbers' den
with complimentary morning coffee and circulating ice water, and no children
under sixteen (no Lolitas, of course)?
Immediately upon
arrival at one of the plainer motor courts which became our habitual haunts,
she would set the electric fan a-whirr, or induce me to drop a quarter into the
radio, or she would read all the signs and inquire with a whine why she could
not go riding up some advertised trail or swimming in that local pool of warm
mineral water. Most often, in the slouching, bored way she cultivated, Lo would
fall prostrate and abominably desirable into a red springchair or a green
chaise longue, or a steamer chair of striped canvas with footrest and canopy,
or a sling chair, or any other lawn chair under a garden umbrella on the patio,
and it would take hours of blandishments, threats and promises to make her lend
me for a few seconds her brown limbs in the seclusion of the five-dollar room
before undertaking anything she might prefer to my poor joy.
A combination of
naĐvetĘ and deception, of charm and vulgarity, of blue silks and rosy
mirth, Lolita, when she chose, could be a most exasperating brat. I was not
really quite prepared for her fits of disorganized boredom, intense and
vehement griping, her sprawling, droopy, dopey-eyed style, and what is called
goofing off-a kind of diffused clowning which she thought was tough in a boyish
hoodlum way. Mentally, I found her to be a disgustingly conventional little
girl. Sweet hot jazz, square dancing, gooey fudge sundaes, musicals, movie
magazines and so forth-these were the obvious items in her list of beloved things.
The Lord knows how many nickels I fed to the gorgeous music boxes that came
with every meal we had! I still hear the nasal voices of those invisibles
serenading her, people with names like Sammy and Jo and Eddy and Tony and Peggy
and Guy and Patty and Rex, and sentimental song hits, all of them as similar to
my ear as her various candies were to my palate. She believed, with a kind of
celestial trust, any advertisement or advice that that appeared in Movie Love
or Screen Land-Starasil Starves Pimples, or "You better watch out if
you're wearing your shirttails outside your jeans, gals, because Jill says you
shouldn't." If a roadside sign said: Visit Our Gift Shop-we had to visit
it, had to buy its Indian curios, dolls, copper jewelry, cactus candy. The words
"novelties and souvenirs" simply entranced her by their trochaic
lilt. If some cafĘ sign proclaimed Icecold Drinks, she was automatically
stirred, although all drinks everywhere were ice-cold. She it was to whom ads
were dedicated: the ideal consumer, the subject and object of every foul
poster. And she attempted-unsuccessfully-to patronize only those restaurants
where the holy spirit of Huncan Dines had descended upon the cute paper napkins
and cottage-cheese-crested salads.
In those days,
neither she nor I had thought up yet the system of monetary bribes which was to
work such havoc with my nerves and her morals somewhat later. I relied on three
other methods to keep my pubescent concubine in submission and passable temper.
A few years before, she had spent a rainy summer under Miss Phalen's bleary eye
in a dilapidated Appalachian farmhouse that had belonged to some gnarled Haze
or other in the dead past. It still stood among its rank acres of golden rod on
the edge of a flowerless forest, at the end of a permanently muddy road, twenty
miles from the nearest hamlet. Lo recalled that scarecrow of a house, the
solitude, the soggy old pastures, the wind, the bloated wilderness, with an
energy of disgust that distorted her mouth and fattened her half-revealed
tongue. And it was there that I warned her she would dwell with me in exile for
months and years if need be, studying under me French and Latin, unless her
"present attitude" changed. Charlotte, I began to understand you!
A simple child,
Lo would scream no! and frantically clutch at my driving hand whenever I put a
stop to her tornadoes of temper by turning in the middle of a highway with the
implication that I was about to take her straight to that dark and dismal
abode. The farther, however, we traveled away from it west, the less tangible
that menace became, and I had to adopt other methods of persuasion.
Among these, the
reformatory threat is the one I recall with the deepest moan of shame. From the
very beginning of our concourse, I was clever enough to realize that I must
secure her complete co-operation in keeping our relations secret, that it
should become a second nature with her, no matter what grudge she might bear
me, no matter what other pleasure she might seek.
"Come and
kiss your old man," I would say, "and drop that moody nonsense. In
former times, when I was still your dream male [the reader will notice what
pains I took to speak Lo's tongue], you swooned to records of the number one
throb-and-sob idol of your coevals [Lo: "Of my what? Speak English"].
That idol of your pals sounded, you thought, like friend Humbert. But now, I am
just your old man, a dream dad protecting his dream daughter.
"My
chĘre DolorĘs! I want to protect you, dear, from all the horrors that
happen to little girls in coal sheds and alley ways, and alas, comme vous le
savez trop bien, ma gentille, in the blueberry woods during the bluest of
summers. Through thick and thin I will still stay your guardian, and if you are
good, I hope a court may legalize that guardianship before long. Let us,
however, forget, Dolores Haze, so-called legal terminology, terminology that
accepts as rational the term 'lewd and lascivious cohabitation.' I am not a
criminal sexual psychopath taking indecent liberties with a child. The rapist was
Charlie Holmes; I am the therapist-a matter of nice spacing in the way of
distinction. I am your daddum, Lo. Look, I've a learned book here about young
girls. Look, darling, what it says. I quote: the normal girl-normal, mark
you-the normal girl is usually extremely anxious to please her father. She
feels in him the forerunner of the desired elusive male ('elusive' is good, by
Polonius!). The wise mother (and your poor mother would have been wise, had she
lived) will encourage a companionship between father and daughter,
realizing-excuse the corny style-that the girl forms her ideals of romance and
of men from her association with her father. Now, what association does this
cheery book mean-and recommend? I quote again: Among Sicilians sexual relations
between a father and his daughter are accepted as a matter of course, and the
girl who participates in such relationship is not looked upon with disapproval
by the society of which she is part. I'm a great admirer of Sicilians, fine
athletes, fine musicians, fine upright people, Lo, and great lovers. But let's
not digress. Only the other day we read in the newspapers some bunkum about a
middle-aged morals offender who pleaded guilty to the violation of the Mann Act
and to transporting a nine-year-old girl across state lines for immoral
purposes, whatever these are. Dolores darling! You are not nine but almost
thirteen, and I would not advise you to consider yourself my cross-country
slave, and I deplore the Mann Act as lending itself to a dreadful pun, the revenge
that the Gods of Semantics take against tight-zippered Philistines. I am your
father, and I am speaking English, and I love you.
"Finally,
let us see what happens if you, a minor, accused of having impaired the morals
of an adult in a respectable inn, what happens if you complain to the police of
my having kidnapped and raped you? Let us suppose they believe you. A minor
female, who allows a person over twenty-one to know her carnally, involves her
victim into statutory rape, or second-degree sodomy, depending on the
technique; and the maximum penalty is ten years. So, I go to jail. Okay. I go
to jail. But what happens to you, my orphan? Well, you are luckier. You become
the ward of the Department of Public Welfare-which I am afraid sounds a little bleak.
A nice grim matron of the Miss Phalen type, but more rigid and not a drinking
woman, will take away your lipstick and fancy clothes. No more gadding about! I
don't know if you have ever heard of the laws relating to dependent, neglected,
incorrigible and delinquent children. While I stand gripping the bars, you,
happy neglected child, will be given a choice of various dwelling places, all
more or less the same, the correctional school, the reformatory, the juvenile
detention home, or one of those admirable girls' protectories where you knit
things, and sing hymns, and have rancid pancakes on Sundays. You will go there,
Lolita-my Lolita, this Lolita will leave plainer words, if we two are found
out, you will be analyzed and institutionalized, my pet, c'est tout. You will
dwell, my Lolita will dwell (come here, my brown flower) with thirty-nine other
dopes in a dirty dormitory (no, allow me, please) under the supervision of
hideous matrons. This is the situation, this is the choice. Don't you think
that under the circumstances Dolores Haze had better stick to her old
man?"
By rubbing all
this in, I succeeded in terrorizing Lo, who despite a certain brash alertness
of manner and spurts of wit was not as intelligent a child as her I.Q. might
suggest. But if I managed to establish that background of shared secrecy and
shared guilt, I was much less successful in keeping her in good humor. Every
morning during our yearlong travels I had to devise some expectation, some
special point in space and time for her to look forward to, for her to survive
till bedtime. Otherwise, deprived of a shaping and sustaining purpose, the
skeleton of her day sagged and collapsed. The object in view might be
anything-a lighthouse in Virginia, a natural cave in Arkansas converted to a
cafĘ, a collection of guns and violins somewhere in Oklahoma, a replica of
the Grotto of Lourdes in Louisiana, shabby photographs of the bonanza mining
period in the local museum of a Rocky Mountains resort, anything whatsoever-but
it had to be there, in front of us, like a fixed star, although as likely as
not Lo would feign gagging as soon as we got to it.
By putting the
geography of the United States into motion, I did my best for hours on end to
give her the impression of "going places," of rolling on to some
definite destination, to some unusual delight. I have never seen such smooth
amiable roads as those that now radiated before us, across the crazy quilt of
forty-eight states. Voraciously we consumed those long highways, in rapt
silence we glided over their glossy black dance floors. Not only had Lo no eye
for scenery but she furiously resented my calling her attention to this or that
enchanting detail of landscape; which I myself learned to discern only after
being exposed for quite a time to the delicate beauty ever present in the
margin of our undeserving journey. By a paradox of pictorial thought, the
average lowland North-American countryside had at first seemed to me something
I accepted with a shock of amused recognition because of those painted
oilclothes which were imported from America in the old days to be hung above
washstands in Central-European nurseries, and which fascinated a drowsy child
at bed time with the rustic green views they depicted-opaque curly trees, a
barn, cattle, a brook, the dull white of vague orchards in bloom, and perhaps a
stone fence or hills of greenish gouache. But gradually the models of those
elementary rusticities became stranger and stranger to the eye, the nearer I
came to know them. Beyond the tilled plain, beyond the toy roofs, there would
be a slow suffusion of inutile loveliness, a low sun in a platinum haze with a
warm, peeled-peach tinge pervading the upper edge of a two-dimensional,
dove-gray cloud fusing with the distant amorous mist. There might be a line of
spaced trees silhouetted against the horizon, and hot still noons above a
wilderness of clover, and Claude Lorrain clouds inscribed remotely into misty
azure with only their cumulus part conspicuous against the neutral swoon of the
background. Or again, it might be a stern El Greco horizon, pregnant with inky
rain, and a passing glimpse of some mummy-necked farmer, and all around
alternating strips of quick-silverish water and harsh green corn, the whole
arrangement opening like a fan, somewhere in Kansas.
Now and then, in
the vastness of those plains, huge trees would advance toward us to cluster
self-consciously by the roadside and provide a bit of humanitarian shade above
a picnic table, with sun flecks, flattened paper cups, samaras and discarded
ice-cream sticks littering the brown ground. A great user of roadside
facilities, my unfastidious Lo would be charmed by toilet signs-Guys-Gals,
John-Jane, Jack-Jill and even Buck's-Doe's; while lost in an artist's dream, I
would stare at the honest brightness of the gasoline paraphernalia against the
splendid green of oaks, or at a distant hill scrambling out-scarred but still
untamed-from the wilderness of agriculture that was trying to swallow it.
At night, tall
trucks studded with colored lights, like dreadful giant Christmas trees, loomed
in the darkness and thundered by the belated little sedan. And again next day a
thinly populated sky, losing its blue to the heat, would melt overhead, and Lo
would clamor for a drink, and her cheeks would hollow vigorously over the
straw, and the car inside would be a furnace when we got in again, and the road
shimmered ahead, with a remote car changing its shape mirage-like in the
surface glare, and seeming to hang for a moment, old-fashionedly square and
high, in the hot haze. And as we pushed westward, patches of what the
garage-man called "sage brush" appeared, and then the mysterious
outlines of table-like hills, and then red bluffs ink-blotted with junipers,
and then a mountain range, dun grading into blue, and blue into dream, and the
desert would meet us with a steady gale, dust, gray thorn bushes, and hideous
bits of tissue paper mimicking pale flowers among the prickles of wind-tortured
withered stalks all along the highway; in the middle o which there sometimes stood
simple cows, immobilized in a position (tail left, white eyelashes right)
cutting across all human rules of traffic.
My lawyer has
suggested I give a clear, frank account of the itinerary we followed, and I
suppose I have reached here a point where I cannot avoid that chore. Roughly,
during that mad year (August 1947 to August 1948), our route began with a
series of wiggles and whorls in New England, then meandered south, up and down,
east and west; dipped deep into ce qu'on appelle Dixieland, avoided Florida
because the Farlows were there, veered west, zigzagged through corn belts and
cotton belts (this is not too clear I am afraid, Clarence, but I did not keep
any notes, and have at my disposal only an atrociously crippled tour book in
three volumes, almost a symbol of my torn and tattered past, in which to check
these recollections); crossed and recrossed the Rockies, straggled through
southern deserts where we wintered; reached the Pacific, turned north through
the pale lilac fluff of flowering shrubs along forest roads; almost reached the
Canadian border; and proceeded east, across good lands and bad lands, back to
agriculture on a grand scale, avoiding, despite little Lo's strident
remonstrations, little Lo's birthplace, in a corn, coal and hog producing area;
and finally returned to the fold of the East, petering out in the college town
of Beardsley.
2
Now, in perusing
what follows, the reader should bear in mind not only the general circuit as
adumbrated above, with its many sidetrips and tourist traps, secondary circles
and skittish deviations, but also the fact that far from being an indolent
partie de plaisir, our tour was a hard, twisted, teleological growth, whose
sole raison d'Ętre (these French clichĘs are symptomatic) was to keep
my companion in passable humor from kiss to kiss.
Thumbing through
that battered tour book, I dimly evoke that Magnolia Garden in a southern state
which cost me four bucks and which, according to the ad in the book, you must
visit for three reasons: because John Galsworthy (a stone-dead writer of sorts)
acclaimed it as the world's fairest garden; because in 1900 Baedeker's Guide
had marked it with a star; and finally, because . . . O, Reader, My Reader,
guess! . . . because children (and by Jingo was not my Lolita a child!) will
"walk starry-eyed and reverently through this foretaste of Heaven,
drinking in beauty that can influence a life." "Not mine," said
grim Lo, and settled down on a bench with the fillings of two Sunday papers in
her lovely lap.
We passed and re-passed
through the whole gamut of American roadside restaurants, from the lowly Eat
with its deer head (dark trace of long tear at inner canthus),
"humorous" picture post cards of the posterior "Kurort"
type, impaled guest checks, life savers, sunglasses, adman visions of celestial
sundaes, one half of a chocolate cake under glass, and several horribly
experienced flies zigzagging over the sticky sugar-pour on the ignoble counter;
and all the way to the expensive place with the subdued lights, preposterously
poor table linen, inept waiters (ex-convicts or college boys), the roan back of
a screen actress, the sable eyebrows of her male of the moment, and an
orchestra of zoot-suiters with trumpets.
We inspected the
world's largest stalagmite in a cave where three southeastern states have a
family reunion; admission by age; adults one dollar, pubescents sixty cents. A
granite obelisk commemorating the Battle of Blue Licks, with old bones and
Indian pottery in the museum nearby, Lo a dime, very reasonable. The present
log cabin boldly simulating the past log cabin where Lincoln was born. A
boulder, with a plaque, in memory of the author of "Trees" (by now we
are in Poplar Cove, N.C., reached by what my kind, tolerant, usually so
restrained tour book angrily calls "a very narrow road, poorly
maintained," to which, though no Kilmerite, I subscribe). From a hired
motor-boat operated by an elderly, but still repulsively handsome White
Russian, a baron they said (Lo's palms were damp, the little fool), who had
known in California good old Maximovich and Valeria, we could distinguish the
inaccessible "millionaires' colony" on an island, somewhere off the
Georgia coast. We inspected further: a collection of European hotel picture
post cards in a museum devoted to hobbies at a Mississippi resort, where with a
hot wave of pride I discovered a colored photo of my father's Mirana, its
striped awnings, its flag flying above the retouched palm trees. "So
what?" said Lo, squinting at the bronzed owner of an expensive car who had
followed us into the Hobby House. Relics of the cotton era. A forest in
Arkansas and, on her brown shoulder, a raised purple-pink swelling (the work of
some gnat) which I eased of its beautiful transparent poison between my long
thumbnails and then sucked till I was gorged on her spicy blood. Bourbon Street
(in a town named New Orleans) whose sidewalks, said the tour book, "may [I
liked the "may"] feature entertainment by pickaninnies who will {I
liked the "will" even better] tap-dance for pennies" (what fun),
while "its numerous small and intimate night clubs are thronged with
visitors" (naughty). Collections of frontier lore. Ante-bellum homes with
iron-trellis balconies and hand-worked stairs, the kind down which movie ladies
with sun-kissed shoulders run in rich Technicolor, holding up the fronts of
their flounced skirts with both little hands in that special way, and the
devoted Negress shaking her head on the upper landing. The Menninger
Foundation, a psychiatric clinic, just for the heck of it. A patch of
beautifully eroded clay; and yucca blossoms, so pure, so waxy, but lousy with
creeping white flies. Independence, Missouri, the starting point of the Old
Oregon Trail; and Abiliene, Kansas, the home of the Wild Bill Something Rodeo.
Distant mountains. Near mountains. More mountains; bluish beauties never
attainable, or ever turning into inhabited hill after hill; south-eastern
ranges, altitudinal failures as alps go; heart and sky-piercing snow-veined
gray colossi of stone, relentless peaks appearing from nowhere at a turn of the
highway; timbered enormities, with a system of neatly overlapping dark firs,
interrupted in places by pale puffs of aspen; pink and lilac formations,
Pharaonic, phallic, "too prehistoric for words" (blasĘ Lo); buttes
of black lava; early spring mountains with young-elephant lanugo along their
spines; end-of-the-summer mountains, all hunched up, their heavy Egyptian limbs
folded under folds of tawny moth-eaten plush; oatmeal hills, flecked with green
round oaks; a last rufous mountain with a rich rug of lucerne at its foot.
Moreover, we
inspected: Little Iceberg Lake, somewhere in Colorado, and the snow banks, and
the cushionets of tiny alpine flowers, and more snow; down which Lo in
red-peaked cap tried to slide, and squealed, and was snowballed by some
youngsters, and retaliated in kind comme on dit. Skeletons of burned aspens,
patches of spired blue flowers. The various items of a scenic drive. Hundreds
of scenic drives, thousands of Bear Creeks, Soda Springs, Painted Canyons. Texas,
a drought-struck plain. Crystal Chamber in the longest cave in the world,
children under 12 free, Lo a young captive. A collection of a local lady's
homemade sculptures, closed on a miserable Monday morning, dust, wind,
witherland. Conception Park, in a town on the Mexican border which I dared not
cross. There and elsewhere, hundreds of gray hummingbirds in the dusk, probing
the throats of dim flowers. Shakespeare, a ghost town in New Mexico, where bad
man Russian Bill was colorfully hanged seventy years ago. Fish hatcheries.
Cliff dwellings. The mummy of a child (Florentine Bea's Indian contemporary).
Our twentieth Hell's Canyon. Our fiftieth Gateway to something or other fide
that tour book, the cover of which had been lost by that time. A tick in my
groin. Always the same three old men, in hats and suspenders, idling away the
summer afternoon under the trees near the public fountain. A hazy blue view
beyond railings on a mountain pass, and the backs of a family enjoying it (with
Lo, in a hot, happy, wild, intense, hopeful, hopeless whisper-"Look, the
McCrystals, please, let's talk to them, please"-let's talk to them,
reader!-"please! I'll do anything you want, oh, please. . ."). Indian
ceremonial dances, strictly commercial. ART: American Refrigerator Transit
Company. Obvious Arizona, pueblo dwellings, aboriginal pictographs, a dinosaur
track in a desert canyon, printed there thirty million years ago, when I was a
child. A lanky, six-foot, pale boy with an active Adam's apple, ogling Lo and
her orange-brown bare midriff, which I kissed five minutes later, Jack. Winter
in the desert, spring in the foothills, almonds in bloom. Reno, a dreary town
in Nevada, with a nightlife said to be "cosmopolitan and mature." A
winery in California, with a church built in the shape of a wine barrel. Death
Valley. Scotty's Castle. Works of Art collected by one Rogers over a period of
years. The ugly villas of handsome actresses. R. L. Stevenson's footprint on an
extinct volcano. Mission Dolores: good title for book. Surf-carved sandstone
festoons. A man having a lavish epileptic fit on the ground in Russian Gulch
State Park. Blue, blue Crater Lake. A fish hatchery in Idaho and the State
Penitentiary. Somber Yellowstone Park and its colored hot springs, baby
geysers, rainbows of bubbling mud-symbols of my passion. A herd of antelopes in
a wildlife refuge. Our hundredth cavern, adults one dollar, Lolita fifty cents.
A chateau built by a French marquess in N.D. The Corn Palace in S.D.; and the
huge heads of presidents carved in towering granite. The Bearded Woman read our
jingle and now she is no longer single. A zoo in Indiana where a large troop of
monkeys lived on concrete replica of Christopher Columbus' flagship. Billions
of dead, or halfdead, fish-smelling May flies in every window of every eating
place all along a dreary sandy shore. Fat gulls on big stones as seen from the
ferry City of Cheboygan, whose brown woolly smoke arched and dipped over the
green shadow it cast on the aquamarine lake. A motel whose ventilator pipe
passed under the city sewer. Lincoln's home, largely spurious, with parlor
books and period furniture that most visitors reverently accepted as personal
belongings.
We had rows,
minor and major. The biggest ones we had took place: at Lacework Cabins, Virginia;
on Park Avenue, Little Rock, near a school; on Milner Pass, 10,759 feet high,
in Colorado; at the corner of Seventh Street and Central Avenue in Phoenix,
Arizona; on Third Street, Los Angeles, because the tickets to some studio or
other were sold out; at a motel called Poplar Shade in Utah, where six
pubescent trees were scarcely taller than my Lolita, and where she asked,
 propos de rien, how long did I think we were going to live in stuffy
cabins, doing filthy things together and never behaving like ordinary people?
On N. Broadway, Burns, Oregon, corner of W. Washington, facing Safeway, a
grocery. In some little town in the Sun Valley of Idaho, before a brick hotel,
pale and flushed bricks nicely mixed, with, opposite, a poplar playing its
liquid shadows all over the local Honor Roll. In a sage brush wilderness,
between Pinedale and Farson. Somewhere in Nebraska, on Main Street, near the
First National Bank, established 1889, with a view of a railway crossing in the
vista of the street, and beyond that the white organ pipes of a multiple silo.
And on McEwen St., corner of Wheaton Ave., in a Michigan town bearing his first
name.
We came to know
the curious roadside species, Hitchhiking Man, Homo pollex of science, with all
its many sub-species and forms; the modest soldier, spic and span, quietly
waiting, quietly conscious of khaki's viatric appeal; the schoolboy wishing to
go two blocks; the killer wishing to go two thousand miles; the mysterious,
nervous, elderly gent, with brand-new suitcase and clipped mustache; a trio of
optimistic Mexicans; the college student displaying the grime of vacational
outdoor work as proudly as the name of the famous college arching across the
front of his sweatshirt; the desperate lady whose battery has just died on her;
the clean-cut, glossy-haired, shifty-eyed, white-faced young beasts in loud
shirts and coats, vigorously, almost priapically thrusting out tense thumbs to
tempt lone women or sadsack salesmen with fancy cravings.
"Let's take
him," Lo would often plead, rubbing her knees together in a way she had,
as some particularly disgusting pollex, some man of my age and shoulder
breadth, with the face  claques of unemployed actor, walked backwards,
practically in the path of our car.
Oh, I had to keep
a very sharp eye on Lo, little limp Lo! Owing perhaps to constant amorous
exercise, she radiated, despite her very childish appearance, some special
languorous glow which threw garage fellows, hotel pages, vacationists, goons in
luxurious cars, maroon morons near blued pools, into fits of concupiscence
which might have tickled my pride, had it not incensed my jealousy. For little
Lo was aware of that glow of hers, and I would often catch her coulant un
regard in the direction of some amiable male, some grease monkey, with a sinewy
golden-brown forearm and watch-braceleted wrist, and hardly had I turned my
back to go and buy this very Lo a lollipop, than I would hear her and the fair
mechanic burst into a perfect love song of wisecracks.
When, during our
longer stops, I would relax after a particularly violent morning in bed, and
out of the goodness of my lulled heart allow her-indulgent Hum!-to visit the
rose garden or children's library across the street with a motor court
neighbor's plain little Mary and Mary's eight-year-old brother, Lo would come
back an hour late, with barefoot Mary trailing far behind, and the little boy
metamorphosed into two gangling, golden-haired high school uglies, all muscles
and gonorrhea. The reader may well imagine what I answered my pet when-rather
uncertainly, I admit-she would ask me if she could go with Carl and Al here to
the roller-skating rink.
I remember the
first time, a dusty windy afternoon, I did let her go to one such rink. Cruelly
she said it would be no fun if I accompanied her, since that time of day was
reserved for teenagers. We wrangled out a compromise: I remained in the car,
among other (empty) cars with their noses to the canvas-topped open-air rink,
where some fifty young people, many in pairs, were endlessly rolling round and
round to mechanical music, and the wind silvered the trees. Dolly wore blue
jeans and white high shoes, as most of the other girls did. I kept counting the
revolutions of the rolling crowd-and suddenly she was missing. When she rolled
past again, she was together with three hoodlums whom I had heard analyze a
moment before the girl skaters from the outside-and jeer at a lovely leggy
young thing who had arrived clad in red shorts instead of those jeans and
slacks.
At inspection
stations on highways entering Arizona or California, a policeman's cousin would
peer with such intensity at us that my poor heart wobbled. "Any
honey?" he would inquire, and every time my sweet fool giggled. I still
have, vibrating all along my optic nerve, visions of Lo on horseback, a link in
the chain of a guided trip along a bridle trail: Lo bobbing at a walking pace,
with an old woman rider in front and a lecherous red-necked dude-rancher
behind; and I behind him, hating his fat flowery-shirted back even more fervently
than a motorist does a slow truck on a mountain road. Or else, at a ski lodge,
I would see her floating away from me, celestial and solitary, in an ethereal
chairlift, up and up, to a glittering summit where laughing athletes stripped
to the waist were waiting for her, for her.
In whatever town
we stopped I would inquire, in my polite European way, anent the whereabouts of
natatoriums, museums, local schools, the number of children in the nearest
school and so forth; and at school bus time, smiling and twitching a little (I
discovered this tic nerveux because cruel Lo was the first to mimic it), I
would park at a strategic point, with my vagrant schoolgirl beside me in the
car, to watch the children leave school-always a pretty sight. This sort of
thing soon began to bore my so easily bored Lolita, and, having a childish lack
of sympathy for other people's whims, she would insult me and my desire to have
her caress me while blue-eyed little brunettes in blue shorts, copperheads in
green boleros, and blurred boyish blondes in faded slacks passed by in the sun.
As a sort of
compromise, I freely advocated whenever and wherever possible the use of
swimming pools with other girl-children. She adored brilliant water and was a
remarkably smart diver. Comfortably robed, I would settle down in the rich
post-meridian shade after my own demure dip, and there I would sit, with a
dummy book or a bag of bonbons, or both, or nothing but my tingling glands, and
watch her gambol, rubber-capped, bepearled, smoothly tanned, as glad as an ad,
in her trim-fitted satin pants and shirred bra. Pubescent sweetheart! How
smugly would I marvel that she was mine, mine, mine, and revise the recent
matitudinal swoon to the moan of the mourning doves, and devise the late
afternoon one, and slitting my sun-speared eyes, compare Lolita to whatever
other nymphets parsimonious chance collected around her for my anthological
delectation and judgment; and today, putting my hand on my ailing heart, I
really do not think that any of them ever surpassed her in desirability, or if
they did, it was so two or three times at the most, in a certain light, with
certain perfumes blended in the air-once in the hopeless case of a pale Spanish
child, the daughter of a heavy-jawed nobleman, and another time-mais je
divague.
Naturally, I had
to be always wary, fully realizing, in my lucid jealousy, the danger of those
dazzling romps. I had only to turn away for a moment-to walk, say, a few steps
in order to see if our cabin was at last ready after the morning change of
linen-and Lo and Behold, upon returning, I would find the former, les yeux
perdus, dipping and kicking her long-toed feet in the water on the stone edge
of which she lolled, while, on either side of her, there crouched a brun
adolescent whom her russet beauty and the quicksilver in the baby folds of her
stomach were sure to cause to se tordre-oh Baudelaire!-in recurrent dreams for
months to come.
I tried to teach
her to play tennis so we might have more amusements in common; but although I
had been a good player in my prime, I proved to be hopeless as a teacher; and
so, in California, I got her to take a number of very expensive lessons with a
famous coach, a husky, wrinkled old-timer, with a harem of ball boys; he looked
an awful wreck off the court, but now and then, when, in the course of a
lesson, to keep up the exchange, he would put out as it were an exquisite
spring blossom of a stroke and twang the ball back to his pupil, that divine
delicacy of absolute power made me recall that, thirty years before, I had seen
him in Cannes demolish the great Gobbert! Until she began taking those lessons,
I thought she would never learn the game. On this or that hotel court I would
drill Lo, and try to relive the days when in a hot gale, a daze of dust, and queer
lassitude, I fed ball after ball to gay, innocent, elegant Annabel (gleam of
bracelet, pleated white skirt, black velvet hair band). With every word of
persistent advice I would only augment Lo's sullen fury. To our games, oddly
enough, she preferred-at least, before we reached California-formless pat ball
approximations-more ball hunting than actual play-with a wispy, weak,
wonderfully pretty in an ange gauche way coeval. A helpful spectator, I would
go up to that other child, and inhale her faint musky fragrance as I touched
her forearm and held her knobby wrist, and push this way or that her cool thigh
to show her the back-hand stance. In the meantime, Lo, bending forward, would
let her sunny-brown curls hang forward as she stuck her racket, like a cripple's
stick, into the ground and emitted a tremendous ugh of disgust at my intrusion.
I would leave them to their game and look on, comparing their bodies in motion,
a silk scarf round my throat; this was in south Arizona, I think-and the days
had a lazy lining warmth, and awkward Lo would slash at the ball and miss it,
and curse, and send a simulacrum of a serve into the net, and show the wet
glistening young down of her armpit as she brandished her racket in despair,
and her even more insipid partner would dutifully rush out after every ball,
and retrieve none; but both were enjoying themselves beautifully, and in clear
ringing tones kept the exact score of their ineptitudes all the time.
One day, I
remember, I offered to bring them cold drinks from the hotel, and went up the
gravel path, and came back with two tall glasses of pineapple juice, soda and
ice; and then a sudden void within my chest made me stop as I saw that the
tennis court was deserted. I stooped to set down the glasses on a bench and for
some reason, with a kind of icy vividness, saw Charlotte's face in death, and I
glanced around, and noticed Lo in white shorts receding through the speckled
shadow of a garden path in the company of a tall man who carried two tennis
rackets. I sprang after them, but as I was crashing through the shrubbery, I
saw, in an alternate vision, as if life's course constantly branched, Lo, in
slacks, and her companion, in shorts, trudging up and down a small weedy area,
and beating bushes with their rackets in listless search for their last lost
ball.
I itemize these
sunny nothings mainly to prove to my judges that I did everything in my power
to give my Lolita a really good time. How charming it was to see her, a child
herself, showing another child some of her few accomplishments, such as for
example a special way of jumping rope. With her right hand holding her left arm
behind her untanned back, the lesser nymphet, a diaphanous darling, would be
all eyes, as the pavonine sun was all eyes on the gravel under the flowering
trees, while in the midst of that oculate paradise, my freckled and raffish
lass skipped, repeating the movements of so many others I had gloated over on
the sun-shot, watered, damp-smelling sidewalks and ramparts of ancient Europe.
Presently, she would hand the rope back to her little Spanish friend, and watch
in her turn the repeated lesson, and brush away the hair from her brow, and
fold her arms, and step on one toe with the other, or drop her hands loosely
upon her still unflared hips, and I would satisfy myself that the damned staff
had at last finished cleaning up our cottage; whereupon, flashing a smile to
the shy, dark-haired page girl of my princess and thrusting my fatherly fingers
deep into Lo's hair from behind, and then gently but firmly clasping them
around the nape of her neck, I would lead my reluctant pet to our small home
for a quick connection before dinner.
"Whose cat
has scratched poor you?" A full-blown fleshy handsome woman of the
repulsive type to which I was particularly attractive might ask me at the
"lodge," during a table d'hote dinner followed by dancing promised to
Lo. This was one of the reasons why I tried to keep as far away from people as
possible, while Lo, on the other hand, would do her utmost to draw as many potential
witnesses into her orbit as she could.
She would be,
figuratively speaking wagging her tiny tail, her whole behind in fact as little
bitches do-while some grinning stranger accosted us and began a bright
conversation with a comparative study of license plates. "Long way from
home!" Inquisitive parents, in order to pump Lo about me, would suggest
her going to a movie with their children. We had some close shaves. The
waterfall nuisance pursued me of course in all our caravansaries. But I never
realized how wafery their wall substance was until one evening, after I had
loved too loudly, a neighbor's masculine cough filled the pause as clearly as
mine would have done; and next morning as I was having breakfast at the milk
bar (Lo was a late sleeper, and I liked to bring her a pot of hot coffee in
bed), my neighbor of the eve, an elderly fool wearing plain glasses on his long
virtuous nose and a convention badge on his lapel, somehow managed to rig up a
conversation with me, in the course of which he inquired, if my missus was like
his missus a rather reluctant get-upper when not on the farm; and had not the
hideous danger I was skirting almost suffocated me, I might have enjoyed the
odd look of surprise on his thin-lipped weather-beaten face when I drily
answered, as I slithered off my stool, that I was thank God a widower.
How sweet it was
to bring that coffee to her, and then deny it until she had done her morning
duty. And I was such a thoughtful friend, such a passionate father, such a good
pediatrician, attending to all the wants of my little auburn brunette's body!
My only grudge against nature was that I could not turn my Lolita inside out
and apply voracious lips to her young matrix, her unknown heart, her nacreous
liver, the sea-grapes of her lungs, her comely twin kidneys. On especially
tropical afternoons, in the sticky closeness of the siesta, I liked the cool
feel of armchair leather against my massive nakedness as I held her in my lap.
There she would be, a typical kid picking her nose while engrossed in the
lighter sections of a newspaper, as indifferent to my ecstasy as if it were
something she had sat upon, a shoe, a doll, the handle of a tennis racket, and
was too indolent to remove. Her eyes would follow the adventures of her
favorite strip characters: there was one well-drawn sloppy bobby-soxer, with
high cheekbones and angular gestures, that I was not above enjoying myself; she
studied the photographic results of head-on collisions; she never doubted the
reality of place, time, and circumstance alleged to match the publicity
pictures of naked-thighed beauties; and she was curiously fascinated by the
photographs of local brides, some in full wedding apparel, holding bouquets and
wearing glasses.
A fly would
settle and walk in the vicinity of her navel or explore her tender pale
areolas. She tried to catch it in her fist (Charlotte's method) and then would
turn to the column Let's Explore Your Mind.
"Let's
explore your mind. Would sex crimes be reduced if children obeyed a few don'ts?
Don't play around public toilets. Don't take candy or rides from strangers. If
picked up, mark down the license of the car."
". . . and
the brand of the candy," I volunteered.
She went on, her
cheek (recedent) against mine (pursuant); and this was a good day, mark, O
reader!
"If you
don't have a pencil, but are old enough to read-"
"We," I
quip-quoted, "medieval mariners, have placed in this bottle-"
"If,"
she repeated, "you don't have a pencil, but are old enough to read and
write-this is what the guy means, isn't it, you dope-=scratch the number
somehow on the roadside."
"With your
little claws, Lolita."
She had entered
my world, umber and black Humberland, with rash curiosity; she surveyed it with
a shrug of amused distaste; and it seemed to me now that she was ready to turn
away from it with something akin to plain repulsion. Never did she vibrate
under my touch, and a strident "what d'you think you are doing?" was
all I got for my pains. To the wonderland I had to offer, my fool preferred the
corniest movies, the most cloying fudge. To think that between a Hamburger and
a Humburger, she would-invariably, with icy precision-plump for the former.
There is nothing more atrociously cruel than an adored child. Did I mention the
name of that milk bar I visited a moment ago? It was, of all things, The Frigid
Queen. Smiling a little sadly, I dubbed her My Frigid Princess. She did not see
the wistful joke.
Oh, d not scowl
at me, reader, I do not intend to convey the impressin that I did not manage to
be happy. Readeer must understand that in the possession and thralldom of a
nymphet the enchanted traveler stands, as it were, beyond happiness. For there
is no other bliss on earth comparable to that of fondling a nymphet. It is hors
concours, that bliss, it belongs to another class, another plane of
sensitivity. Despite our tiffs, despite her nastiness, despite all the fuss and
faces she made, and the vulgarity, and the danger, and the horrible
hopelessness of it all, I still dwelled deep in my elected paradise-a paradise
whose skies were the color of hell-flames-but still a paradise.
The able
psychiatrist who studies my case-and whom by now Dr. Humbert has plunged, I
trust, into a state of leporine fascination-is no doubt anxious to have me take
Lolita to the seaside and have me find there, at last, the
"gratification" of a lifetime urge, and release from the
"subconscious" obsession of an incomplete childhood romance with the
initial little Miss Lee.
Well, comrade,
let me tell you that I did look for a beach, though I also have to confess that
by the time we reached its mirage of gray water, so many delights had already
been granted me by my traveling companion that the search for a Kingdom by the
Sea, a Sublimated Riviera, or whatnot, far from being the impulse of the
subconscious, had become the rational pursuit of a purely theoretical thrill.
The angels knew it, and arranged things accordingly. A visit to a plausible
cove on the Atlantic side was completely messed up by foul weather. A thick
damp sky, muddy waves, a sense of boundless but somehow matter-of-fact
mist-what could be further removed from the crisp charm, the sapphire occasion
and rosy contingency of my Riviera romance? A couple of semitropical beaches on
the Gulf, though bright enough, were starred and spattered by venomous beasties
and swept by hurricane winds. Finally, on a Californian beach, facing the
phantom of the Pacific, I hit upon some rather perverse privacy in a kind of
cave whence you could hear the shrikes of a lot of girl scouts taking their
first surf bath on a separate part of the beach, behind rotting trees; but the
fog was like a wet blanket, and the sand was gritty and clammy, and Lo was all
gooseflesh and grit, and for the first time in my life I had as little desire
for her as for a manatee. Perhaps, my learned readers may perk up if I tell
them that even had we discovered a piece of sympathetic seaside somewhere, it
would have come too late, since my real liberation had occurred much earlier:
at the moment, in point of fact, when Annabel Haze, alias Dolores Lee, alias
Loleeta, had appeared tome, golden and brown, kneeling, looking up, on that
shoddy veranda, in a kind of fictitious, dishonest, but eminently satisfactory
seaside arrangement (although there was nothing but a second-rate lake in the
neighborhood.).
So much for those
special sensations, influence, if not actually brought about, by the tenets of
modern psychiatry. Consequently, I turned away-I headed my Lolita away-from
beaches which were either too bleak when lone, or too populous when ablaze.
However, in recollection, I suppose, of my hopeless hauntings of public parks
in Europe, I was still keenly interested in outdoor activities and desirous of
finding suitable playgrounds in the open where I had suffered such shameful
privations. Here, too, I was to be thwarted. The disappointment I must now
register (as I gently grade my story into an expression of the continuous risk
and dread that ran through my bliss) should in no wise reflect on the lyrical,
epic, tragic buit never Arcadian American wilds. They are beautiful,
heart-rendingly beautiful, those wilds, with a quality of wide-eyed, unsung,
innocent surrender that my lacquered, toy-bright Swiss villages and
exhaustively lauded Alps no longer possess. Innumerable lovers have clipped and
kissed on the trim turf of old-would mountainsides, on the innerspring moss, by
a handy, hygienic rill, on rustic benches under the initialed oaks, and in so
many cabanes in so many beech forests. But in the Wilds of America the open-air
lover will not find it easy to indulge in the most ancient of all crimes and
pastimes. Poisonous plants burn his sweetheart's buttocks, nameless insects
sting his; sharp items of the forest floor prick his knees, insects hers; and
all around there abides a sustained rustle of potential snakes-que dis-je, of
semi-extinct dragons!-while the crablike seeds of ferocious flowers cling, in a
hideous green crust, to gartered black sock and sloppy white sock alike.
I am exaggerating
a little. One summer noon, just below timberline, where heavenly-hued blossoms
that I would fain call larkspur crowded all along a purly moutain brook, we did
find, Lolita and I, a secluded romantic spot, a hundred feet or so above the
pass where we had left our car. The slope seemed untrodden. A last panting pine
was taking a well-earned breather on the rock it had reached. A marmot whistled
at us and withdrew. Beneath the lap-robe I had spread fo Lor, dryflowers
crepitated softly. Venus came and went. The jagged cliff crowning the upper
talus and a tangle of shrugs growing below us seemed to offer us protection
from sun and man alike. Alas, I had not reckoned with a faint side trail that
curled up in cagey fashion among the shrubs and rocks a few feet from us.
It was then that
we came close to detection than ever before, and no wonder the experience
curbed forever my yearning for rural amours.
I remember the
operation was over, all over, and she was weeping in my arms;-a salutory storm
of sobs after one of the fits of moodiness that had become so frequent with her
in the course of that otherwise admirable year! I had just retracted some silly
promise she had forced me to make in a moment of blind impatient passion, and
thee she was sprawling and sobbing, and pinching my caressing hand, and I was
laughing happily, and the atrocious, unbelievable, unbearable, and, I suspect,
eternal horror that I know now was still but a dot of blackness in the blue of
my bliss; and so we lay, when with one of those jolts that have ended by
knocking my poor heart out of its groove, I met the unblinking dark eyes of two
strange and beautiful children, faunlet and nymphet, whom their identical flat
dark hair and bloodless cheeks proclaimed siblings if not twins. They stood
crouching and gaping at us, both in blue playsuits, blending with the mountain
blossoms. I plucked at the lap-robe for desperate concealment-and within the
same instant, something that looked like a polka-dotted pushball among the
undergrowth a few paces away, went into a turning motion which was transformed
into the gradually rising figure of a stout lady with a raven-black bob, who
automatically added a wild lily to her bouquet, while staring over her shoulder
at us from behind her lovely carved bluestone children.
Now that I have
an altogether different mess on my conscience, I know that I am a courageous
man, but in those days I was not aware of it, and I remember being surprised by
my own coolness. With the quiet murmured order one gives a sweat-stained
distracted cringing trained animal even in the worst of plights (what mad hope
or hate makes the young beast's flanks pulsate, what black stars pierce the
heart of the tamer!), I made Lo get up, and we decorously walked, and then
indecorously scuttled down to the car. Behind it a nifty station wagon was
parked, and a handsome Assyrian with q little blue-black beard, un monsieur
trĘs bien, in silk shirt and magenta slacks, presumably the corpulent
botanist's husband, was gravely taking the picture of a signboard giving the
altitude of the pass. It was well over 10,000 feet and I was quite out of
breath; and with a scrunch and a skid we drove off, Lo still struggling with
her clothes and swearing at me in language that I never dreamed little girls
could know, let alone use.
There were other
unpleasant incidents. There was the movie theatre once, for example. Lo at the
time still had for the cinema a veritable passion (it was to decline into tepid
condescension during her second high school year). We took in, voluptuously and
indiscriminately, oh, I don't know, one hundred and fifty or two hundred
programs during that one year, and during some of the denser periods of
movie-going we saw many of the newsreels up to half-a-dozen times since the
same weekly one went with different main pictures and pursued us from town to
town. Her favorite kinds were, in this order: musicals, underworlders,
westerners. In the first, real singers and dancers had unreal stage careers in an
essentially grief-proof sphere of existence wherefrom death and truth were
banned, and where, at the end, white-haired, dewy-eyed, technically deathless,
the initially reluctant father of a show-crazy girl always finished by
applauding her apotheosis on fabulous Broadway. The underworld was a world
apart: there, heroic newspapermen were tortured, telephone bills ran to
billions, and, in a robust atmosphere of incompetent marksmanship, villains
were chased through sewers and store-houses by pathologically fearless cops (I
was to give them less exercise). Finally there was the mahogany landscape, the
florid-faced, blue-eyed roughriders, the prim pretty schoolteacher arriving in
Roaring Gulch, the rearing horse, the spectacular stampede, the pistol thrust through
the shivered windowpane, the stupendous fist fight, the crashing mountain of
dusty old-fashioned furniture, the table used as a weapon, the timely
somersault, the pinned hand still groping for the dropped bowie knife, the
grunt, the sweet crash of fist against chin, the kick in the belly, the flying
tackle; and immediately after a plethora of pain that would have hospitalized a
Hercules (I should know by now), nothing to show but the rather becoming bruise
on the bronzed cheek of the warmed-up hero embracing his gorgeous frontier
bride. I remember one matinee in a small airless theatre crammed with children
and reeking with the hot breath of popcorn. The moon was yellow above the
neckerchiefed crooner, and his finger was on his strumstring, and his foot was
on a pine log, and I had innocently encircled Lo's shoulder and approached my
jawbone to her temple, when two harpies behind us started muttering the
queerest things-I do not know if I understood aright, but what I thought I did,
made me withdraw my gentle hand, and of course the rest of the show was fog to
me.
Another jolt I
remember is connected with a little burg we were traversing at night, during
our return journey. Some twenty miles earlier I had happened to tell her that
the day school she would attend at Beardsley was a rather high-class,
non-coeducational one, with no modern nonsense, whereupon Lo treated me to one
of those furious harangues of hers where entreaty and insult, self-assertion
and double talk, vicious vulgarity and childish despair, were interwoven in an
exasperating semblance of logic which prompted a semblance of explanation from
me. Enmeshed in her wild words (swell chance . . . I'd be a sap if I took your
opinion seriously . . . Stinker . . . You can't boss me . . . I despise you . .
. and so forth), I drove throuth the slumbering town at a fifty-mile-per-hour
pace in continuance of my smooth highway swoosh, and a twosome of patrolmen put
their spotlight on the car, and told me to pull over. I shushed Lo who was
automatically raving on. The men peered at her and me with malevolent
curiosity. Suddenly all dimples, she beamed sweetly at them, as she never did
at my orchideous masculinity; for, in a sense, my Lo was even more scared of
the law than I-and when the kind officers pardoned us and servilely we crawled
on, her eyelids closed and fluttered as she mimicked limp prostration.
At this point I
have a curious confession to make. You will laugh-but really and truly I
somehow never managed to find out quite exactly what the legal situation was. I
do not know it yet. Oh, I have learned a few odds and ends. Alabama prohibits a
guardian from changing the ward's residence without an order of the court;
Minnesota, to whom I take off my hat, provides that when a relative assumes
permanent care and custody of any child under fourteen, the authority of a
court does not come into play. Query: is the stepfather of a gaspingly adorable
pubescent pet, a stepfather of only one month's standing, a neurotic widower of
mature years and small but independent means, with the parapets of Europe, a
divorce and a few madhouses behind him, is he to be considered a relative, and
thus a natural guardian? And if not, must I, and could I reasonably dare notify
some Welfare Board and file a petition (how do you file a petition?), and have
a court's agent investigate meek, fishy me and dangerous Dolores Haze? The many
books on marriage, rape, adoption and so on, that I guiltily consulted at the
public libraries of big and small towns, told me nothing beyond darkly
insinuating that the state is the super-guardian of minor children. Pilvin and
Zapel, if I remember their names right, in an impressive volume on the legal
side of marriage, completely ignored stepfathers with motherless girls on their
hands and knees. My best friend, a social service monograph(Chicago, 1936),
which was dug out for me at great pains form a dusty storage recess by an
innocent old spinster, said "There is no principle that every minor must
have a guardian; the court is passive and enters the fray only when the child's
situation becomes conspicuously perilous." A guardian, I concluded, was
appointed only when he expressed his solemn and formal desire; but months might
elapse before he was given notice to appear at a hearing and grow his pair of
gray wings, and in the meantime the fair demon child was legally left to her
own devices which, after all, was the case of Dolores Haze. Then came the
hearing. A few questions from the bench, a few reassuring answers from the
attorney, a smile, a nod, a light drizzle outside, and the appointment was
made. And still I dared not. Keep away, be a mouse, curl up in yourhole. Courts
became extravagantly active only when there was some monetary question
involved: two greedy guardians, a robbed orphan, a third, still greedier,
party. But here all was in perfect order, and inventory had been made, and her
mother's small property was waiting untouched for Dolores Haze to grow up. The
best policy seemed to be to refrain from any application. Or would some busybody,
some Humane Society, butt in if I kept too quiet?
Friend Farlow,
who was a lawyer of sorts and ought to have been able to give me some solid
advice, was too much occupied with Jean's cancer to do anything more than what
he had promised-namely, to look after Chrlotte's meager estate while I
recovered very gradually from the shock of her death. I had conditioned him
into believing Dolores was my natural child, and so could not expect him to
bother his head about the situation. I am, as the reader must have gathered by
now, a poor businessman; but neither ignorance nor indolence should have
prevented me from seeking professional advice elsewhere. What stopped me ws the
awful feeling that if I meddled with fate in any way and tried to rationalize
her fantastic gift, that gift would be snatched away like that palace on the
mountain top in the Oriental tale which vanished whenever a prospective owner
asked its custodian how come a strip of sunset sky was clearly visible from
afar between black rock and foundation.
I decided that at
Beardsley (the site of Bearsley College for Women) I would have access to works
of reference that I had not yet been able to study, such as Woerner's Treatise
"On the American Law of Guardianship" and certain United States Children's
Bureau Publications. I also decided that anything was better for Lo than the
demoralizing idleness in which she lived. I could persuade her to do so many
things-their list mnight stupefy a professional educator; but no matter how I
pleaded or stormed, I could never make her read any other book than the
so-clled comic books or stories in magazines for American females. Any
literature a peg higher smacked to her of school, and though theoretically
willing to enjoy A Girl of the Limberlost or the Arabian Nights, or Little
Women, she was quite sure she would not fritter away her "vacation"
on such highbrow reading matter.
I now think it
was a great mistake to move east again and have her go to that private school
in Beardsley, instead of somehow scrambling across the Mexican border while the
scrambling was good so as to lie low for a couple of years in subtropical bliss
until I could safely marry my little Creole; for I must confess that depending
on the conditin of my glands and ganglia, I could switch in the course of the
same day from one pole of insanity to the other-from the thought that around
1950 I would have to get rid somehow of a difficult adolescent whose magic
nymphage had evaporated-to the thought that with patience and luckI might have
her produce eventually a nymphet with my blood in her exquisite veins, a Lolita
the Second, who would be eight or nine around 1960, when I would still be dans
la force de l'×ge; indeed, the telescopy of my mind, or un-mind, was
strong enough to distinguish in the remoteness of time a vieillard encore
vert-or was it green rot?-bizarre, tender, salivating Dr. Humbert, practicing
on supremely lovely Lolita the Third the art of being a granddad.
In the days of
that wild journey of ours, I doubted not that as father to Lolita the First I
was a ridiculous failure. I did my best; I read and reread a book with the
unintentionally biblical title Know Your Own Daughter, which I got at the same
store where I bought Lo, for her thirteenth birthday, a de luxe volume with
commercially "beautiful" illustrations, of Andersen's The Little
Mermaid. But even at our very best moments, when we sat reading on a rainy day
(Lo's glance skipping from the window to her wrist watch and back again), or
had a quiet hearty meal in a crowded diner, or played a childish game of cards,
or went shopping, or silently stared, with other motorists and their children,
at some smashed, blood-bespattered car with a young woman's shoe in the ditch
(Lo, as we drove on: "that was the exact type of moccasin I was trying to
describe to that jerk in the store"); on all those random occasions, I
seemed to myself as implausible a father as she seemed to be a daughter. Was,
perhaps, guilty locomotion instrumental in vitiating our powers of
impersonation? Would improvement be forthcoming with a fixed domicile and a
routine schoolgirl's day?
In my choice of
Beardsley I was guided not only by the fact of there being a comparatively
sedate school for girls located there, but also by the presence of the women's
college. In my desire to get myself casĘ, to attach myself somehow to some
patterned surface which my stripes would blend with, I thought of a man I knew
in the department of French at Beardsley College; he was good enough to use my
textbook in his classes and had attempted to get me over once to deliver a
lecture. I had no intention of doing so, since, as I have once remarked in the
course of these confessions, there are few physiques I loathe more than the
heavy low-slung pelvis, thick calves and deplorable complexion of the average
coed (in whom I see, maybe, the coffin of coarse female flesh within which my
nymphets are buried alive); but I did crave for a label, a background, and a
simulacrum, and, as presently will become clear, there was a reason, a rather
zany reason, why old Gaston Godin's company would be particularly safe.
Finally, there
was the money question. My income was cracking under the strain of our
joy-ride. True, I clung to the cheaper motor courts; but every now and then,
there would be a loud hotel de luxe, or a pretentious dude ranch, to mutilate
our budget; staggering sums, moreover, were expended on sightseeing and Lo's
clothes, and the old Haze bus, although a still vigorous and very devoted
machine, necessitated numerous minor and major repairs. In one of our strip
maps that has happened to survive among the papers which the authorities have
so kindly allowed me to use for the purpose of writing my statement, I find
some jottings that help me compute the following. During that extravagant year
1947-1948, August to August, lodgings and food cost us arround 5,500 dollars;
gas, oil and repairs, 1,234, and various extras almost as much; so that during
about 150 days of actual motion (we covered about 27,000 miles!) plus some 200
days of interpolated standstills, this modest rentier spent around 8,000
dollars, or better say 10,000 because, unpractical as I am, I have surely
forgotten a number of items.
And so we rolled
East, I more devastated than braced with the satisfaction of my passion, and
she glowing with health, her bi-iliac garland still as brief as a lad's,
although she had added two inches to her stature and eight pounds to her
weight. We had been everywhere. We had really seen nothing. And I catch myself
thinking that our long journey had only defiled with a sinuous trail of slime
the lovely, trustful, dreamy, enormous country that by then, in retrospect, was
no more to us than a collection of dog-eared maps, ruined tour books, old
tires, and her sobs in the night-every night, every night-the moment I feigned
sleep.
4
When, through
decorations of light and shade, we drove to 14 Thayer Street, a grave little
lad met us with the keys and a note from Gaston who had rented the house for
us. My Lo, without granting her new surroundings one glance, unseeingly turned
on the radio to which instinct led her and lay down on the living room sofa
with a batch of old magazines which in the same precise and blind manner she
landed by dipping her hand into the nether anatomy of a lamp table.
I really did not
mind where to dwell provided I could lock my Lolita up somewhere; but I had, I
suppose, in the course of my correspondence with vague Gaston, vaguely
visualized a house of ivied brick. Actually the place bore a dejected
resemblance to the Haze home (a mere 400 distant): it was the same sort of dull
gray frame affair with a shingled roof and dull green drill awnings; and the
rooms, though smaller and furnished in a more consistent plush-and-plate style,
were arranged in much the same order. My study turned out to be, however, a
much larger room, lined from floor to ceiling with some two thousand books on
chemistry which my landlord (on sabbatical leave for the time being) taught at
Beardsley College.
I had hoped
Beardsley School for girls, an expensive day school, with lunch thrown in and a
glamorous gymnasium, would, while cultivating all those young bodies, provide
some formal education for their minds as well. Gaston Godin, who was seldom
right in his judgment of American habitus, had warned me that the institution
might turn out to be one of those where girls are taught, as he put it with a
foreigner's love for such things: "not to spell very well, but to smell
very well." I don't think they achieved even that.
At my first
interview with headmistress Pratt, she approved of my child's "nice blue
eyes" (blue! Lolita!) and of my own friendship with that "French
genius" (a genius! Gaston!)-and then, having turned Dolly over to a Miss
Cormorant, she wrinkled her brow in a kind of recueillement and said:
"We are not
so much concerned, Mr. Humbird, with having our students become bookworms or be
able to reel off all the capitals of Europe which nobody knows anyway, or learn
by heart the dates of forgotten battles. What we are concerned with is the
adjustment of the child to group life. This is why we stress the four D's:
Dramatics, Dance, Debating and Dating. We are confronted by certain facts. Your
delightful Dolly will presently enter an age groupwhere dates, dating, date
dress, date book, date etiquette, mean as much to her as, say, business,
business connections, business success, mean to you, or as much as [smiling]
the happiness of my girls means to me. Dorothy Humbird is already involved in a
whole system of social life which consists, whether we like ti or not, of
hot-dog stands, corner drugstores, malts and cokes, movies, square-dancing,
blanket parties on beaches, and even hair-fixing parties! Naturally at
Beardsley School we disapprove of some of these activities; and we rechannel
others into more constructive directions. But we do try to turn our backs on
the fog and squarely face the sunshine. To put it briefly, while adopting
certain teaching techniques, we are more interested in communication than in
composition. That is, with due respect to Shakespeare and others, we want our
girls to communicate freely with the live world around them rather than plunge
into musty old books. We are still groping perhaps, but we grope intelligently,
like a gynecologist feeling a tumor. We thing, Dr. Humburg, in organissmal and
organizational terms. We have done away with the mass or irrelevant topics that
have traditionally been presented to young girls, leaving no place, in former
days, for the knowledges and the skills, and the attitudes they will need in
managing their lives and-as the cynic might add-the lives of their husbands.
Mr. Humberson, let us put it this way: the position of a star is important, but
the most practical spot for an icebox in the kitchen may be even more important
to the budding housewife. You say that all you expect a child to obtain from
school is a sound education. But what do we mean by education? In the old days
it was in the main a verbal phenomenon; I mean, you could have a child learn by
heart a good encyclopedia and he or she would know as much as or more than a
school could offer. Dr. Hummer, do you realize that for the modern
pre-adolescent child, medieval dates are of less vital value than weekend ones
[twinkle]?-to repeat a pun that I heard the Beardsley college psychoanalyst
permit herself the other day. We live not only in a world of thughts, but also
in a world of things. Wrds without experience are meaningless. What on earth
can Dorothy Hummerson care for Greece and the Orient with their harems and
slaves?"
This program
rather appalled me, but I spoke to two intelligent ladies who had been
connected with the school, and they affirmed that the girls did quite a bit of
sound reading and that the "communication" line was more or less
ballyhoo aimed at giving old-fashioned Beardsley School a financially
remunerative modern touch, though actually it remained as prim as a prawn.
Another reason
attracting me to that particular school may sweem funny to some readers, but it
was very important to me, for that is the way I am made. Across our street,
exactly in front of our house, there was, I noticed, a gap of weedy wasteland,
with some colorful bushes and a pile of bricks and a few scattered planks, and
the foam of shabby mauve and chrome autumn roadside flowers; and through that
gap you could see a shimmery section of School Rd., running parallel to our
Thayer St., and immediately beyond that, the playground of the school Apart
from the psychological comfort this general arrangement should afford me by
keeping Dolly's day adjacent to mine, I immediately foresaw the pleasure I
would have in distinguishing from my study-bedroom, by means of powerful
binoculars, the statistically inevitable percentage of nymphets among the other
girl children playing around Dolly during recess; unfortunately, on the very
first day of school, workmen arrived and put up a fence some way down the gap,
and in no time a construction of tawny wood maliciously arose beyond that fence
utterly blocking my magic vista; and as soon as they had erected a sufficient
amount of material to spoil everything, those absurd builders suspended their
work and never appeared again.
5
In a street
called Thayer Street, in the residential green, fawn, and golden of a mellow
academic townlet, one was bound to have a few amiable fine-dayers yelping at
you. I prided myself on the exact temperature of my relations with them: never
rude, always aloof. My west-door neighbor, who might have been a businessman or
a college teacher, or both, would speak to me once in a while as he barbered
some late garden blooms or watered his car, or, at a later date, defrosted his
driveway (I don't mind if these verbs are all wrong), but my brief grunts, just
suffice\iently articulate to sound like conventional assents or interrogative
pause-fillers, precluded any evolution toward chumminess. Of the two houses
flanking the bit of scrubby waste opposite, one was closed, and the other
contained two professors of English, tweedy and short-haired Miss Lester and
fadedly feminine Miss Fabian, whose only subject of brief sidewalk conversation
with me was (God bless their tact!) the young loveliness of my daughter and the
naĐve charm of Gaston Godin. My east-door neighbor was by far the most
dangerous one, a sharp-nosed stock character whose late brother had been
attached to the College as Superintendent of Buildings and Grounds. I remember
her waylaying Dolly, while I stood at the living room window, feverishly
awaiting my darling's return from school. The odious spinster, trying to
conceal her morbid inquisitiveness under a mask of dulcet goodwill, stood
leaning on her slim umbrella (the sleet had just stopped, a cold wet sun had
sidled out), and Dolly, her brown coat open despite the raw weather, her
structural heap of books pressed against her stomach, her knees showing pink
above her clumsy wellingtons, a sheepish frightened slittle smile flitting over
and off her snub-nosed face, which-owing perhaps to the pale wintry
light-looked almost plain, in a rustic, German, mÄgdlein-like way, as she
stood there and dealt with Miss East's questions "And where is your
mother, my dear? And what is your poor father's occupation? And where did you
love before?" Another time the loathsome creature accosted me with a
welcoming whine-but I evaded her; and a few days later there came from her a
note in a blue-margined envelope, a nice mixture of poison and treacle,
suggesting Dolly come over on a Sunday and curl up in a chair to look through
the "loads of beautiful books my dear mother gave me when I was a child,
instead of having the radio on at full blast till all hours of the night."
I had also to be
careful in regard to a Mrs. Holigan, a charwoman and cook of sorts whom I had
inherited with the vacuum cleaner from the previous tenants. Dolly got lunch at
school, so that this was no trouble, and I had become adept at providing her
with a big breakfast and warming up the dinner that Mrs. Holigan prepared
before leaving. That kindly and harmless woman had, thank God, a rather bleary
eye that missed details, and I had become a great expert in bedmaking; but
still I was continuously obsessed by the feeling that some fatal stain had been
left somewhere, or that, on the rare occasions where Holigan's presence
happened to coincide with Lo's, simple Lo might succumb to buxom sympathy in
the course of a cozy kitchen chat. I often felt we lived in a lighted house of
glass, and any moment some thin-lipped parchment face would peer through a
carelessly unshaded window to obtain a free glimpse of things that the most
jaded voyeur would have paid a small fortune to watch.
6
A word about
Gaston Godin. The main reason why I enjoyed-or at least tolerated with
relief-his company was the spell of absolute security that his ample person
cast on my secret. Not that he knew it; I had no special reason to confide in
him, and he was much too self-centered and abstract to notice or suspect
anything that might lead to a frank question on his part and a frank answer on
mine. He spoke well of me to Beardsleyans, he was my good herald. Had he
discovered mes goŮts and Lolita's status, it would have interested him
only insofar as throwing some light on the simplicity of my attitude towards
him, which attitude was as free of polite strain as it was of ribald allusions;
for despite his colorless mind and dim memory, he was perhaps aware that I knew
more about him than the burghers of Beardsley did. He was a flabby,
dough-faced, melancholy bachelor tapering upward to a pair of narrow, not quite
level shoulders and a conical pear-head which had sleek black hair on one side
and only a few plastered wisps on the other. But the lower part of his body was
enormous, and he ambulated with a curious elephantine stealth by means of
phenomentally stout legs. He always woer black, even his tie was black; he
seldom bathed; his English was a burlesque. And, nonetheless, everybody
considered him to be a supremely lovable, lovably freakish fellow! Neighbors
pampered him; he knew by name all the small boys in our vicinity (he lived a
few blocks away from me)and had some of them clean his sidewalk and burn leaves
in his back yard, and bring wood from his shed, and even perform simple chores
about the house, and he would feed them fancy chocolates, with real liqueurs
inside-in the privacy of an orientally furnished den in his basement, with
amusing daggers and pistols arrayed on the moldy, rug-adorned walls among the
camouflaged hot-water pipes. Upstairs he had a studio-he painted a little, the
old fraud. He had decorated its sloping wall (it was really not more than a
garret) with large photographs of pensive AndrĘ Gide, TchaĐkovsky,
Norman Douglas, two other well-known English writers, Nijinsky (all thighs and
fig leaves), Harold D. Doublename (a misty-eyed left-wing professor at a
Midwesten university) and Marcel Proust. All these poor people seemed about to
fall on you from their inclined plane. He had also an album with snapshots of
all the Jackies and Dickies of the neighborhood, and when I happened to thumb
through it and make some casual remark, Gaston would purse his fat lips and
murmur with a wistful pout "Oui, ils sont gentils." His brown eyes
would roam around the various sentimental and artistic bric-a-brac present, and
his own banal toiles (the conventionally primitive eyes, sliced guitars, blue
nipples and geometrical designs of the day), and with a vague gesture toward a
painted wooden bowl or veined vase, he would say "Prenez donc une de ces
poires. La bonne dame d'en face m'en offre plus que je n'en peux
savourer." Or: "Mississe Taille Lore vient de me donner ces dahlias,
belles fleurs que j'exÉcre." (Somber, sad, full of
world-weariness.)
For obvious
reasons, I preferred myhouse to his for the games of chess we had two or three
times weekly. He looked like some old battered idol as he sat with his pudgy
hands in his lap and stared at the board as if it were a corpse. Wheezing he
would mediate for ten minutes-then make a losing move. Or the good man, after
even more thought, might utter: Au roi! With a slow old-dog woof that had a
gargling sound at the back of it which made his jowls wabble; and then he would
lift his circumflex eyebrows with a deep sigh as I pointed out to him that he
was in check himself.
Sometimes, from
where we sat in my cold study I could hear Lo's bare feet practicing dance
techniques in the living room downstairs; but Gaston's outgoing senses were
comfortably dulled, and he remained unaware of those naked rhythms-and-one,
and-two, and-one, and-two, weight transferred on a straight right leg, leg up
and out to the side, and-one, and-two, and only when she started jumping,
opening her legs at the height of the jump, and flexing one leg, and extending
the other, and flying, and landing on her toes-only then did my pale, pompous,
morose opponent rub his head or cheek a if confusing those distant thuds with
the awful stabs of my formidable Queen.
Sometimes Lola
would slouch in while we pondered the board-and it was every time a treat to
see Gaston, his elephant eye still fixed on his pieces, ceremoniously rise to
shake hands with her, and forthwith release her limp fingers, and without
looking once at her, descend again into his chair to topple into the trap I had
laid for him. One day around Christmas, after I had not seen him for a
fortnight or so, he asked me "Et toutes vos fillettes, elles vont
bine?" from which it became evident to me that he had multiplied my unique
Lolita by the number of sartorial categories his downcast moody eye had
glimpsed during a whole series of her appearances: blue jeans, a skirt, shorts,
a quilted robe.
I am loath to
dwell so long on the poor fellow (sadly enough, a year later, during a voyage
to Europe, from which he did not return, he got involved in a sale histoire, in
Napes of all places!). I would have hardly alluded to him at all had not his
Beardsley existence had such a queer bearing on my case. I need him for my
defense. There he was devoid of any talent whatsoever, a mediocre teacher, a
worthless scholar, a glum repulsive fat old invert, highly contemptuous of the
American way of life, triumphantly ignorant of the English language-there he
was in priggish New England, crooned over by the old and caressed by the
young-oh, having a grand time and fooling everybody; and here was I.
7
I am now faced
with the distasteful task of recording a definite drop in Lolita's morals. If
her share in the ardors she kindled had never amounted to much, neither had
pure lucre ever come to the fore. But I was weak, I was not wise, my
school-girl nymphet had me in thrall. With the human element dwindling, the
passion, the tenderness, and the torture only increased; and of this she took
advantage.
Her weekly
allowance, paid to her under condition she fulfill her basic obligations, was
twenty-one cents at the start of the Beardsley era-and went up to one dollar
five before its end. This was a more than generous arrangement seeing she
constantly received from me all kinds of small presents and had for the asking
any sweetmeat or movie under the moon-although, of course, I might fondly
demand an additional kiss, or even a whole collection of assorted caresses,
when I knew she coveted very badly some item of juvenile amusement. She was,
however, not easy to deal with. Only very listlessly did she earn her three
pennies-or three nickels-per day; and she proved to be a cruel negotiator
whenever it was in her power to deny me certain life-wrecking, strange, slow
paradisal philters without which I could not live more than a few days in a
row, and which, because of the very nature of love's languor, I could not obtain
by force. Knowing the magic and might of her own soft mouth, she managed-during
one schoolyear!-to raise the bonus price of a fancy embrace to three, and even
four bucks! O Reader! Laugh not, as you imagine me, on the very rack of joy
noisily emitting dimes and quarters, and great big silver dollars like some
sonorous, jingly and wholly demented machine vomiting riches; and in the margin
of that leaping epilepsy she would firmly clutch a handful of coins in her
little fist, which, anyway, I used to pry open afterwards unless she gave me
the slip, scrambling away to hide her loot. And just as every other day I would
cruise all around the school area and on comatose feet visit drugstores, and
peer into foggy lanes, and listen to receding girl laughter in between my heart
throbs and the falling leaves, so every now and then I would burgle her room
and scrutinize torn papers in the wastebasket with the painted roses, and look
under the pillow of the virginal bed I had just made myself. Once I found eight
one-dollar notes in one of her books (fittingly-Treasure Island), and once a
hole in the wall behind Whistler's Mother yielded as much as twenty-four
dollars and some change-say twenty-four sixty-which I quietly removed, upon
which, next day, she accused, to my face, honest Mrs. Holigan of being a filthy
thief. Eventually, she lived up to her I.Q. by finding a safer hoarding place
which I never discovered; but by that time I had brought prices down
drastically by having her earn the hard and nauseous way permission to
participate in the school's theatrical program; because what I feared most was
not that she might ruin me, but that she might accumulate sufficient cash to
run away. I believe the poor fierce-eyed child had figured out that with a mere
fifty dollars in her urse she might somehow reach Broadway or Hollywood-or the
foul kitchen of a diner (Help Wanted) in a dismal ex-prairie state, with the
wind blowing, and the stars blinking, and the cars, and the bars, and the
barmen, and everything soiled, torn, dead.
8
I did my best,
your Honr, to tackele the problem of boys. Oh, I used even to read in the
Beardsley Star a so-called Column for Teens, to find out how to behave!
A word to
fathers. Don't frighten away daughter's friend. Maybe it is a bit hard for you
to realize that now the boys are finding her attractive. To you she is still a
little girl. To the boys she's charming and fun, lovely and gay. They like her.
Today you clinch big deals in an exectuvie's office, but yesterday you were
just highschool Jim carrying Jane's school books. Remember? Don't you want your
daughter, now that her turn has come, to be happy in the admiration and company
of boys she likes? Don't you want your daughter, now that her turn has come, to
be happy in the admiration and company of boys she likes? Don't you want them
to have wholesome fun together?
Wholesome fun?
Good Lord!
Why not treat the
young fellows as guests in your house? Why not make conversation with them?
Draw them out, make them laugh and feel at ease?
Welcome, fellow,
to this brdello.
If she breaks the
rules don't explode out loud in front of her partner in crime. Let her take the
brunt of your displeasure in private. And stop making the boys feel she's the
daughter of an old ogre.
First of all the
old ogre drew up a list under "absolutely forbidden" and another
under "reluctantly allowed." Absolutely forbidden were dates, single
or double or triple-the next step being of course mass orgy. She might visit a
candy bar with her girl friends, and there giggle-chat with occasional young
males, while I waited in the car at a discreet distance; and I promised her
that if her group were invited by a socially acceptable group in Butler's
Academy for Bo[ys for their annual ball (heavily chaperoned, of course), I
might consider the question whether a girl of fourteen can don her first
"formal" (a kind of gown that makes thin-armed teen-agers look like
flamingoes). Moreover, I promised her to throw a party a t our house to which
she would be allowed to invite her prettier girl friends and the nicer boys she
would have met by that time at the Butler dance. But I was quite positive that
as long as my regime lasted she would never, never be permitted to go with a
youngster in rut to a movie, or neck in a car, or go to boy-girl parties at the
housesof schoolmates, or indulge out of my earshot in boy-girl telephone
conversations, even if "only discussing his relations with a friend of
mine."
Lo was enraged by
all this-called me a lousy crook and worse-and I would probably have lost my
temper had I not soon discovered, to my sweetest relief, that what really
angered her was my depriving her not of a specific satisfaction but of a
general right. I was impinging, you see, on the conventional program, the stock
pastimes, the "things that are done," the routie of youth; for there
is nothing more conservative than a child, especially a girl-child, be she the
most auburn and russet, the most mythopoeic nymphet in October's orchard-haze.
Do not
misunderstand me. I cannot be absolutely certain that in the course of the
winter she did not manage to have, in a casual way, improper contacts with
unknown young fellows; of course, no matter how closely I controlled her
leisure, there would constantly occur unaccounted-for time leaks with
over-elaborate explanations to stop them up in retrospect; of course, my
jealousy would constantly catch its jagged claw in the fine fabrics of nymphet
falsity; but I did definitely feel-and can now vouchsafe for the accuracy of my
feeling-that there was no reason for serious alarm. I felt that way not because
I never once discovered any palpable hard young throat to crush among the
masculine mutes that flickered somewhere in the background; but because it was
to me "overwhelmingly obvious" (a favorite expression with my aunt
Sybil) that all varieties of high school boys-from the perspiring nincompoop
whom "holding hands" thrills, to the self-sufficient rapist with
pustules and a souped-up car-equally bored my sophisticated young mistress. "All
this noise about boys gags me," she had scrawled on the inside of a
schoolbook, and underneath, in Mona's hand (Mona is due any minute now), there
was the sly quip: "What about Rigger?" (due too).
Faceless, then,
are the chappies I happened to see in her company. There was for instance Red
Sweater who one day, the day we had the first snow-saw her home; from the
parlor window I observed them talking near our porch. She wre her first cloth
coat with a fur collar; there was a small brown cap on my favorite hairdo-the fringe
in front and the swirl at the sides and the natural curls at the back-and her
damp-dark moccasins and white socks were more sloppy than ever. She pressed as
usual her books to her chest while speaking or listening, and her feet gestured
all the time: she would stand on her left instep with her right toe, remove it
backward, cross her feet, rock slightly, sketch a few steps, and then start the
series all over again. There was Windbreaker who talked to her in front of a
restaurant one Sunday afternoon while his mother and sister attempted to walk
me away for a chat; I dragged along and looked back at my only love. She had
developed more than one conventional mannerism, such as the polite adolescent
way of showing one is literally "doubled up" with laughter by incling
one's head, and so (as she sensed my call), still feigning helpless merriment,
she walked backward a couple of steps, and then faced about, and walked toward
me with a fading smile. On the other hand, I greatly liked-perhaps because it
reminded me of her first unforgettable confession-her trick of sighing "oh
dear!" in humorous wistufl submission to fate, or emitting a long
"no-o" in a deep almost growling undertone when thye blow of fate had
actually fallen. Above all-since we are speaking of movement and youth-I liked
to see her spinning up and down Thayer Street on her beautiful young bicycle:
rising on the pedals to work on them lustily, then sinking back in a languid
posture while the speed wore itself off; and then she would stop at our mailbox
and, still astride, would flip through a magazine she found there, and put it
back, and press her tongue to one side of her upper lip and push off with her
foot, and again sprint through pale shade and sun.
On the whole she
seemed to me better adapted to her surroundings than I had hoped she would be
when considering my spoiled slave-child and the bangles of demeanor she
naĐvely affected the winter before in california. Although I could never
get used to the constant state of anxiety in which the guilty, the great, the
tenderhearted live, I felt I was doing my best in the way of mimicry. As I lay
on my narrow studio bed a fter asession of adoration and despair in Lolita's
cold bedroom, I used to review the concluded day by checking my own image as it
prowled rather than passed before the mind's red eye. I watched
dark-and-handsome, not un-Celtic, probably high-church, possibly very
high-church, Dr. Humbert see his daughter off to school I watched him greet
with his slow smile and pleasantly arched thick black ad-eyebrows good Mrs.
Holigan, who smelled of the plague (and would head, I knew, for master's gin at
the first opportunity). With Mr. West, retired executioner or writer of
religious tracts-who cared?-I saw neighbor what's his name, I think they are
French or Swiss, meditate in his frank-windowed study over a typewriter, rather
gaunt-profiled, an almost Hitlerian cowlick on his pale brow. Weekends, wearing
a well-tailored overcoat and brown gloves, Professor H. might be seen with his
daughter strolling to Walton Inn (famous for its violet-ribboned china bunnies
and chocolate boxes among which you sit and wait for a "table for
two" still filthy with your predecessor's crumbs). Seen on weekdays,
around one p.m. , saluting with dignity Argus-eyed East while maneuvering the
car out of the garage and around the damned evergreens, and down onto the
slippery road. Raising a cold eye from book to clock in the positively sultry
Beardsley College library, among bulky young women caught and petrified in the overflow
of human knowledge. Walking across the campus with the college clergyman, the
Rev. Rigger (who also taught Bible in Beardsley School). "Somebody told me
her mother was a celebrated actress killed in an airplane accident. Oh? My
mistake, I presume. Is that so? I see. How sad." (Sublimating her mother,
eh?) Slowly pushing my little pram through the labyrinth of the supermarket, in
the wake of Professor W., also a slow-moving and gentle widower with the eyes
of a goat. Shoveling the snow in my shirt-sleeves, a voluminous black and white
muffler around my neck. Following with no show of rapacious haste (even taking
time to wipe my feet on the mat) my school-girl daughter into the house. Taking
Dolly to the dentist-pretty nurse beaming at her-old magazines-ne montrez pas
vos zhambes. At dinner with Dolly in town, Mr. Edgar H. Humbert was seen eating
his steak in the continental knife-and-fork manner. Enjoying, in duplicate, a
concert: two marble-faced, becalmed Frenchmen sitting side by side, with
Monsieur H. H.'s musical little girl on her father's right, and the musical
little boy of Professor W. (father spending a hygienic evening in Providence)
on Monsieur G. G.'s left. Opening the garage, a square of light that engulfs
the car and is extinguished. Brightly pajamaed, jerking down the window shade
in Dolly's bedroom. Saturday morning, unseen, solemnly weighing the
winter-bleached lassie in the bathroom. Seen and heard Sunday morning, no
chruchgoer after all, saying don't be too late, to Dolly who is bound for the
covered court. Letting in a queerly observant schoolmate of Dolly's:
"First time I've seen a man wearing a smoking jacket, sir-except in
movies, of course."
9
Her girlfriends,
whom I looked forward to meet, proved on the whole disappointing. There was
Opal Something, and Linda Hall, and Avis Chapman, and Eva Rosen, and Mona Dahl
(save one, all these names are approximations, of course). Opal was a bashful,
formless, bespectacled, bepimpled creature who doted on Dolly who bullied her.
With Linda Hall the school tennis champion, Dolly played singles at least twice
a week: I suspect Linda was a true nymphet, but for some unknown reason she did
not come-was perhaps not allowed to come-to our house; so I recall her only as
a flash of natural sunshine on an indoor court. Of the rest, none had any
claims to nymphetry except Eva Rosen. Avis ws a plump lateral child with hairy
legs, while Mona, though handsome in a coarse sensual way and only a year older
than my aging mistress, had obviously long ceased to be a nymphet, if she ever
had been one. Eva Rosen, a displaced little person from France, was on the
other hand a good example of a not strikingly beautiful child revealing to the
perspicacious amateur some of the basic elements of nymphet charm, such as a perfect
pubescent figure and lingering eyes and high cheekbones. Her glossy copper hair
had Lolita's silkiness, and the features of her delicate milky-white face with
pink lips and silverfish eyelashes were less foxy than those of her likes-the
great clan of intra-racial redheads; nor did she sport their green uniform but
wore, as I remember her, a lot of black or cherry dark-a very smart black
pullover, for instance, and high-heeled black shoes, and garnet-red fingernail
polish. I spoke French to her (much to Lo's disgust). The child's tonalities
were still admirably pure, but for school words and play words she resorted to
current American and then a slight Brooklyn accent would crop up in her speech,
which was amusing in a little Parisian who went to a select New England school
with phoney British aspirations. Unfortunately, despite "that French kid's
uncle" being "a millionaire," Lo dropped Eva for some reason
before I had had time to enjoy in my modest way her fragrant presence in the
Humbert open house. The reader knows what importance I attached to having a
bevy of page girls, consolation prize nymphets, around my Lolita. For a while,
I endeavored to interest my senses in Mona Dahl who was a good deal around,
especially during the spring term when Lo and she got so enthusiastic about
dramatics. I have often wondered what secrets outrageously treacherous Dolores
Haze had imparted to Mona while blurting out to me by urgent and well-paid
request various really incredible details concerning an affair that Mona had
had with a marine at the seaside. It was characteristic of Lo that she chose
for her closest chum that elegant, cold, lascivious, experienced young female
whom I once heard (misheard, Lo swore) cheerfully say in the hallway to Lo-who
had remarked that her (Lo's) sweater was of virgin wool: "The only thing
about you that is, kiddo . . ." She had a curiously husky voice,
artificially waved dull dark hair, earrings, amber-brown prominent eyes and
luscious lips. Lo said teachers had remonstrated with her on her loading
herself with so much costume jewelry. Her hands trembled. She was burdened with
a 150 I.Q. And I also knew she had a tremendous chocolate-brown mole on he
womanish back which I inspected the night Lo and she had worn low-cut
pastel-colored, vaporous dresses for a dance at the Butler Academy.
I am anticipating
a little, but I cannot help running my memory all over the keyboard of that
shcool year. In the meeting my attempts to find out what kind of boys Lo knew,
Miss Dahl was elegantly evasive. Lo who had gone to play tennis at Linda's
country club had telephoned she might be a full half hour late, and so, would I
enteretain Mona who was coming to practice with her a scene from The Taming of
the Shrew. Using all the modulations, all the allure of manner and voice she
was capable of and staring at me with perhaps-could I be mistaken?-a faint
gleam of crystalline irony, beautiful Mona replied: "Well, sir, the fact
is Dolly is not much concerned with mere boys. Fact is, we are rivals. She and
I have a crush on the Reverend Rigger." (This was a joke-I have already
mentioned that gloomy giant of a man, with the jaw of a horse: he was to bore
me to near murder with his impressions of Switzerland at a tea party for
parents that I am unable to place correctly in terms of time.)
How had the ball
been? Oh, it had been a riot. A what? A panic. Terrific, in a word. Had Lo
danced a lot? Oh, not a frightful lot, just as much as she could stand. What
did she, languorous Mona, think of Lo? Sir? Did she think Lo was doing well at
school? Gosh, she certainly was quite a kid. But her general behavior was-? Oh,
she was a swell kid. But still? "Oh, she's a doll," concluded Mona,
and sighed abruptly, and picked up a book that happened to lie at hand, and with
a change of expression, falsely furrowing her brow, inquired: "Do tell me
about Ball Zack, sir. Is he really that good?" She moved up so close to my
chair that I made out through lotions and creams her uninteresting skin scent.
A sudden odd thought stabbed me: was my Lo playing the pimp? If so, she had
found the wrong substitute. Avoiding Mona'' cool gaze, I talked literature for
a minute. Then Dolly arrived-and slit her pale eyes at us. I left the two
friends to their own devices. One of the latticed squares in a small cobwebby
casement window at the turn of the staircase was glazed with ruby, and that raw
wound among the unstained rectangles and its asymmetrical position-a night's
move from the top-always strangely disturbed me.
10
Sometimes . . .
Come on, how often exactly, Bert? Can you recall four, five, more such
occasions? Or would no human heart have survived two or three? Sometimes (I
have nothing to say in reply to your question), while Lolita would be
haphazardly preparing her homework, sucking a pencil, lolling sideways in an
easy chair with both legs over its arm, I would shed all my pedagogic
restraint, dismiss all our quarrels, forget all my masculine pride-and
literally crawl on my knees to your chair, my Lolita! You would give me one
look-a gray furry question mark of a look: "Oh no, not again"
(incredulity, exasperation); for you never deigned to believe that I could,
without any specific designs, ever crave to bury my face in your plaid skirt,
my darling! The fragility of those bare arms of yours-how I longed to enfold
them, all your four limpid lovely limbs, a folded colt, and take your head
between my unworthy hands, and pull the temple-skin back on both sides, and
kiss your chinesed eyes, and-"Pulease, leave me alone, will you," you
would say, "for Christ's sake leave me alone." And I would get up
from the floor while you looked on, your face deliberately twitching in
imitation of my tic nerveux. But never mind, never mind, I am only a brute,
never mind, let us go on with my miserable story.
11
One Monday
forenoon, in December I think, Pratt asked me to come over for a talk. Dolly's
last report had been poor, I knew. But instead of contenting myself with some
such plausible explaination of this summons, I imagined all sort of horrors,
and had to fortify myself with a pint of my "pin" before I could face
the interview. Slowly, all Adam's apple and heart, I went up the steps of the
scaffold.
A huge women,
gray-haired, frowsy, with a broad flat nose and small eyes behind black-rimmed
glasses-"Sit down," she said, pointing to an informal and humiliating
hassock, while she perched with ponderous spryness on the arm of an oak chair.
For a moment or two, she peered at me with smiling curiosity.She had done it at
our first meeting, I recalled, but I could afford then to scowl back. Her eye
left me. She lapsed into thought-probably assumed. Making up her mind she
rubbed, fold on fold, her dark gray flannel skirt at the knee, dispelling a
trace of chalk or something. Then she said, still rubbing, not looking up:
"Let me ask
a blunt question, Mr. Haze. You are an old-fashioned Continental father, aren't
you?"
"Why,
no," I said, "conservative, perhaps, but not what you would call
old-fashioned."
She sighed,
frowned, then clapped her big plump hands together in a
let's-get-down-to-business manner, and again fixed her beady eyes upon me.
"Dolly
Haze," she said, "is a lovely child, but the onset of sexual maturing
seems to give her trouble."
I bowed slightly.
What else could I do?
"She is
still shuttling," said Miss Pratt, showing how with her liver-spotted
hands, "between the anal and genital zones of development. Basically she
is a lovely-"
"I beg your
pardon," I said, "what zones?"
"That's the
old-fashioned European in you!" cried Pratt delivering a slight tap on my
wrist watch and suddenly disclosing her dentures. "All I mean is that
biologic drives-do you smoke?-are not fused in Dolly, do not fall so to speak
into a-into a rounded pattern." Her hands held for a moment an invisible
melon.
"She is
attractive, birght though careless" (breathing heavily, without leaving
her perch, the woman took time out to look at the lovely child's report sheet
on the desk at her right). "Her marks are getting worse and worse. Now I
wonder, Mr. Haze-" Again the false meditation.
"Well,"
she went on with zest, "as for me, I do smoke, and, as dear Dr. Pierce
used to say: I'm not proud of it but I jeest love it." She lit up and the
smoke she exhaled from her nostrils was like a pair of tusks.
"Let me give
you a few details, it won't take a moment. Now here let me see [rummaging among
her papers]. She is defiant toward Miss Redcock and impossibly rude to Miss
Cormorant. Now here is one of our special research reports: Enjoys singing with
group in class though mind seems to wander. Crosses her knees and wags left leg
to rhythm. Type of by-words: a two-hundred-forty-two word area of the commonest
pubescent slang fenced in by a number of obviously European polysyllabics.
Sighs a good deal in class. Let me see. Yes. Now comes the last week in
November. Sighs a good deal in class. Chews gum vehemently. Does not bite her
nails though if she did, this would conform better to her general
pattern-scientifically speaking, of course. Menstruation, according to the
subject, well established. Belongs at present to no church organization. By the
way, Mr. Haze, her mother was-? Oh, I see. And you are-? Nobody's business is,
I suppose, God's business. Something else we wanted to know. She was no regular
home duties, I understand. Making a princess of your Dolly, Mr. Haze, he? Well,
what else have we got here? Handles books gracefully. Voice pleasant. Giggles
rather often. A little dreamy. Has private jokes of her own, transposing for
instance the first letters of some of her teachers names. Hair light and dark
brown, lustrous-well [laughing] you are aware of that, I suppose. Nose
unobstructed, feet high-arched, eyes-let me see, I had here somewhere a still
more recent report. Aha, here we are. Miss Gold says Dolly's tennis form is excellent
to superb, even better than Linda Hall's, but concentration and
point-accumulation are just "poor to fair." Miss Cormorant cannot
decide whether Dolly has exceptional emotional control or none at all. Miss
Horn reports she-I mean, Dolly-cannot verbalize her emotions, while according
to Miss Cole Dolly's metabolic efficiency is superfine. Miss Molar thinks Dolly
is myopic and should see a good ophthalmologist, but Miss Redcock insists that
the girl simulates eye-strain to get away with scholastic incompetence. And to
conclude, Mr. Haze, our researchers are wondering about something really
crucial. Now I want to ask you something. I want to know if your poor wife, or
yourself, or anyone else in the family-I understand she has several aunts and a
maternal grandfather in California?-oh, had!-I'm sorry-well, we all wonder if
anybody in the family has instructed Dolly in the process of mammalian
reproduction. The general impression is that fifteen-year-old Dolly remains
morbidly uninterested in sexual matters, or to be exact, represses her
curiosity in order to save her ignorance and self-dignity. All right-fourteen.
You see, Mr. Haze, Beardsley School does not believe in bees and blossoms, and
storks and love birds, but it does believe very strongly in preparing its
students for mutually satisfactory mating and successful child rearing. We feel
Dolly could make excellent progress if only she would put her mind to her work.
Miss Cormorant's report is significant in that respect. Dolly is inclined to
be, mildly speaking impudent. But all feel that primo, you should have your
family doctor tell her the facts of life and, secudno, that you allow her to
enjoy the company of her schoolmates' brothers at the Junior Club or in Dr.
Rigger's organization, or in the lovely homes of our parents."
"She may
meet boys at her own lovely home," I said.
"I hope she
will," said Pratt buoyantly. "When we questioned her about her
troubles, Dolly refused to discuss the home situation, but we have spoken to
some of her friends and really-well, for example, we insist you un-veto her
nonparticiaption in the dramatic group. You just must allow her to tak part in
The Hunted Enchanters. She was such a perfect little nymph in the try-out, and
sometime in spring the author will stay for a few days at Beardsley College and
may attend a rehearsal or two in our new auditorium. I mean it is all part of
the fun of being young and alive and beautiful. You must understand-"
"I always
thought of myself," I said, "as a very understanding father."
"Oh, no
doubt, no doubt, but Miss Cormorant thinks, and I am inclined to agree with
her, that Dolly is obsessed by sexual thoughts for which she finds no outlet,
and will tease and martyrize other girls, or even our younger instructors
because they do have innocent dates with boys."
"Shrugged my
shoulders. A shabby ĘmigrĘ.
"Let us put
our two heads together, Mr. Haze. What on earth is wrong with that child?"
"She seems
quite normal and happy to me," I said (disaster coming at last? Was I
found out? Had they got some hypnotist?).
"What
worries me," said Miss Pratt looking at her watch and starting to go over
the whole subject again, "is that both teachers and schoolmates find Dolly
antagonistic, dissatisfied, cagey-and everybody wonders why you are so firly
opposed to all the natural recreations of a normal child."
"Do you mean
sex play?" I asked jauntily, in despair, a cornered old rat.
"Well, I
certainly welcome this civilized terminology," said Pratt with a grin.
"But this is not quite the point. Under the auspices of Beardsley School,
dramatics, dances and other natural activities are not technically sex play,
though girls do meet boys, if that is what you object to."
"All
right," I said, my hassock exhaling a weary sign. "You win. She can
take part in that play. Provided male parts are taken by female parts."
"I am always
fascinated," said Pratt, "by the admirable way foreigners-or at least
naturalized Americans-use our rich language. I'm sure Miss Gold, who conducts
the play group, will be overjoyed. I notice she is one of the few teachers that
seem to like-I mean who seem to find Dolly manageable. This takes care of
general topics, I guess; now comes a special matter. We are in trouble
again."
Pratt paused
truculently, then rubbed her index finger under her nostrils with such vigor
that her nose performed a kind of war dance.
"I'm a frank
person," she said, "but conventions are conventions, and I find it
difficult . . . Let me put it this way . . . The Walkers, who live in what we
call around here the Duke's Manor, you know the great gray house on the
hill-they send their two girls to our school, and we have the niece of
President Moore with us, a really gracious child, not to speak of a number of
other prominent children. Well, under the circumstances, it is rather a jolt
when Dolly, who looks like a little lady, uses words which you as a foreigner
probably simply do not know or do not understand. Perhaps it might be
better-Would you like me to have Dolly come up here right away to discuss things?
No? You see-oh well, let's have it out. Dolly has written a most obscene
four-letter word which our Dr. Cutler tells me is low-Mexican for urinal with
her lipstick on some health pamphlets which Miss Redcock, who is getting
married in June, distributed among the girls, and we thought she should stay
after hours-another half hour at least. But if you like-"
"No," I
said, "I don't want to interfere with rules. I shall talk to her later. I
shall thrash it out."
"Do,"
said the woman rising from her chair arm. "And perhaps we can get together
again soon, and if things do not improve we might have Dr. Cutler analyze
her."
Should I marry
Pratt and strangle her?
". . .And
perhaps your family doctor might like to examine her physically-just a routine
check-up. She is in Mushroom-the last classroom along that passage."
Beardsley School,
it may be explained, copied a famous girls school in England by having
"traditional" nicknames for its various classrooms: Mushroom, Room-In
8, B-Room, Room-BA and so on. Mushroom was smelly, with a sepia print of
Reynolds' "Age of Innocence" above the chalkboard, and several rows
of clumsy-looking pupil desks. At one of these, my Lolita was reading the
chapter on "Dialogue" in Baker's Dramatic Technique, and all was very
quiet, and there was another girl with a very naked, porcelain-white neck and
wonderful platinum hair, who sat in front reading too, absolutely lost to the
world and interminably winding a soft curl around one finger, and I sat beside
Dolly just behind that neck and that hair, and unbuttoned my overcoat and for
sixty-five cents plus the permission to participate in the school play, had
Dolly put her inky, chalky, red-knuckled hand under the desk. Oh, stupid and
reckless of me, no doubt, but after the torture I had been subjected to, I
simply had to take advantage of a combination that I knew would never occur
again.
12
Around Christmas
she caught a bad chill and was examined by a friend of Miss Lester, a Dr. Ilse
Tristramson (hi, Ilse, you were a dear, uninquisitive soul, and you touched my
dove very gently). She diagnosed bronchitis, patted Lo on the back (all its
bloom erect because of the fever) and put her to bed for a week or longer. At
first she "ran a temperature" in American parlance, and I could not
resist the exquisite caloricity of unexpected delights-Venus febriculosa-though
it was a very languid Lolita that moaned and coughed and shivered in my
embrace. And as soon as she was well again, I threw a Party with Boys.
Perhaps I had
drunk a little too much in preparation for the ordeal. Perhaps I made a fool of
myself. The girls had decorated and plugged in a small fir tree-German custom,
except that colored bulbs had superseded wax candles. Records were chosen and
fed into my landlord's phonograph. Chic Dolly wore a nice gray dress with
fitted bodice and flared skirt. Humming, I retired to my study upstairs-and
then every ten or twenty minutes I would come down like an idiot just for a few
seconds; to pick up ostensibly my pipe from the mantelpiece or hunt for the
newspaper; and with every new visit these simple actions became harder to
perform, and I was reminded of the dreadfully distant days when I used to brace
myself to casually enter a room in the Ramsdale house where Little Carmen was
on.
The party was not
a success. Of the three girls invited, one did not come at all, and one of the
boys brought his cousin Roy, so there was a superfluity of two boys, and the
cousins knew all the steps, and the other fellows could hardly dance at all,
and most of the evening was spent in messing up the kitchen, and then endlessly
jabbering about what card game to play, and sometime later, two girls and four
boys sat on the floor of the living room, with all windows open, and played a
word game which Opal could not be made to understand, while Mona and Roy, a
lean handsome lad, drank ginger ale in the kitchen, sitting on the table and
dangling their legs, and hotly discussing Predestination and the Law of
Averages. After they had all gone my Lo said ugh, closed her eyes, and dropped
into a chair with all four limbs starfished to express the utmost disgust and
exhaustion and swore it was the most revolting bunch of boys she had ever seen.
I bought her a new tennis racket for that remark.
January was humid
and warm, and February fooled the forsythia: none of the townspeople had ever
seen such weather. Other presents came tumbling in. For her birthday I bought
her a bicycle, the doe-like and altogether charming machine already
mentioned-and added to this a History of Modern American Painting: her bicycle
manner, I mean her approach to it, the hip movement in mounting, the grace and
so on, afforded me supreme pleasure; but my attempt to refine her pictorial
taste was a failure; she wanted to know if the guy noon-napping on Doris Lee's
hay was the father of the pseudo-voluptuous hoyden in the foreground, and could
not understand why I said Grant Wood or Peter Hurd was good, and Reginald Marsh
or Frederick Waugh awful.
13
By the time
spring had touched up Thayer Street with yellow and green and pink, Lolita was
irrevocably stage-struck. Pratt, whom I chanced to notice one Sunday lunching
with some people at Walton Inn, caught my eye from afar and went through the
motion of sympathetically and discreetly clapping her hands while Lo was not
looking. I detest the theatre as being a primitive and putrid form,
historically speaking; a form that smacks of stone-age rites and communal
nonsense despite those individual injections of genius, such as, say,
Elizabethan poetry which a closeted reader automatically pumps out of the
stuff. Being much occupied at the time with my own literary labors, I did not
bother to read the complete text of The Enchanted Hunters, the playlet in which
Dolores Haze was assigned the part of a farmer's daughter who imagines herself
to be a woodland witch, or Diana, or something, and who, having got hold of a
book on hypnotism, plunges a number of lost hunters into various entertaining
trances before falling in her turn under the spell of a vagabond poet (Mona
Dahl). That much I gleaned from bits of crumpled and poorly typed script that
Lo sowed all over the house. The coincidence of the title with the name of an
unforgettable inn was pleasant in a sad little way: I wearily thought I had
better not bring it to my own enchantress's notice, lest a brazen accusation of
mawkishness hurt me even more than her failure to notice it for herself had
done. I assumed the playlet was just another, practically anonymous, version of
some banal legend. Nothing prevented one, of course, from supposing that in
quest of an attractive name the founder of the hotel had been immediately and
solely influenced by the chance fantasy of the second-rate muralist he had
hired, and that subsequently the hotel's name had suggested the play's title.
But in my credulous, simple, benevolent mind I happened to twist it the other
way round, and without giving the whole matter much though really, supposed
that mural, name and title had all been derived from a common source, from some
local tradition, which I, an alien unversed in New England lore, would not be
supposed to know. In consequence I was under the impression (all this quite
casually, you understand, quite outside my orbit of importance) that the
accursed playlet belonged to the type of whimsy for juvenile consumption,
arranged and rearranged many times, such as Hansel and Gretel by Richard Roe,
or The Sleeping Beauty by Dorothy Doe, or The Emperor's New Clothes by Maurice
Vermont and Marion Rumpelmeyer-all this to be found in any Plays for School
Actors or Let's Have a Play! In other words, I did not know-and would not have
cared, if I did -that actually The Enchanted Hunters was a quite recent and
technically original composition which had been produced for the first time
only three or four months ago by a highbrow group in New York. To me-inasmuch
as I could judge from my charmer's part-it seemed to be a pretty dismal kind of
fancy work, with echoes from Lenormand and Maeterlinck and various quiet
British dreamers. The red-capped, uniformly attired hunters, of which one was a
banker, another a plumber, a third a policeman, a fourth an undertaker, a fifth
an underwriter, a sixth an escaped convict (you see the possibilities!), went
through a complete change of mind in Dolly's Dell, and remembered their real
lives only as dreams or nightmares from which little Diana had aroused them;
but a seventh Hunter (in a green cap, the fool) was a Young Poet, and he
insisted, much to Diana's annoyance, that she and the entertainment provided
(dancing nymphs, and elves, and monsters) were his, the Poet's, invention. I
understand that finally, in utter disgust at his cocksureness, barefooted
Dolores was to lead check-trousered Mona to the paternal farm behind the
Perilous Forest to prove to the braggart she was not a poet's fancy, but a
rustic, down-to-brown-earth lass-and a last-minute kiss was to enforce the
play's profound message, namely, that mirage and reality merge in love. I
considered it wiser not to criticize the thing in front of Lo: she was so
healthily engrossed in "problems of expression," and so charmingly
did she put her narrow Florentine hands together, batting her eyelashes and
pleading with me not to come to rehearsals as some ridiculous parents did
because she wanted to dazzle me with a perfect First Night-and because I was,
anyway, always butting in and saying the wrong thing, and cramping her style in
the presence of other people.
There was one
very special rehearsal . . . my heart, my heart . . . there was one day in May
marked by a lot of gay flurry-it all rolled past, beyond my ken, immune to my
memory, and when I saw Lo next, in the late afternoon, balancing on her bike,
pressing the palm of her hand to the damp bark of a young birch tree on the
edge of our lawn, I was so struck by the radiant tenderness of her smile that
for an instant I believed all our troubles gone. "Can you remember,"
she said, "what was the name of that hotel, you know [nose pucketed], come
on, you know-with those white columns and the marble swan in the lobby? Oh, you
know [noisy exhalation of breath]-the hotel where you raped me. Okay, skip it.
I mean, was it [almost in a whisper] The Enchanted Hunters? Oh, it was?
[musingly] Was it?"-and with a yelp of amorous vernal laughter she slapped
the glossy bole and tore uphill, to the end of the street, and then rode back,
feet at rest on stopped pedals, posture relaxed, one hand dreaming in her
print-flowered lap.
14
Because it
supposedly tied up with her interest in dance and dramatics, I had permitted Lo
to take piano lessons with a Miss Emperor (as we French scholars may
conveniently call her) to whose blue-shuttered little white house a mile or so
beyond Beardsley Lo would spin off twice a week. One Friday night toward the
end of May (and a week or so after the very special rehearsal Lo had not had me
attend) the telephone in my study, where I was in the act of mopping up
Gustave's-I mean Gaston's-king's side, rang and Miss Emperor asked if Lo was
coming next Tuesday because she had missed last Tuesday's and today's lessons.
I said she would by all means-and went on with the game. As the reader may well
imagine, my faculties were now impaired, and a move or two later, with Gaston
to play, I noticed through the film of my general distress that he could
collect my queen; he noticed it too, but thinking it might be a trap on the
part of his tricky opponent, he demurred for quite a minute, and puffed and
wheezed, and shook his jowls, and even shot furtive glances at me, and made
hesitating half-thrusts with his pudgily bunched fingers-dying to take that
juicy queen and not daring-and all of a sudden he swooped down upon it (who
knows if it did not teach him certain later audacities?), and I spent a dreary
hour in achieving a draw. He finished his brandy and presently lumbered away,
quite satisfied with this result (mon pauvre ami, je ne vous ai jamais revu et
quoiqu'il y ait bien peu de chance que vous voyiez mon livre, permiettez-moi de
vous dire que je vous serre la main bien cordialement, et que toutes mes
fillettes vous saluent). I found Dolores Haze at the kitchen table, consuming a
wedge of pie, with her eyes fixed on her script. They rose to meet mine with a
kind of celestial vapidity. She remained singularly unruffled when confronted
with my discovery, and said d'un petit air faussement contrit that she knew she
was a very wicked kid, but simply had not been able to resist the enchantment,
and had used up those music hours-O Reader, My Reader!-in a nearby public park
rehearsing the magic forest scene with Mona. I said "fine"-and
stalked to the telephone. Mona's mother answered: "Oh yes, she's in"
and retreated with a mother's neutral laugh of polite pleasure to shout off
stage "Roy calling!" and the very next moment Mona rustled up, and
forthwith, in a low monotonous not untender voice started berating Roy for
something he had said or done and I interrupted her, and presently Mona was
saying in her humbles, sexiest contralto, "yes, sir," "surely,
sir" "I am alone to blame, sir, in this unfortunate business,"
(what elocution! what poise!) "honest, I feel very bad about it"-and
so on and so forth as those little harlots say.
So downstairs I
went clearing my throat and holding my heart. Lo was now in the living room, in
her favorite overstuffed chair. As she sprawled there, biting at a hangnail an
mocking me with her heartless vaporous eyes, and all the time rocking a stool
upon which she had placed the heel of an outstretched shoeless foot, I
perceived all at once with a sickening qualm how much she had changed since I
first met her two years ago. Or had this happened during those last two weeks?
Tendresse? Surely that was an exploded myth. She sat right in the focus of my
incandescent anger. The fog of all lust had been swept away leaving nothing but
this dreadful lucidity. Oh, she had changed! Her complexion was now that of any
vulgar untidy highschool girl who applies shared cosmetics with grubby fingers
to an unwashed face and does not mind what soiled texture, what pustulate
epidermis comes in contact with her skin. Its smooth tender bloom had been so
lovely in former days, so bright with tears, when I used to roll, in play, her
tousled head on my knee. A coarse flush had now replaced that innocent
fluorescence. What was locally known as a "rabbit cold" had painted
with flaming pink the edges of her contemptuous nostrils. As in terror I
lowered my gaze, it mechanically slid along the underside of her tensely
stretched bare thigh-how polished and muscular her legs had grown! She kept her
wide-set eyes, clouded-glass gray and slightly bloodshot, fixed upon me, and I
saw the stealthy thought showing through them that perhaps after all Mona was
right, and she, orphan Lo, could expose me without getting penalized herself. How
wrong I was. How mad I was! Everything about her was of the same exasperating
impenetrable order-the strength of her shapely legs, the dirty sole of her
white sock, the thick sweater she wore despite the closeness of the room, her
wenchy smell, and especially the dead end of her face with its strange flush
and freshly made-up lips. Some of the red had left stains on her front teeth,
and I was struck by a ghastly recollection-the evoked image not of Monique, but
of another young prostitute in a bell-house, ages ago, who had been snapped up
by somebody else before I had time to decide whether her mere youth warranted
my risking some appalling disease, and who had just such flushed prominent
pommettes and a dead maman, and big front teeth, and a bit of dingy red ribbon
in her country-brown hair.
"Well,
speak," said Lo. "Was the corroboration satisfactory?"
"Oh,
yes," I said. "Perfect. yes. And I do not doubt you two made it up.
As a matter of fact, I do not doubt you have told her everything about
us."
"Oh, yah?"
I controlled my
breath and said: "Dolores, this must stop right away. I am ready to yank
you out of Beardsley and lock you up you know where, but this must stop. I am
ready to take you away the time it takes to pack a suitcase. This must stop or
else anything may happen."
"Anything
may happen, huh?"
I snatched away
the stool she was rocking with her heel and her foot fell with a thud on the
floor.
"Hey,"
she cried, "take it easy."
"First of
all you go upstairs," I cried in my turn,-and simultaneously grabbed at
her and pulled her up. From that moment, I stopped restraining my voice, and we
continued yelling at each other, and she said, unprintable things. She said she
loathed me. She made monstrous faces at me, inflating her cheeks and producing
a diabolical plopping sound. She said I had attempted to violate her several
times when I was her mother's roomer. She said she was sure I had murdered her
mother. She said she would sleep with the very first fellow who asked her and I
could do nothing about it. I said she was to go upstairs and show me all her
hiding places. It was a strident and hateful scene. I held her by her knobby
wrist and she kept turning and twisting it this way and that, surreptitiously
trying to find a weak point so as to wrench herself free at a favorable moment,
but I held her quite hard and in fact hurt her rather badly for which I hope my
heart may rot, and once or twice she jerked her arm so violently that I feared
her wrist might snap, and all the while she stared at me with those
unforgettable eyes where could anger and hot tears struggled, and our voices
were drowning the telephone, and when I grew aware of its ringing she instantly
escaped.
With people in
movies I seem to share the services of the machina telephonica and its sudden
god. This time it was an irate neighbor. The east window happened to be agape
in the living room, with the blind mercifully down, however; and behind it the
damp black night of a sour New England spring had been breathlessly listening
to us. I had always thought that type of haddocky spinster with the obscene
mind was the result of considerable literary inbreeding in modern fiction; but
now I am convinced that prude and prurient Miss East-or to explode her
incognito, Miss Fenton Lebone-had been probably protruding three-quarter-way
from her bedroom window as she strove to catch the gist of our quarrel.
". . . This
racket . . . lacks all sense of . . . " quacked the receiver, "we do
not live in a tenement here. I must emphatically . . . "
I apologized for
my daughter's friends being so loud. Young people, you know-and cradled the
next quack and a half.
Downstairs the
screen door banged. Lo? Escaped?
Through the
casement on the stairs I saw a small impetuous ghost slip through the shrubs; a
silvery dot in the dark-hub of the bicycle wheel-moved, shivered, and she was
gone.
It so happened
that the car was spending the night in a repair shop downtown. I had no other
alternative than to pursue on foot the winged fugitive. Even now, after more
than three years have heaved and elapsed, I cannot visualize that spring-night
street, that already so leafy street, without a gasp of panic. Before their
lighted porch Miss Lester was promenading Miss Favian's dropsical dackel. Mr.
Hyde almost knocked it over. Walk three steps and runt three. A tepid rain
started to drum on the chestnut leaves. At the next corner, pressing Lolita
against an iron railing, a blurred youth held and kissed-no, not her, mistake.
My talons still tingling, I flew on.
Half a mile or so
east of number fourteen, Thayer Street tangles with a private lane and a cross
street; the latter leads to the town proper; in front of the first drugstore, I
saw-with what melody of relief!-Lolita's fair bicycle waiting for her. I pushed
instead of pulling, pulled, pushed, pulled, and entered. Look out! some ten
paces away Lolita, though the glass of a telephone booth (membranous god still
with us), cupping the tube, confidentially hunched over it, slit her eyes at
me, turned away with her treasure, hurriedly hung up, and walked out with a
flourish.
"Tried to
reach you at home," she said brightly. "A great decision has been
made. But first buy me a drink, dad."
She watched the
listless pale fountain girl put in the ice, pour in the coke, add the cherry syrup-and
my heart was bursting with love-ache. That childish wrist. My lovely child. You
have a lovely child, Mr. Humbert. We always admire her as she passes by. Mr.
Pim watched Pippa suck in the concoction.
J'ai toujours
admirĘ l'aeuvre du sublime dublinois. And in the meantime the rain had
become a voluptuous shower.
"Look,"
she said as she rode the bike beside me, one foot scraping the darkly
glistening sidewalk, "look, I've decided something. I want to leave school
I hate that school I hate the play, I really do! Never go back. Find another.
Leave at once. Go for a long trip again. But this time we'll go wherever I
want, won't we?"
I nodded. My
Lolita.
"I choose?
C'est entendu?" she asked wobbling a little beside me. Used French only
when she was a very good little girl.
"Okay.
Entendu. Now hop-hop-hop, Lenore, or you'll get soaked." (A storm of sobs
was filling my chest.)
She bared her
teeth and after her adorable school-girl fashioned, leaned forward, and away
she sped, my bird.
Miss Lester's
finely groomed hand held a porch-door open for a waddling old dog qui prenait
son temps.
Lo was waiting
for me near the ghostly birch tree.
"I am
drenched," she declared at the top of her voice. "Are you glad? To
hell with the play! See what I mean?"
An invisible
hag's claw slammed down an upper-floor window.
In our hallway,
ablaze with welcoming lights, my Lolita peeled off her sweater, shook her
gemmed hair, stretched towards me two bare arms, raised one knee:
"Carry me
upstairs, please. I feel sort of romantic tonight."
It may interest
physiologists to learn, at this point, that I have the ability-a most singular
case, I presume-of shedding torrents of tears throughout the other tempest.
15
The brakes were
relined, the waterpipes unclogged, the valves ground, and a number of other
repairs and improvements were paid for by not very mechanically-minded but
prudent papa Humbert, so that the late Mrs. Humbert's car was in respectable
shape when ready to undertake a new journey.
We had promised
Beardsley School, good old Beardsley School, that we would be back as soon as
my Hollywood engagement came to an end (inventive Humbert was to be, I hinted,
chief consultant in the production of a film dealing with
"existentialism," still a hot thing at the time). Actually I was
toying with the idea of gently trickling across the Mexican border-I was braver
now than last year-and there deciding what to do with my little concubine who
was now sixty inches tall and weighed ninety pounds. We had dug out our tour
books and maps. She had traced our route with immense zest. Was it thanks to
those theatricals that she had now outgrown her juvenile jaded airs and was so
adorably keen to explore rich reality? I experienced the queer lightness of
dreams that pale but warm Sunday morning when we abandoned Professor Chem's
puzzled house and sped along Main Street toward the four-lane highway. My
Love's striped, black-and-white cotton frock, jauntry blue with the large
beautifully cut aquamarine on a silver chainlet, which gemmed her throat: a
spring rain gift from me. We passed the New Hotel, and she laughed. "A
penny for your thoughts," I said and she stretched out her palm at once,
but at that moment I had to apply the breaks rather abruptly at a red light. As
we pulled up, another car came to a gliding stop alongside, and a very striking
looking, athletically lean young woman (where had I seen her?) with a high
complexion and shoulder-length brilliant bronze hair, greeted Lo with a ringing
"Hi!"-and then, addressing me, effusively, edusively (placed!),
stressing certain words, said: "What a shame to was to tear Dolly away
from the play-you should have heard the author raving about her after that
rehearsal-" "Green light, you dope," said Lo under her breath,
and simultaneously, waving in bright adieu a bangled arm, Joan of Arc (in a
performance we saw at the local theatre) violently outdistanced us to swerve
into Campus Avenue.
"Who was it
exactly? Vermont or Rumpelmeyer?"
"No-Edusa
Gold-the gal who coaches us."
"I was not
referring to her. Who exactly concocted that play?"
"Oh! Yes, of
course. Some old woman, Clare Something, I guess. There was quite a crowd of
them there."
"So she
complimented you?"
"Complimented
my eye-she kissed me on my pure brow"-and my darling emitted that new yelp
of merriment which-perhaps in connection with her theatrical mannerisms-she had
lately begun to affect.
"You are a
funny creature, Lolita," I said-or some such words. "Naturally, I am
overjoyed you gave up that absurd stage business. But what is curious is that
you dropped the whole thing only a week before its natural climax. Oh, Lolita,
you should be careful of those surrenders of yours. I remember you gave up
Ramsdale for camp, and camp for a joyride, and I could list other abrupt
changes in your disposition. You must be careful. There are things that should
never be given up. You must persevere. You should try to be a little nicer to
me, Lolita. You should also watch your diet. The tour of your thigh, you know,
should not exceed seventeen and a half inches. More might be fatal (I was
kidding, of course). We are now setting out on a long happy journey. I
remember-"
16
I remember as a
child in Europe gloating over a map of North America that had "Appalachian
Mountains" boldly running from Alabama up to New Brunswick, so that the
whole region they spanned-Tennessee, the Virginias, Pennsylvania, New York,
Vermont, New Hampshire and Maine, appeared to my imagination as a gigantic
Switzerland or even Tibet, all mountain, glorious diamond peak upon peak, giant
conifers, le montagnard ĘmigrĘ in his bear skin glory, and Felis
tigris goldsmithi, and Red Indians under the catalpas. That it all boiled down
to a measly suburban lawn and a smoking garbage incinerator, was appalling.
Farewell, Appalachia! Leaving it, we crossed Ohio, the three states beginning
with "I," and Nebraska-ah, that first whiff of the West! We traveled
very leisurely, having more than a week to reach Wace, Continental Divide,
where she passionately desired to see he Ceremonial Dances marking the seasonal
opening of Magic Cave, and at least three weeks to reach Elphinstone, gem of a
western State where she yearned to climb Red Rock from which a mature screen
star had recently jumped to her death after a drunken row with her gigolo.
Again we were
welcomed to wary motels by means of inscriptions that read:
"We wish you
feel at home while here. All equipment was carefully checked upon your arrival.
Your license number is on record here. Use hot water sparingly. We reserve the
right to eject without notice any objectionable person. Do not throw waste
material of any kind in the toilet bowl. Thank you. Call again. The Management.
P.S. We consider our guests the Finest People of the World."
In these
frightening places we paid ten for twins, flies queued outside at the
screenless door and successfully scrambled in, the ashes of our predecessors
still lingered in the ashtrays, a woman's hair lay on the pillow, one heard
one's neighbor hanging his coat in his closet, the hangers were ingeniously
fixed to their bars by coils of wire so as to thwart theft, and, in crowning
insult, the pictures above the twin beds were identical twins. I also noticed
that commercial fashion was changing. There was a tendency for cabins to fuse
and gradually form the caravansary, and, lo (she was not interested but the
reader may be), a second story was added, and a lobby grew in, and cars were
removed to a communal garage, and the motel reverted to the good old hotel.
I now warn the
reader not to mock me and my mental daze. It is easy for him and me to decipher
now a past destiny; but a destiny in the making is, believe me, not one of
those honest mystery stories where all you have to do is keep an eye on the
clues. In my youth I once read a French detective tale where the clues were
actually in italics; but that is not McFate's way-even if one does learn to
recognize certain obscure indications.
For instance: I
would not swear that there was not at least one occasion, prior to, or at the
very beginning of, the Midwest lap of our journey, when she managed to convey
some information to, or otherwise get into contact with, a person or persons
unknown. We had stopped at a gas station, under the sign of Pegasus, and she
had slipped out of her seat and escaped to the rear of the premises while the
raised hood, under which I had bent to watch the mechanic's manipulations, hid
her for a moment from my sight. Being inclined to be lenient, I only shook my
benign head though strictly speaking such visits were taboo, since I felt
instinctively that toilets-as also telephones-happened to be, for reasons
unfathomable, the points where my destiny was liable to catch. We all have such
fateful objects-it may be a recurrent landscape in one case, a number in
another-carefully chosen by the gods to attract events of special significance
for us: here shall John always stumble; there shall Jane's heart always break.
Well-my car had
been attended to, and I had moved it away from the pumps to let a pickup truck
be serviced-when the growing volume of her absence began to weigh upon me in
the windy grayness. Not for the first time, and not for the last, had I stared
in such dull discomfort of mind at those stationary trivialities that look
almost surprised, like staring rustics, to find themselves in the stranded
traveler's field of vision: that green garbage can, those very black, very
whitewalled tires for sale, those bright cans of motor oil, that red icebox
with assorted drinks, the four, five, seven discarded bottles within the
incompleted crossword puzzle of their wooden cells, that bug patiently walking
up the inside of the window of the office. Radio music was coming from its open
door, and because the rhythm was not synchronized with the heave and flutter
and other gestures of wind-animated vegetation, one had the impression of an
old scenic film living its own life while piano or fiddle followed a line of
music quite outside the shivering flower, the swaying branch. The sound of
Charlotte's last sob incongruously vibrated through me as, with her dress
fluttering athwart the rhythm, Lolita veered from a totally unexpected
direction. She had found the toilet occupied and had crossed over to the sign
of the Conche in the next block. They said there they were proud of their home-clean
restrooms. These prepaid postcards, they said, had been provided for your
comments. No postcards. No soap. Nothing. No comments.
That day or the
next, after a tedious drive through a land of food crops, we reached a pleasant
little burg and put up at Chestnut Court-nice cabins, damp green grounds, apple
trees, an old swing-and a tremendous sunset which the tried child ignored. She
had wanted to go through Kasbeam because it was only thirty miles north from
her home town but on the following morning I found her quite listless, with no
desire to see again the sidewalk where she had played hopscotch some five years
before. For obvious reasons I had rather dreaded that side trip, even though we
had agreed not to make ourselves conspicuous in any way-to remain in the car
and not look up old friends. My relief at her abandoning the project was
spoiled by the thought that had she felt I were totally against the nostalgic
possibilities of Pisky, as I had been last year, she would not have given up so
easily. On my mentioning this with a sigh, she sighed too and complained of
being out of sorts. She wanted to remain in bed till teatime at least, with
lots of magazines, and then if she felt better she suggested we just continue
westward. I must say she was very sweet and languid, and craved for fresh
fruits, and I decided to go and fetch her a toothsome picnic lunch in Kasbeam.
Our cabin stood on the timbered crest of a hill, and from our window you could
see the road winding down, and then running as straight as a hair parting
between two rows of chestnut trees, towards the pretty town, which looked
singularly distinct and toylike in the pure morning distance. One could make
out an elf-like girl on an insect-like bicycle, and a dog, a bit too large
proportionately, all as clear as those pilgrims and mules winding up wax-pale
roads in old paintings with blue hills and red little people. I have the
European urge to use my feet when a drive can be dispensed with, so I leisurely
walked down, eventually meeting the cyclist-a plain plump girl with pigtails,
followed by a huge St. Bernard dog with orbits like pansies. In Kasbeam a very
old barber gave me a very mediocre haircut: he babbled of a baseball-playing
son of his, and, at every explodent, spat into my neck, and every now and then
wiped his glasses on my sheet-wrap, or interrupted his tremulous scissor work
to produce faded newspaper clippings, and so inattentive was I that it came as
a shock to realize as he pointed to an easeled photograph among the ancient gray
lotions, that the mustached young ball player had been dead for the last thirty
years.
I had a cup of
hot flavorless coffee, bought a bunch of bananas for my monkey, and spent
another ten minutes or so in a delicatessen store. At least an hour and a half
must have elapsed when this homeward-bound little pilgrim appeared on the
winding road leading to Chestnut Castle.
The girl I had
seen on my way to town was now loaded with linen and engaged in helping a
misshapen man whose big head and coarse features reminded me of the
"Bertoldo" character in low Italian comedy. They were cleaning the
cabins of which there was a dozen or so on Chestnut Crest, all pleasantly
spaced amid the copious verdure. It was noon, and most of them, with a final
bang of their screen doors, had already got rid of their occupants. A very
elderly, almost mummy-like couple in a very new model were in the act of
creeping out of one of the contiguous garages; from another a red hood
protruded in somewhat cod-piece fashion; and nearer to our cabin, a strong and
handsome young man with a shock of black hair and blue eyes was putting a
portable refrigerator into a station wagon. For some reason he gave me a
sheepish grin as I passed. On the grass expanse opposite, in the many-limbed
hsade of luxuriant trees, the familiar St. Bernard dog was guarding his
mistress' bicycle, and nearby a young woman, far gone in the family way, had
seated a rapt baby on a swing and was rocking it gently, while a jealous boy of
two or three was making a nuisance of himself by trying to push or pull the
swing board; he finally succeeded in getting himself knocked down by it, and
bawled loudly as he lay supine on the grass while his mother continued to smile
gently at neither of her present children. I recall so clearly these miniatiae
probably because I was to check my impressions so thoroughly only a few minutes
later; and besides, something in me had been on guard ever since that awful
night in Beardsley. I now refused to be diverted by the feeling of well-being
that my walk had engendered-by the young summer breeze that enveloped the nape
of my neck, the giving crrunch of the damn gravel, the juice tidbit. I had
sucked out at last from a hollowy tooth, and even the comfortable weight of my
provisions which the general condition of my heart should not have allowed me
to carry; but even that miserable pump of mine seemed to be working sweetly,
and I felt adolori d'amoureuse langueur, to quote dear old Ronsard, as I
reached the cottage where I had left my Dolores.
To my surprise I
found her dressed. She was sitting on the edge of the bed in slacks and T-shirt,
and was looking at me as if she could not quite place me. The frank soft shape
of her small breasts was brought out rather than blurred by the limpness of her
thin shirt, and this frankness irritated me. She had not washed; yet her mouth
was freshly though smudgily painted, and her broad teeth glistened like
wine-tinged ivory, or pinkish poker chips. And there she sat, hands clasped in
her lap, and dreamily brimmed with a diabolical glow that had no relations to
me whatever.
I plumped down my
heavy paper bag and stood staring at the bare ankles of her sandaled feet, then
at her silly face, then again at her sinful feet. "You've been out,"
I said (the sandals were filthy with gravel).
"I just got
up," she replied, and added upon intercepting my downward glance:
"Went out for a sec. Wanted to see if you were coming back."
She became aware
of the bananas and uncoiled herself tableward.
What special
suspicion could I have? None indeed-but those muddy, moony eyes of hers, that
singular warmth emanating from her! I said nothing. I looked at the road
meandering so distinctly within the frame of the window. . . Anybody wishing to
betray my trust would have found it a splendid lookout. With rising appetite,
Lo applied herself to the fruit. All at once I remembered the ingratiating grin
of the Johnny next door. I stepped out quickly. All cars had disappeared except
his station wagon; his pregnant young wife was not getting into it with her
baby and the other, more or less canceled, child.
"What's the
matter, where are you going?" cried Lo from the porch.
I said nothing. I
pushed her softness back into the room and went in after her. I ripped her
shirt off. I unzipped the rest of her, I tore off her sandals. Wildly, I
pursued the shadow of her infidelity; but the scent I traveled upon was so
slight as to be practically undistinguishable from a madman's fancy.
17
Gros Gaston, in
his prissy way, had liked to make presents-presents just a prissy wee bit out
of the ordinary, or so he prissily thought. Noticing one night that my box of
chessmen was broken, he sent me next morning, with a little lad of his, a
copper case: it had an elaborate Oriental design over the lid and could be
securely locked. Once glance sufficed to assure me that it was one of those
cheap money boxes called for some reason "luizettas" that you buy in
Algiers and elsewhere, and wonder what to do with afterwards. It turned out to
be much too flat for holding my bulky chessmen, but I kept it-using it for a
totally different purpose.
In order to break
some pattern of fate in which I obscurely felt myself being enmeshed, I had
decided-despite Lo's visible annoyance-to spend another night at Chestnut
Court; definitely waking up at four in the morning, I ascertained that Lo was
still sound asleep (mouth open, in a kind of dull amazement at the curiously
inane life we all had rigged up for her) and satisfied myself that the precious
contents of the "luizetta" were safe. There, snugly wrapped in a
white woolen scarf, lay a pocket automatic: caliber .32, capacity of magazine 8
cartridges, length a little under one ninth of Lolita's length, stock checked
walnut, finish full blued. I had inherited it from the late Harold Haze, with a
1938 catalog which cheerily said in part: "Particularly well adapted for
use in the home and car as well as on the person." There it lay, ready for
instant service on the person or persons, loaded and fully cocked with the
slide lock in safety position, thus precluding any accidental discharge. We
must remember that a pistol is the Freudian symbol of the Ur-father's central
forelimb.
I was now glad I
had it with me-and even more glad that I had learned to use it two years
before, in the pine forest around my and Charlotte's glass lake. Farlow, with
whom I had roamed those remote woods, was an admirable marksman, and with his
.38 actually managed to hit a hummingbird, though I must say not much of it
could be retrieved for proof-only a little iridescent fluff. A burley
ex-policeman called Krestovski, who in the twenties had shot and killed two
escaped convicts, joined us and bagged a tiny woodpecker-completely out of
season, incidentally. Between those two sportsmen I of course was a novice and
kept missing everything, though I did would a squirrel on a later occasion when
I went out alone. "You like here," I whispered to my light-weight
compact little chum, and then toasted it with a dram of gin.
18
The reader must
now forget Chestnuts and Colts, and accompany us further west. The following
days were marked by a number of great thunderstorms-or perhaps, thee was but
one single storm which progressed across country in ponderous frogleaps and
which we could not shake off just as we could not shake off detective Trapp:
for it was during those days that the problem of the Aztec Red Convertible
presented itself to me, and quite overshadowed the theme of Lo's lovers.
Queer! I who was
jealous of every male we met-queer, how I misinterpreted the designations of
doom. Perhaps I had been lulled by Lo's modest behavior in winter, and anyway
it would have been too foolish even for a lunatic to suppose another Humbert
was avidly following Humbert and Humbert's nymphet with Jovian fireworks, over
the great and ugly plains. I surmised, donc, that the Red Yak keeping behind us
at a discreet distance mile after mile was operated by a detective whom some
busybody had hired to see what exactly Humbert Humbert was doing with that
minor stepdaughter of his. As happens with me at periods of electrical
disturbance and crepitating lightnings, I had hallucinations. Maybe they were
more than hallucinations. I do not know what she or he, or both had put into my
liquor but one night I felt sure somebody was tapping on the door of our cabin,
and I flung it open, and noticed two things-that I was stark naked and that,
white-glistening in the rain-dripping darkness, there stood a man holding
before his face the mask of Jutting Chin, a grotesque sleuth in the funnies. He
emitted a muffled guffaw and scurried away, and I reeled back into the room,
and fell asleep again, and am not sure even to this day that the visit was not
a drug-provoked dream: I have thoroughly studied Trapp's type of humor, and
this might have been a plausible sample. Oh, crude and absolutely ruthless!
Somebody, I imagined, was making money on those masks of popular monsters and
morons. Did I see next morning two urchins rummaging in a garbage can and
trying on Jutting Chin? I wonder. It may all have been a coincidence-due to
atmospheric conditions, I suppose.
Being a murderer
with a sensational but incomplete and unorthodox memory, I cannot tell you,
ladies and gentlemen, the exact day when I first knew with utter certainty that
the red convertible was following us. I do remember, however, the first time I
saw its driver quite clearly. I was proceeding slowly one afternoon through
torrents of rain and kept seeing that red ghost swimming and shivering with
lust in my mirror, when presently the deluge dwindled to a patter, and then was
suspended altogether. With a swishing sound a sunburst swept the highway, and
needing a pair of new sunglasses, I pussled up at a filling station. What was
happening was a sickness, a cancer, that could not be helped, so I simply
ignored the fact that our quiet pursuer, in his converted state, stopped a
little behind us at a cafe or bar bearing the idiotic sign: The Bustle: A
Deceitful Seatful. Having seen to the needs of my car, I walked into the office
to get those glasses and pay for the gas. As I was in the act of signing a
traveler's check and wondered about my exact whereabouts, I happened to glance
through a side window, and saw a terrible thing. A broad-backed man, baldish,
in an oatmeal coat and dark-brown trousers, was listening to Lo who was leaning
out of the car and talking to him very rapidly, her hand with outspread fingers
going up and down as it did when she was very serious and emphatic. What struck
me with sickening force was-how should I put it?-the voluble familiarity of her
way, as if they had known each other-oh, for weeks and weeks. I saw him scratch
his cheek and nod, and turn, and walk back to his convertible, a broad and
thickish man of my age, somewhat resembling Gustave Trapp, a cousin of my
father's in Switzerland-same smoothly tanned face, fuller than mine, with a
small dark mustache and a rosebud degenerate mouth. Lolita was studying a road
map when I got back into the car.
"What did
that man ask you, Lol?"
"Man? Oh,
that man. Oh yes. Oh, I don't know. He wondered if I had a map. Lost his way, I
guess."
We drove on, and
I said:
"Now listen,
Lo. I do not know whether you are lying or not, and I do not know whether you
are insane or not, and I do not care for the moment; but that person has been
following us all day, and his car was at the motel yesterday, and I think he is
a cop. You know perfectly well what will happen and where you will go if the
police find out about things. Now I want to know exactly what he said to you
and what you told him."
She laughed.
"If he's
really a cop," she said shrilly but not illogically, "the worst thing
we could do, would be to show him we are scared. Ignore him, Dad."
"Did he ask
where we were going?"
"Oh, he
knows that" (mocking me).
"Anyway,"
I said, giving up, "I have seen his face now. He is not pretty. He looks
exactly like a relative of mine called Trapp."
"Perhaps he
is Trapp. If I were you-Oh, look, all the nines are changing into the next
thousand. When I was a little kid," she continued unexpectedly, "I
used to think they'd stop and go back to nines, if only my mother agreed to put
the car in reverse."
It was the first
time, I think, she spoke spontaneously of her pre-Humbertian childhood;
perhaps, the theatre had taught her that trick; and silently we traveled on,
unpursued.
but next day,
like pain in a fatal disease that comes back as the drug and hope wear off,
there it was again behind us, that glossy red beast. The traffic on the highway
was light that day; nobody passed anybody; and nobody attempted to get in
between our humble blue car and its imperious red shadow-as if there were some
spell cast on that interspace, a zone of evil mirth and magic, a zone whose
very precision and stability had a glass-like virtue that was almost artistic.
The driver behind me, with his stuffed shoulders and Trappish mustache, looked
like a display dummy, and his convertible seemed to move only because an
invisible rope of silent silk connected it with out shabby vehicle. We were
many times weaker than his splendid, lacquered machine, so that I did not even
attempt to outspeed him. O lente currite noctis equi! O softly run, nightmares!
We climbed long grades and rolled downhill again, and heeded speed limits, and
spared slow children, and reproduced in sweeping terms the black wiggles of curves
on their yellow shields, and no matter how and where we drove, the enchanted
interspace slid on intact, mathematical, mirage-like, the viatic counterpart of
a magic carpet. And all the time I was aware of a private blaze on my right:
her joyful eye, her flaming cheek.
A traffic
policeman, deep in the nightmare of crisscross streets-at half-past-four p.m.
in a factory town-was the hand of chance that interrupted the spell. He
beckoned me on, and then with the same hand cut off my shadow. A score of cars were
launched in between us, and I sped on, and deftly turned into a narrow lane. A
sparrow alighted with a jumbo bread crumb, was tackled by another, and lost the
crumb.
When after a few
grim stoppages and a bit of deliberate meandering, I returned to the highway,
our shadow had disappeared.
Lola snorted and
said: "If he is what you think he is, how silly to give him the
slip."
"I have
other notions by now," I said.
"You
should-ah-check them by-ah-keeping in touch with him, fahther deah," said
Lo, writhing in the coils of her own sarcasm. "Gee, you are mean,"
she added in her ordinary voice.
We spent a grim
night in a very foul cabin, under a sonorous amplitude of rain, and with a kind
of prehistorically loud thunder incessantly rolling above us.
"I am not a
lady and do not like lightning," said Lo, whose dread of electric storms
gave me some pathetic solace.
We had breakfast
in the township of Soda, pop. 1001.
"Judging by
the terminal figure," I remarked, "Fatface is already here."
"Your
humor," said Lo, "is sidesplitting, deah fahther."
We were in
sage-brush country by that time, and there was a day or two of lovely release
(I had been a fool, all was well, that discomfort was merely a trapped flatus),
and presently the mesas gave way to real mountains, and, on time, we drove into
Wace.
Oh, disaster.
Some confusion had occurred, she had misread a date in the Tour Book, and the
Magic Cave ceremonies were over! She took it bravely, I must admit-and, when we
discovered there was in jurortish Wace a summer theatre in full swing, we
naturally drifted toward it one fair mid-June evening. I really could not tell
you the plot of the play we saw. A trivial affair, no doubt, with
self-conscious light effects and a mediocre leading lady. The only detail that
pleased me was a garland of seven little graces, more or less immobile,
prettily painted, barelimbed-seven bemused pubescent girls in colored gauze
that had been recruited locally (judging by the partisan flurry here and there
among the audience) and were supposed to represent a living rainbow, which
lingered throughout the last act, and rather teasingly faded behind a series of
multiplied veils. I remember thinking that this idea of children-colors had
been lifted by authors Clare Quilty and Vivian Darkbloom from a passage in
James Joyce, and that two of the colors were quite exasperatingly lovely-Orange
who kept fidgeting all the time, and Emerald who, when her eyes got used to the
pitch-black pit where we all heavily sat, suddenly smiled at her mother or her
protector.
As soon as the
thing was over, and manual applause-a sound my nerves cannot stand-began to
crash all around me, I started to pull and push Lo toward the exit, in my so
natural amorous impatience to get her back to our neon-blue cottage in the
stunned, starry night: I always say nature is stunned by the sights she sees.
Dolly-Lo, however, lagged behind, in a rosy daze, her pleased eyes narrowed,
her sense of vision swamping the rest of her senses to such an extent that her
limp hands hardly came together at all in the mechanical action of clapping
they still went through. I had seen that kind of thing in children before but,
by God, this was a special child, myopically beaming at the already remote
stage where I glimpsed something of the joint authors-a man's tuxedo and the
bare shoulders of a hawk-like, black-haired, strikingly tall woman.
"You've
again hurt my wrist, you brute," said Lolita in a small voice as she
slipped into her car seat.
"I am
dreadfully sorry, my darling, my own ultraviolet darling," I said,
unsuccessfully trying to catch her elbow, and I added, to change the
conversation-to change the direction of fate, oh God, oh God: "Vivian is
quite a woman. I am sure we saw her yesterday in that restaurant, in Soda pop."
"Sometimes,"
said Lo, "you are quite revoltingly dumb. First, Vivian is the male
author, the gal author is Clare; and second, she is forty, married and has
Negro blood."
"I
thought," I said kidding her, "Quilty was an ancient flame of yours,
in the days when you loved me, in sweet old Ramsdale."
"What?"
countered Lo, her features working. "that fat dentist? You must be
confusing me with some other fast little article."
And I thought to
myself how those fast little articles forget everything, everything, while we,
old lovers, treasure every inch of their nymphancy.
19
With Lo's
knowledge and assent, the two post offices given to the Beardsley postmaster as
forwarding addresses were P.O. Wace and P.O. Elphinstone. Next morning we
visited the former and had to wait in a short but slow queue. Serene Lo studied
the rogues' gallery. Handsome Bryan Bryanski, alias Anthony Bryan, alias Tony
Brown, eyes hazel, complexion fair, was wanted for kidnapping. A sad-eyed old
gentleman's faux-pas was mail fraud, and, as if that were not enough, he was
cursed with deformed arches. Sullen Sullivan came with a caution: Is believed
armed, and should be considered extremely dangerous. If you want to make a
movie out of my book, have one of these faces gently melt into my own, while I look.
And moreover there was a smudgy snapshot of a Missing Girl, age fourteen,
wearing brown shoes when last seen, rhymes. Please notify Sheriff Buller.
I forget my
letters; as to Dolly's, there was her report and a very special-looking
envelope. This I deliberately opened and perused its contents. I concluded I
was doing the foreseen since she did not seem to mind and drifted toward the
newsstand near the exit.
"Dolly-Lo:
Well, the play was a grand success. All three hounds lay quiet having been
slightly drugged by Cutler, I suspect, and Linda knew all your lines. She was
fine, she had alertness and control, but lacked somehow the responsiveness, the
relaxed vitality, the charm of my-and the author's-Diana; but there was no
author to applaud us as last time, and the terrific electric storm outside
interfered with our own modest offstage thunder. Oh dear, life does fly. Now
that everything is over, school, play, the Roy mess, mother's confinement (our
baby, alas, did not live!), it all seems such a long time ago, though
practically I still bear traces of the paint.
"We are
going to New York after tomorrow, and I guess I can't manage to wriggle out of
accompanying my parents to Europe. I have even worse news for you. Dolly-Lo! I
may not be back at Beardsley if and when you return. With one thing and
another, one being you know who, and the other not being who you think you
know, Dad wants me to go to school in Paris for one year while he and
Fullbright are around.
"As
expected, poor Poet stumbled in Scene III when arriving at the bit of French
nonsense. Remember? Ne manque pas de dire Á ton amant, ChimĘne,
comme le lac est beau car il faut qu'il t'y mĘne. Lucky beau! Qu'il
t'y-What a tongue-twister! Well, be good, Lollikins. Best love from your Poet,
and best regards to the Governor. Your Mona. P.S. Because of one thing and
another, my correspondence happens to be rigidly controlled. So better wait
till I write you from Europe." (She never did as far as I know. The letter
contained an element of mysterious nastiness that I am too tired today to
analyze. I found it later preserved in one of the Tour Books, and give it here
Á titre documentaire. I read it twice.)
I looked up from
the letter and was about to-There was no Lo to behold. While I was engrossed in
Mona's witchery, Lo had shrugged her shoulders and vanished. "Did you
happen to see-" I asked of a hunchback sweeping the floor near the
entrance. He had, the old lecherer. He guessed she had seen a friend and had
hurried out. I hurried out too. I stopped-she had not. I hurried on. I stopped
again. It had happened at last. She had gone for ever.
In later years I
have often wondered why she did not go forever that day. Was it the retentive
quality of her new summer clothes in my locked car? Was it some unripe particle
in some general plan? Was it simply because, all things considered, I might as well
be used to convey her to Elphinstone-the secret terminus, anyway? I only know I
was quite certain she had left me for ever. The noncommittal mauve mountains
half encircling the town seemed to me to swarm with panting, scrambling,
laughing, panting Lolitas who dissolved in their haze. A big W made of white
stones on a steep talus in the far vista of a cross street seemed the very
initial of woe.
The new and
beautiful post office I had just emerged from stood between a dormant movie
house and a conspiracy of poplars. The time was 9 a.m. mountain time. The
street was charming it into beauty, was one of those fragile young summer
mornings with flashes of glass here and there and a general air of faltering
and almost fainting at the prospect of an intolerably torrid noon. Crossing
over, I loafed and leafed, as it were, through one long block: Drugs, Real
Estate, Fashions, Auto Parts, Cafe, Sporting Goods, Real Estate, Furniture,
Appliances, Western Union, Cleaners, Grocery. Officer, officer, my daughter has
run away. In collusion with a detective; in love with a black-mailer. Took
advantage of my utter helplessness. I peered into all the stores. I deliberated
inly if I should talk to any of the sparse foot-passengers. I did not. I sat
for a while in the parked car. I inspected the public garden on the east side.
I went back to Fashions and Auto Parts. I told myself with a burst of furious
sarcasm-un ricanement-that I was crazy to suspect her, that she would turn up
any minute.
She did.
I wheeled around
and shook off the hand she had placed on my sleeve with a timid and imbecile
smile.
"Get into
the car," I said.
She obeyed, and I
went on pacing up and down, struggling with nameless thoughts, trying to plan
some way of tackling her duplicity.
Presently she left
the car and was at my side again. My sense of hearing gradually got tuned in to
station Lo again, and I became aware she was telling me that she had met a
former girl friend.
"Yes?
Whom?"
"A Beardsley
girl."
"Good. I now
every name in your group. Alice Adams?"
"The girl
was not in my group."
"Good. I
have a complete student list with me. Her name please."
"She was not
in my school She is just a town girl in Beardsley."
"Good. I
have the Beardsley directory with me too. We'll look up all the Browns."
"I only know
her first name."
"Mary or
Jane?"
"No-Dolly,
like me."
"So that's
the dead end" (the mirror you break your nose against). "Good. Let us
try another angle. You have been absent twenty-eight minutes. What did the two
Dollys do?"
"We went to
a drugstore."
"And you had
there-?"
"Oh, just a
couple of Cokes."
"Careful,
Dolly. We can check that, you know."
"At least,
she had. I had a glass of water."
"Good. Was
it that place there?"
"Sure."
"Good, come
on, we'll grill the soda jerk."
"Wait a sec.
Come to think it might have been further down-just around the corner."
"Come on all
the same. Go in please. Well, let's see." (Opening a chained telephone
book.) "Dignified Funeral Service. NO, not yet. Here we are:
Druggists-Retail. Hill Drug Store. Larkin's Pharmacy. And two more. That's all
Wace seems to have in the way of soda fountains-at least in the business
section. Well, we will check them all."
"Go to
hell," she said.
"Lo,
rudeness will get you nowhere."
"Okay,"
she said. "But you're not going to trap me. Okay, so we did not have a
pop. We just talked and looked at dresses in show windows."
"Which? That
window there for example?"
"Yes, that
one there, for example."
"Oh Lo!
Let's look closer at it."
It was indeed a
pretty sight. A dapper young fellow was vacuum-cleaning a carpet upon which
stood two figures that looked as if some blast had just worked havoc with them.
One figure was stark naked, wigless and armless. Its comparatively small
stature and smirking pose suggested that when clothed it had represented, and
would represent when clothed again, a girl-child of Lolita's size. But in its
present state it was sexless. Next to it, stood a much taller veiled bride,
quite perfect and intacta except for the lack of one arm. On the floor, at the
feet of these damsels, where the man crawled about laboriously with his
cleaner, there lay a cluster of three slender arms, and a blond wig. Two of the
arms happened to be twisted and seemed to suggest a clasping gesture of horror
and supplication.
"Look,
Lo," I said quietly. "Look well. Is not that a rather good symbol of
something or other? However"-I went on as we got back into the car-"I
have taken certain precautions. Here (delicately opening the glove compartment),
on this pad I have our boy friend's car number."
As the ass I was
I had not memorized it. What remained of it in my mind were the initial letter
and the closing figure as if the whole amphitheater of six signs receded
concavely behind a tinted glass too opaque to allow the central series to be
deciphered, but just translucent enough to make out its extreme edges-a capital
P and a 6. I have to go into those details (which in themselves can interest
only a professional psychologue) because otherwise the reader (ah, if I could
visualize him as a blond-bearded scholar with rosy lips sucking la pomme de sa
canne as he quaffs my manuscript!) might not understand the quality of the
shock I experienced upon noticing that the P had acquired the bustle of a B and
that the 6 had been deleted altogether. The rest, with erasures revealing the
hurried shuttle smear of a pencil's rubber end, and with parts of numbers
obliterated or reconstructed in a child's hand, presented a tangle of barbed
wire to any logical interpretation. All I knew was the state-one adjacent to
the state Beardsley was in.
I said nothing. I
put the pad back, closed the compartment, and drove out of Wace. Lo had grabbed
some comics from the back seat and, mobile-white-bloused, one brown elbow out
of the window, was deep in the current adventure of some clout or clown. Three
or four miles out of Wace, I turned into the shadow of a picnic ground where
the morning had dumped its litter of light on an empty table; Lo looked up with
a semi-smile of surprise and without a word I delivered a tremendous backhand
cut that caught her smack on her hot hard little cheekbone.
And then the
remorse, the poignant sweetness of sobbing atonement, groveling love, the
hopelessness of sensual reconciliation. In the velvet night, at Mirana Motel
(Mirana!) I kissed the yellowish soles of her long-toed feet, I immolated
myself . . . But it was all of no avail. both doomed were we. And soon I was to
enter a new cycle of persecution.
In a street of
Wace, on its outskirts . . . Oh, I am quite sure it was not a delusion. In a
street of Wace, I had glimpsed the Aztec Red Convertible, or its identical
twin. Instead of Trapp, it contained four or five loud young people of several
sexes-but I said nothing. After Wace a totally new situation arose. For a day
or two, I enjoyed the mental emphasis with which I told myself that we were
not, and never had been followed; and then I became sickeningly conscious that
Trapp had changed his tactics and was still with us, in this or that rented
car.
A veritable
Proteus of the highway, with bewildering ease he switched from one vehicle to
another. This technique implied the existence of garages specializing in
"stage-automobile" operations, but I never could discover the remises
he used. He seemed to patronize at first the Chevrolet genus, beginning with a
Campus Cream convertible, then going on to a small Horizon Blue sedan, and
thenceforth fading into Surf Gray and Driftwood Gray. Then he turned to other
makes and passed through a pale dull rainbow of paint shades, and one day I
found myself attempting to cope with the subtle distinction between our own
Dream Blue Melmoth and the Crest Blue Oldsmobile he had rented; grays, however,
remained his favorite cryptochromism, and, in agonizing nightmares, I tried in
vain to sort out properly such ghosts as Chrysler's Shell Gray, Chevrolet's
Thistle Gray, Dodge's French Gray . . .
The necessity of
being constantly on the lookout for his little mustache and open shirt-or for
his baldish pate and broad shoulders-led me to a profound study of all cars on
the road-behind, before, alongside, coming, going, every vehicle under the
dancing sun: the quiet vacationist's automobile with the box of Tender-Touch
tissues in the back window; the recklessly speeding jalopy full of pale
children with a shaggy dog's head protruding, and a crumpled mudguard; the
bachelor's tudor sedan crowded with suits on hangers; the huge fat house
trailer weaving in front, immune to the Indian file of fury boiling behind it;
the car with the young female passenger politely perched in the middle of the
front seat to be closer to the young male driver; the car carrying on its roof
a red boat bottom up . . . The gray car slowing up before us, the gray car
catching up with us.
We were in
mountain country, somewhere between Snow and Champion, and rolling down an
almost imperceptible grade, when I had my next distinct view of Detective
Paramour Trapp. The gray mist behind us had deepened and concentrated into the
compactness of a Dominion Blue sedan. All of a sudden, as if the car I drove
responded to my poor heart's pangs, we were slithering from side to side, with
something making a helpless plap-plap-plap under us.
"You got a
flat, mister," said cheerful Lo.
I pulled up-near
a precipice. She folded her arms and put her foot on the dashboard. I got out
and examined the right rear wheel. The base of its tire was sheepishly and
hideously square. Trapp had stopped some fifty yards behind us. His distant
face formed a grease spot of mirth. This was my chance. I started to walk
towards him-with the brilliant idea of asking him for a jack through I had one.
He backed a little. I stubbed my toe against a stone-and there was a sense of
general laughter. Then a tremendous truck loomed from behind Trapp and
thundered by me-and immediately after, I heard it utter a convulsive honk.
Instinctively I looked back-and saw my own car gently creeping away. I could
make out Lo ludicrously at the wheel, and the engine was certainly
running-though I remembered I had cut it but had not applied the emergency
brake; and during the brief space of throb-time that it took me to reach the
croaking machine which came to a standstill at last, it dawned upon me that
during the last two years little Lo had had ample time to pick up the rudiments
of driving. As I wrenched the door open, I was goddam sure she had started the
car to prevent me from walking up to Trapp. Her trick proved useless, however,
for even while I was puruing her he had made an energetic U-turn and was gone.
I rested for a while. Lo asked wasn't I going to thank her-the car had started
to move by itself and-Getting no answer, she immersed herself in a study of the
map. I got out again and commenced the "ordeal of the orb," as
Charlotte used to say. Perhaps, I was losing my mind.
We continued our
grotesque journey. After a forlorn and useless dip, we went up and up. On a
steep grade I found myself behind the gigantic truck that had overtaken us. It
was now groaning up a winding road and was impossible to pass. Out of its front
part a small oblong of smooth silver-the inner wrapping of chewing gum-escaped
and flew back into our windshield. It occurred to me that if I were really
losing my mind, I might end by murdering somebody. In fact-said high-and-dry Humbert
to floundering Humbert-it might be quite clever to prepare things-to transfer
the weapon from box to pocket-so as to be ready to take advantage of the spell
of insanity when it does come.
20
By permitting
Lolita to study acting I had, fond fool, suffered her to cultivate deceit. It
now appeared that it had not been merely a matter of learning the answers to
such questions as what is the basic conflict in "Hedda Gabler," or
where are the climaxes in "Love Under the Lindens," or analyze the
prevailing mood of "Cherry Orchard"; it was really a matter of
learning to betray me. How I deplored now the exercises in sensual simulation
that I had so often seen her go through in our Beardsley parlor when I would
observe her from some strategic point while she, like a hypnotic subject of a
performer in a mystic rite, produced sophisticated version of infantile
make-believe by going through the mimetic actions of hearing a moan in the
dark, seeing for the first time a brand new young stepmother, tasting something
she hated, such as buttermilk, smelling crushed grass in a lush orchard, or
touching mirages of objects with her sly, slender, girl-child hands. Among my
papers I still have a mimeographed sheet suggesting:
Tactile drill.
Imagine Yourself picking up and holding: a pingpong ball, an apple, a sticky
date, a new flannel-fluffed tennis ball, a hot potato, an ice cube, a kitten, a
puppy, a horseshoe, a feather, a flashlight.
Knead with your
fingers the following imaginary things: a piece of brad, india rubber, a
friend's aching temple, a sample of velvet, a rose petal.
You are a blind
girl. Palpate the face of: a Greek youth, Cyrano, Santa Claus, a baby, a
laughing faun, a sleeping stranger, your father.
But she had been
so pretty in the weaving of those delicate spells, in the dreamy performance of
her enchantments and duties! On certain adventurous evenings, in Beardsley, I
also had her dance for me with the promise of some treat or gift, and although
these routine leg-parted leaps of hers were more like those of a football
cheerleader than like the languorous and jerky motions of a Parisian petit rat,
the rhythms of her not quite nubile limbs had given me pleasure. But all that
was nothing, absolutely nothing, to the indescribable itch of rapture that her tennis
game produced in me-the teasing delirious feeling of teetering on the very
brink of unearthly order and splendor.
Despite her
advanced age, she was more of a nymphet than ever, with her apricot-colored
limbs, in her sub-teen tennis togs! Winged gentlemen! No hereafter is
acceptable if it does not produce her as she was then, in that Colorado resort
between Snow and Elphinstone, with everything right: the white wide little-boy
shorts, the slender waist, the apricot midriff, the white breast-kerchief whose
ribbons went up and encircled her neck to end behind in a dangling knot leaving
bare her gaspingly young and adorable apricot shoulder blades with that
pubescence and those lovely gentle bones, and the smooth, downward-tapering
back. Her cap had a white peak. Her racket had cost me a small fortune. Idiot,
triple idiot! I could have filmed her! I would have had her now with me, before
my eyes, in the projection room of my pain and despair!
She would wait
and relax for a bar or two of white-lined time before going into the act of
serving, and often bounced the ball once or twice, or pawed the ground a
little, always at ease, always rather vague about the score, always cheerful as
she so seldom was in the dark life she led at home. Her tennis was the highest
point to which I can imagine a young creature bringing the art of make-believe,
although I dareseay, for her it was the very geometry of basic reality.
The exquisite
clarity of all her movements had its auditory counterpart in the pure ringing
sound of her every stroke. The ball when it entered her aura of control became
somehow whiter, its resilience somehow richer, and the instrument of precision
she used upon it seemed inordinately prehensile and deliberate at the moment of
clinging contact. Her form was, indeed, an absolutely perfect imitation of
absolutely top-notch tennis-without any utilitarian results. As Edusa's sister,
Electra Gold, a marvelous young coach, said to me once while I sat on a
pulsating hard bench watching Dolores Haze toying with Linda Hall (and being
beaten by her): "Dolly has a magnet in the center of her racket guts, but
why the heck is she so polite?" Ah, Electra, what did it matter, with such
grace! I remember at the very first game I watched being drenched with an
almost painful convulsion of beauty assimilation. My Lolita had a way of
raising her bent left knee at the ample and springy start of the service cycle
when there would develop and hang in the sun for a second a vital web of
balance between toed foot, pristine armpit, burnished arm and far back-flung
racket, as she smiled up with gleaming teeth at the small globe suspended so
high in the zenith of the powerful and graceful cosmos she had created for the
express purpose of falling upon it with a clean resounding crack of her golden
whip.
It had, that
serve of hers, beauty, directness, youth, a classical purity of trajectory, and
was, despite its spanking pace, fairly easy to return, having as it did no
twist or sting to its long elegant hop.
That I could have
had all her strokes, all her enchantments, immortalized in segments of
celluloid, makes me moan today with frustration. They would have been so much
more than the snapshots I burned! Her overhead volley was related to her
service as the envoy is to the ballade; for she had been trained, my pet, to
patter up at once to the net on her nimble, vivid, white-shod feet. There was
nothing to choose between her forehand and backhand drives: they were mirror
images of one another-my very loins still tingle with those pistol reports
repeated by crisp echoes and Electra's cries. One of the pearls of Dolly's game
was a short half-volley that Ned Litam had taught her in California.
She preferred
acting to swimming, and swimming to tennis; yet I insist that had not something
within her been broken by me-not that I realized it then!-she would have had on
the top of her perfect form the will to win, and would have become a real girl
champion. Dolores, with two rackets under her arm, in Wimbledon. Dolores endorsing
a Dromedary. Dolores turning professional. Dolores acting a girl champion in a
movie. Dolores and her gray, humble, hushed husband-coach, old Humbert.
There was nothing
wrong or deceitful in the spirit of her game-unless one considered her cheerful
indifference toward its outcome as the feint of a nymphet. She who was so cruel
and crafty in everyday life, revealed an innocence, a frankness, a kindness of
ball-placing, that permitted a second-rate but determined player, no matter how
uncouth and incompetent, to poke and cut his way to victory. Despite her small
stature, she covered the one thousand and fifty-three square feet of her half
of the court with wonderful ease, once she had entered into the rhythm of a
rally and as long as she could direct that rhythm; but any abrupt attack, or
sudden change of tactics on her adversary's part, left her helpless. At match
point, her second serve, which-rather typically-was even stronger and more
stylish than her first (for she had none of the inhibitions that cautious
winners have), would strike vibrantly the hard-cord of the net-and ricochet out
of court. The polished gem of her dropshot was snapped up and put away by an
opponent who seemed four-legged and wielded a crooked paddle. Her dramatic
drives and lovely volleys would candidly fall at his feet. Over and over again
she would land an easy one into the net-and merrily mimic dismay by drooping in
a ballet attitude, with her forelocks hanging. So sterile were her grace and
whipper that she could not even win from panting me and my old-fashioned
lifting drive.
I suppose I am
especially susceptible to the magic of games. In my chess sessions with Gaston
I saw the board as a square pool of limpid water with rare shells and
stratagems rosily visible upon the smooth tessellated bottom, which to my
confused adversary was all ooze and squid-cloud. Similarly, the initial tennis
coaching I had inflicted on Lolita-prior to the revelations that came to her
through the great Californian's lessons-remained in my mind as oppressive and
distressful memories-not only because she had been so hopelessly and
irritatingly irritated by every suggestion of mine-but because the precious
symmetry of the court instead of reflecting the harmonies latent in her was
utterly jumbled by the clumsiness and lassitude of the resentful child I
mistaught. Now things were different, and on that particular day, in the pure
air of Champion, Colorado, on that admirable court at the foot of seep stone
stairs leading up to Champion Hotel where we had spent the night, I felt I
could rest from the nightmare of unknown betrayals within the innocence of her
style, of her soul, of her essential grace.
She was hitting
hard and flat, with her usual effortless sweep, feeding me deep skimming
balls-all so rhythmically coordinated and overt as to reduce my footwork to,
practically, a swinging stroll-crack players will understand what I mean. My
rather heavily cut serve that I had been taught by my father who had learned it
from Decugis or Borman, old friends of his and great champions, would have
seriously troubled my Lo, had I really tried to trouble her. But who would
upset such a lucid dear? Did I ever mention that her bare arm bore the 8 of
vaccination? That I loved her hopelessly? That she was only fourteen?
An inquisitive
butterfly passed, dipping, between us.
Two people in
tennis shorts, a red-haired fellow only about eight years my junior, and an
indolent dark girl with a moody mouth and hard eyes, about two years Lolita's
senior, appeared from nowhere. As is common with dutiful tyros, their rackets
were sheathed and framed, and they carried them not as if they were the natural
and comfortable extensions of certain specialized muscles, but hammers or
blunderbusses or whimbles, or my own dreadful cumbersome sins. Rather
unceremoniously seating themselves near my precious coat, on a bench adjacent
to the court, they fell to admiring very vocally a rally of some fifty
exchanges that Lo innocently helped me to foster and uphold-until there
occurred a syncope in the series causing her to gasp as her overhead smash went
out of court, whereupon she melted into winsome merriment, my golden pet.
I felt thirsty by
then, and walked to the drinking fountain; there Red approached me and in all
humility suggested a mixed double. "I am Bill Mead," he said.
"And that's Fay Page, actress. Maffy On Say"-he added (pointing with
his ridiculously hooded racket at polished Fay who was already talking to
Dolly). I was about to reply "Sorry, but-" (for I hate to have my
filly involved in the chops and jabs of cheap bunglers), when a remarkably
melodious cry diverted my attention: a bellboy was tripping down the steps from
the hotel to our court and making me signs. I was wanted, if you please, on an
urgent long distance call-so urgent in fact that the line was being held for
me. Certainly. I got into my coat (inside pocket heavy with pistol) and told Lo
I would be back in a minute. She was picking up a ball-in the continental
foot-racket way which was one of the few nice things I had taught her,-and
smiled-she smiled at me!
An awful calm
kept my heart afloat as I followed the boy up to the hotel. This, to use an
American term, in which discovery, retribution, torture, death, eternity appear
in the shape of a singularly repulsive nutshell, was it. I had left her in
mediocre hands, but it hardly mattered now. I would fight, of course. Oh, I
would fight. Better destroy everything than surrender her. Yes, quite a climb.
At the desk,
dignified, Roman-nosed man, with, I suggest, a very obscure past that might
reward investigation, handed me a message in his own hand. The line had not
been held after all. The note said:
"Mr.
Humbert. The head of Birdsley (sic!) School called. Summer residence-Birdsley
2-8282. Please call back immediately. Highly important."
I folded myself
into a booth, took a little pill, and four about twenty minutes tussled with
space-spooks. A quartet of propositions gradually became audible: soprano,
there was no such number in Beardsley; alto, Miss Pratt was on her way to
England; tenor, Beardsley School had not telephoned; bass, they could not have
done so, since nobody knew I was, that particular day, in Champion, Colo. Upon
my stinging him, the Roman took the trouble to find out if there had been a
long distance call. There had been none. A fake call from some local dial was
not excluded. I thanked him. He said: You bet. After a visit to the purling
men's room and a stiff drink at the bar, I started on my return march. From the
very first terrace I saw, far below, on the tennis court which seemed the size
of a school child's ill-wiped slate, golden Lolita playing in a double. She
moved like a fair angel among three horrible Boschian cripples. One of these,
her partner, while changing sides, jocosely slapped her on her behind with his
racket. He had a remarkably round head and wore incongruous brown trousers.
There was a momentary flurry-he saw me, and throwing away his
racket-mine-scuttled up the slope. He waved his wrists and elbows in a would-be
comical imitation of rudimentary wings, as he climbed, blow-legged, to the
street, where his gray car awaited him. Next moment he and the grayness were
gone. When I came down, the remaining trio were collecting and sorting out the
balls.
"Mr. Mead,
who was that person?"
Bill and Fay,
both looking very solemn, shook their heads.
That absurd
intruder had butted in to make up a double, hadn't he, Dolly?
Dolly. The handle
of my racket was still disgustingly warm. Before returning to the hotel, I
ushered her into a little alley half-smothered in fragrant shrubs, with flowers
like smoke, and was about to burst into ripe sobs and plead with her
imperturbed dream in the most abject manner for clarification, no matter how
meretricious, of the slow awfulness enveloping me, when we found ourselves
behind the convulsed Mead twosome-assorted people, you know, meeting among
idyllic settings in old comedies. Bill and Fay were both weak with laughter-we
had come at the end of their private joke. It did not really matter.
Speaking as if it
really did not really matter, and assuming, apparently, that life was
automatically rolling on with all its routine pleasures, Lolita said she would
like to change into her bathing things, and spend the rest of the afternoon at
the swimming pool. It was a gorgeous day. Lolita!
21
"Lo! Lola!
Lolita!" I hear myself crying from a doorway into the sun, with the
acoustics of time, domed time, endowing my call and its tell-tale hoarseness
with such a wealth of anxiety, passion and pain that really it would have been
instrumental in wrenching open the zipper of her nylon shroud had she been
dead. Lolita! In the middle of a trim turfed terrace I found her at last-she
had run out before I was ready. Oh Lolita! There she was playing with a damned
dog, not me. The animal, a terrier of sorts, was losing and snapping up again
and adjusting between his jaws a wet little red ball; he took rapid chords with
his front paws on the resilient turf, and then would bounce away. I had only
wanted to see where she was, I could not swim with my heart in that state, but
who cared-and there she was, and there was I, in my robe-and so I stopped
calling; but suddenly something in the pattern of her motions, as she dashed
this way and that in her Aztec Red bathing briefs and bra, struck me . . .
there was an ecstasy, a madness about her frolics that was too much of a glad
thing. Even the dog seemed puzzled by the extravagance of her reactions. I put
a gentle hand to my chest as I surveyed the situation. The turquoise blue
swimming pool some distance behind the lawn was no longer behind that lawn, but
within my thorax, and my organs swam in it like excrements in the blue sea
water in Nice. One of the bathers had left the pool and, half-concealed by the
peacocked shade of trees, stood quite still, holding the ends of the towel
around his neck and following Lolita with his amber eyes. There he stood, in
the camouflage of sun and shade, disfigured by them and masked by his own
nakedness, his damp black hair or what was left of it, glued to his round head,
his little mustache a humid smear, the wool on his chest spread like a
symmetrical trophy, his naval pulsating, his hirsute thighs dripping with
bright droplets, his tight wet black bathing trunks bloated and bursting with
vigor where his great fat bullybag was pulled up and back like a padded shield
over his reversed beasthood. And as I looked at his oval nut-brown face, it
dawned upon me that what I had recognized him by was the reflection of my
daughter's countenance-the same beatitude and grimace but made hideous by his
maleness. And I also knew that the child, my child, knew he was looking,
enjoyed the lechery of his look and was putting on a show of gambol and glee,
the vile and beloved slut. As she made for the ball and missed it, she fell on
her back, with her obscene young legs madly pedaling in the air; I could sense
the musk of her excitement from where I stood, and then I saw (petrified with a
kind of sacred disgust) the man close his eyes and bare his small, horribly
small and even, teeth as he leaned against a tree in which a multitude of
dappled Priaps shivered. Immediately afterwards a marvelous transformation took
place. He was no longer the satyr but a very good-natured and foolish Swiss
cousin, the Gustave Trapp I have mentioned more than once, who used to
counteract his "sprees" (he drank beer with milk, the good swine) by
feats of weight-lifting-tottering and grunting on a lake beach with his
otherwise very complete bathing suit jauntily stripped from one shoulder. This
Trapp noticed me from afar and working the towel on his name walked back with
false insouciance to the pool. And as if the sun had gone out of the game, Lo
slackened and slowly got up ignoring the ball that the terrier placed before
her. Who can say what heartbreaks are caused in a dog by our discontinuing a
romp? I started to say something, and then sat down on the grass with a quite
monstrous pain in my chest and vomited a torrent of browns and greens that I
had never remembered eating.
I saw Lolita's
eyes, and they seemed to be more calculating than frightened. I heard her
saying to a kind lady that her father was having a fit. Then for a long time I
lay in a lounge chair swallowing pony upon pony of gin. And next morning I felt
strong enough to drive on (which in later years no doctor believed).
22
The two-room
cabin we had ordered at Silver Spur Court, Elphinstone, turned out to belong to
the glossily browned pine-log kind that Lolita used to be so fond of in the
days of our carefree first journey; oh, how different things were now! I am not
referring to Trapp or Trapps. After all-well, really . . . After all,
gentlemen, it was becoming abundantly clear that all those identical detectives
in prismatically changing cars were figments of my persecution mania, recurrent
images based on coincidence and chance resemblance. Soyons logiques, crowed the
cocky Gallic part of my brain-and proceeded to rout the notion of a
Lolita-maddened salesman or comedy gangster, with stooges, persecuting me, and
hoaxing me, and otherwise taking riotous advantage of my strange relations with
the law. I remember humming my panic away. I remember evolving even an
explanation of the "Birdsley" telephone call . . . But if I could
dismiss Trapp, as I had dismissed my convulsions on the lawn at Champion, I
could do nothing with the anguish of knowing Lolita to be so tantalizingly, so
miserably unattainable and beloved on the very even of a new era, when my
alembics told me she should stop being a nymphet, stop torturing me.
An additional, abominable,
and perfectly gratuitous worry was lovingly prepared for me in Elphinstone. Lo
had been dull and silent during the last lap-two hundred mountainous miles
uncontaminated by smoke-gray sleuths or zigzagging zanies. She hardly glanced
at the famous, oddly shaped, splendidly flushed rock which jutted above the
mountains and had been the take-off for nirvana on the part of a temperamental
show girl. The town was newly built, or rebuilt, on the flat floor of a
seven-thousand-foot-high valley; it would soon bore Lo, I hoped, and we would
spin on to California, to the Mexican border, to mythical bays, saguaro
desserts, fatamorganas. JosĘ Lizzarrabengoa, as you remember, planned to
take his Carmen to the Etats Unis. I conjured up a Central American tennis competition
in which Dolores Haze and various Californian schoolgirl champions would
dazzlingly participate. Good-will tours on that smiling level eliminate the
distinction between passport and sport. Why did I hope we would be happy
abroad? A change of environment is the traditional fallacy upon which doomed
loves, and lungs, rely.
Mrs. Hays, the
brisk, briskly rouged, blue-eyed widow who ran the motor court, asked me if I
were Swiss perchance, because her sister had married a Swiss ski instructor. I
was, whereas my daughter happened to be half Irish. I registered, Hays gave me
the key and a tinkling smile, and, still twinkling, showed me where to park the
car; Lo crawled out and shivered a little: the luminous evening air was
decidedly crisp. Upon entering the cabin, she sat down on a chair at a card
table, buried her face in the crook of her arm and said she felt awful.
Shamming, I thought, shamming, no doubt, to evade my caresses; I was
passionately parched; but she began to whimper in an unusually dreary way when
I attempted to fondle her. Lolita ill. Lolita dying. Her skin was scalding hot!
I took her temperature, orally, then looked up a scribbled formula I
fortunately had in a jotter and after laboriously reducing the, meaningless to
me, degrees Fahrenheit to the intimate centigrade of my childhood, found she
had 40.4, which at least made sense. Hysterical little nymphs might, I knew,
run up all kinds of temperature-even exceeding a fatal count. And I would have
given her a sip of hot spiced wine, and two aspirins, and kissed the fever
away, if, upon an examination of her lovely uvula, one of the gems of her body,
I had not seen that it was a burning red. I undressed her. Her breath was
bittersweet. Her brown rose tasted of blood. She was shaking from head to toe.
She complained of a painful stiffness in the upper vertebrae-and I thought of
poliomyelitis as any American parent would. Giving up all hope of intercourse,
I wrapped her in a laprobe and carried her into the car. Kind Mrs. Hays in the
meantime had alerted the local doctor. "You are lucky it happened
here," she said; for not only was Blue the best man in the district, but
the Elphinstone hospital was as modern as modern could be, despite its limited
capacity. With a heterosexual ErlkĂnig in pursuit, thither I drove,
half-blinded by a royal sunset on the lowland side and guided by a little old
woman, a portable witch, perhaps his daughter, whom Mrs. Haus had lent me, and
whom I was never to see again. Dr. Blue, whose learning, no doubt, was infinitely
inferior to his reputation, assured me it was a virus infection, and when I
alluded to her comparatively recent flu, curtly said this was another bug, he
had forty such cases on his hands; all of which sounded like the
"ague" of the ancients. I wondered if I should mention, with a casual
chuckle, that my fifteen-year-old daughter had had a minor accident while
climbing an awkward fence with her boy friend, but knowing I was drunk, I
decided to withhold the information till later if necessary. To an unsmiling
blond bitch of a secretary I gave my daughter's age as "practically
sixteen." While I was not looking, my child was taken away from me! In
vain I insisted I be allowed to spend the night on a "welcome" mat in
a corner of their damned hospital. I ran up constructivistic flights of stairs,
I tried to trace my darling so as to tell her she had better not babble,
especially if she felt as lightheaded as we all did. At one point, I was rather
dreadfully rude to a very young and very cheeky nurse with overdeveloped
gluteal parts and blazing black eyes-of Basque descent, as I learned. Her
father was an imported shepherd, a trainer of sheep dogs. Finally, I returned
to the car and remained in it for I do not know how many hours, hunched up in
the dark, stunned by my new solitude, looking out open-mouthed now at the dimly
illumined, very square and low hospital building squatting in the middle of its
lawny block, now up at the wash of stars and the jagged silvery ramparts of the
haute montagne where at the moment Mary's father, lonely Joseph Lore was
dreaming of Oloron, Lagore, Rolas-que sais-je!-or seducing a ewe. Such-like
fragrant vagabond thoughts have been always a solace to me in times of unusual
stress, and only when, despite liberal libations, I felt fairly numbed by the
endless night, did I think of driving back to the motel. The old woman had
disappeared, and I was not quite sure of my way. Wide gravel roads
criss-crossed drowsy rectangual shadows. I made out what looked like the
silhouette of gallows on what was probably a school playground; and in another
wastelike black there rose in domed silence the pale temple of some local sect.
I found the highway at last, and then the motel, where millions of so-called
"millers," a kind of insect, were swarming around the neon contours
of "No Vacancy"; and, when, at 3 a.m., after one of those untimely
hot showers which like some mordant only help to fix a man's despair and
weariness, I lay on her bed that smelled of chestnuts and roses, and
peppermint, and the very delicate, very special French perfume I latterly
allowed her to use, I found myself unable to assimilate the simple fact that
for the first time in two years I was separated from my Lolita. All at once it
occurred to me that her illness was somehow the development of a theme-that it
had the same taste and tone as the series of linked impressions which had
puzzled and tormented me during our journey; I imagined that secret agent, or
secret lover, or prankster, or hallucination, or whatever he was, prowling
around the hospital-and Aurora had hardly "warmed her hands," as the
pickers of lavender way in the country of my birth, when I found myself trying
to get into that dungeon again, knocking upon its green doors, breakfastless,
stool-less, in despair.
This was Tuesday,
and Wednesday or Thursday, splendidly reacting like the darling she was to some
"serum" (sparrow's sperm or dugong's dung), she was much better, and
the doctor said that in a couple of days she would be "skipping"
again.
Of the eight
times I visited her, the last one alone remains sharply engraved on my mind. It
had been a great feat to come for I felt all hollowed out by the infection that
by then was at work on me too. None will know the strain it was to carry that
bouquet, that load of love, those books that I had traveled sixty miles to buy:
Browning's Dramatic Works, The history of Dancing, Clowns and Columbines, The
Russian Ballet, Flowers of the Rockies, the Theatre Guild Anthology, Tennis by
Helen Wills, who had won the National Junior Girl Singles at the age of
fifteen. As I was staggering up to the door of my daughter's thirteen-dollar-a
day private room, Mary Lore, the beastly young part-time nurse who had taken an
unconcealed dislike to me, emerged with a finished breakfast tray, placed it
with a quick crash on a chair in the corridor, and, fundament jigging, shot
back into the room-probably to warn her poor little Dolores that the tyrannical
old father was creeping up on crepe soles, with books and bouquet: the latter I
had composed of wild flowers and beautiful leaves gathered with my own gloved
hands on a mountain pass at sunrise (I hardly slept at all that fateful week).
Feeding my
Carmencita well? Idly I glanced at the tray. On a yolk-stained plate there was
a crumpled envelope. It had contained something, since one edge was torn, but
there was no address on it-nothing at all, save a phony armorial design with
"Ponderosa Lodge" in green letters; thereupon I performed a
chassĘ-croisĘ with Mary, who was in the act of bustling out
again-wonderful how fast they move and how little they do, those rumpy young
nurses. She glowered at the envelope I had put back, uncrumpled.
"You better
not touch," she said, nodding directionally. "Could burn your
fingers."
Below my dignity
to rejoin. All I said was:
"Je croyais
que c'Était un bill-not a billet doux." Then, entering the sunny
room, to Lolita: "Bonjour, mon petit."
"Dolores,"
said Mary Lore, entering with me, past me, though me, the plump whore, and
blinking, and starting to fold very rapidly a white flannel blanket as she
blinked: "Dolores, your pappy thinks you are getting letters from my boy
friend. It's me (smugly tapping herself on the small glit cross she wore) gets
them. And my pappy can parlay-voo as well as yours."
She left the
room. Dolores, so rosy and russet, lips freshly painted, hair brilliantly
brushed, bare arms straightened out on neat coverleat, lay innocently beaming
at me or nothing. On the bed table, next to a paper napkin and a pencil, her
topaz ring burned in the sun.
"what
gruesome funeral flowers," she said. "Thanks all the same. But do you
mind very much cutting out the French? It annoys everybody."
Back at the usual
rush came the ripe young hussy, reeking of urine and garlic, with the Desert
News, which her fair patient eagerly accepted, ignoring the sumptuously
illustrated volumes I had brought.
"My sister
Ann," said Marry (topping information with afterthought), "works at
the Ponderosa place."
Poor Bluebeard.
Those brutal brothers. Est-ce que tu ne m'aimes plus, ma Carmen? She never had.
At the moment I knew my love was as hopeless as ever-and I also knew the two
girls were conspirators, plotting in Basque, or Zemfirian, against my hopeless
love. I shall go further and say that Lo was playing a double game since she
was also fooling sentimental Mary whom she had told, I suppose, that she wanted
to dwell with her fun-loving young uncle and not with cruel melancholy me. And
another nurse whom I never identified, and the village idiot who carted cots
and coffins into the elevator, and the idiotic green love birds in a cage in
the waiting room-all were in the plot, the sordid plot. I suppose Mary thought
comedy father Professor Humbertoldi was interfering with the romance between
Dolores and her father-substitute, roly-poly Romeo (for you were rather lardy,
you know, Rom, despite all that "snow" and "joy juice").
My throat hurt. I
stood, swallowing, at the window and stared at the mountains, at the romantic
rock high up in the smiling plotting sky.
"My
Carmen," I said (I used to call her that sometimes), "we shall leave
this raw sore town as soon as you get out of bed."
"Incidentally,
I want all my clothes," said the gitanilla, humping up her knees and
turning to another page.
". . .
Because, really," I continued, "there is no point in staying
here."
"There is no
point in staying anywhere," said Lolita.
I lowered myself
into a cretonne chair and, opening the attractive botanical work, attempted, in
the fever-humming hush of the room, to identify my flowers. This proved
impossible. Presently a musical bell softly sounded somewhere in the passage.
I do not think
they had more than a dozen patients (three or four were lunatics, as Lo had
cheerfully informed me earlier) in that show place of a hospital, and the staff
had too much leisure. However-likewise for reasons of show-regulations were
rigid. It is also true that I kept coming at the wrong hours. Not without a
secret flow of dreamy malice, visionary Mary (next time it will be une belle
dame toute en bleu floating through Roaring Gulch) plucked me by the sleeve to
lead me out. I looked at her hand; it dropped. As I was leaving, leaving
voluntarily, Dolores Haze reminded me to bring her next morning . . . She did
not remember where the various things she wanted were . . . "Bring
me," she cried (out of sight already, door on the move, closing, closed),
"the new gray suitcase and Mother's trunk"; but by next morning I was
shivering, and boozing, and dying nit he motel bed she had used for just a few
minutes, and the best I could do under the circular and dilating circumstances
was to send the two bags over with the widow's beau, a robust and kindly
trucker. I imagined Lo displaying her treasures to Mary . . . No doubt, I was a
little delirious-and on the following day I was still a vibration rather than a
solid, for when I looked out the bathroom window at the adjacent lawn, I saw
Dolly's beautiful young bicycle propped up there on its support, the graceful
front wheel looking away from me, as it always did, and a sparrow perched on
the saddle-but it was the landlady's bike, and smiling a little, and shaking my
poor head over my fond fancies, I tottered back to my bed, and lay as quiet as
a saint-
Saint, forsooth!
While brown Dolores,
On a patch of
sunny green
With Sanchicha
reading stories
In a movie
magazine-
-which was
represented by numerous specimens wherever Dolores landed, and there was some
great national celebration in town judging by the firecrackers, veritable
bombs, that exploded all the time, and at five minutes to two p.m. I heard the
sound of whistling lips nearing the half-opened door of my cabin, and then a
thump upon it.
It was big Frank.
He remained framed in the opened door, one hand on its jamb, leaning forward a
little.
Howdy. Nurse Lore
was on the telephone. She wanted to know was I better and would I come today?
At twenty paces
Frank used to look a mountain of health; at five, as now, he was a ruddy mosaic
of scars-had been blown through a wall overseas; but despite nameless injuries
he was able to man a tremendous truck, fish, hunt, drink, and buoyantly dally
with roadside ladies. That day, either because it was such a great holiday, or
simply because he wanted to divert a sick man, he had taken off the glove he
usually wore on his left hand (the one pressing against the side of the door)
and revealed to the fascinated sufferer not only an entire lack of fourth and
fifth fingers, but also a naked girl, with cinnabar nipples and indigo delta,
charmingly tattooed on the back of his crippled hand, its index and middle
digit making her legs while his wrist bore her flower-crowned head. Oh,
delicious . . . reclining against the woodwork, like some sly fairy.
I asked him to
tell Mary Lore I would stay in bed all day and would get into touch with my
daughter sometime tomorrow if I felt probably Polynesian.
He noticed the
direction of my gaze and made her right hip twitch amorously.
"Okey-dokey,"
big Frank sang out, slapped the jamb, and whistling, carried my message away,
and I went on drinking, and by morning the fever was gone, and although I was
as limp as a toad, I put on the purple dressing gown over my maize yellow pajamas,
and walked over to the office telephone. Everything was fine. A bright voice
informed me that yes, everything was fine, my daughter had checked out the day
before, around two, her uncle, Mr. Gustave, had called for her with a cocker
spaniel pup and a smile for everyone, and a black Caddy Lack, and had paid
Dolly's bill in cash, and told them to tell me I should not worry, and keep
warm, they were at Grandpa's ranch as agreed.
Elphinstone was,
and I hope still is, a very cute little town. It was spread like a maquette,
you know, with its neat greenwool trees and red-roofed houses over the valley
floor and I think I have alluded earlier to its model school and temple and
spacious rectangular blocks, some of which were, curiously enough, just
unconventional pastures with a mule or a unicorn grazing in the young July
morning mist. Very amusing: at one gravel-groaning sharp turn I sideswiped a
parked car but said to myself telestically-and, telepathically (I hoped), to
its gesticulating owner-that I would return later, address Bird School, Bird,
New Bird, the gin kept my heart alive but bemazed my brain, and after some
lapses and losses common to dream sequences, I found myself in the reception
room, trying to beat up the doctor, and roaring at people under chairs, and
clamoring for Mary who luckily for her was not there; rough hands plucked at my
dressing gown, ripping off a pocket, and somehow I seem to have been sitting on
a bald brown-headed patient, whom I had mistaken for Dr. Blue, and who
eventually stood up, remarking with a preposterous accent: "Now, who is
nevrotic, I ask?"-and then a gaunt unsmiling nurse presented me with seven
beautiful, beautiful books and the exquisitely folded tartan lap robe, and
demanded a receipt; and in the sudden silence I became aware of a policeman in
the hallway, to whom my fellow motorist was pointing me out, and meekly I
signed the very symbolic receipt, thus surrendering my Lolita to all those
apes. But what else could I do? One simple and stark thought stood out and this
was: "Freedom for the moment is everything." One false move-and I
might have been made to explain a life of crime. So I simulated a coming out of
a daze. To my fellow motorist I paid what he thought was fair. To Dr. Blue, who
by then was stroking my hand, I spoke in tears of the liquor I bolstered too
freely a tricky but not necessarily diseased heart with. To the hospital in
general I apologized with a flourish that almost bowled me over, adding however
that I was not on particularly good terms with the rest of the Humbert clan. To
myself I whispered that I still had my gun, and was still a free man-free to
trace the fugitive, free to destroy my brother.
23
A thousand-mile
stretch of silk-smooth road separated Kasbeam, where, to the best of my belief,
the red fiend had been scheduled to appear for the first time, and fateful
Elphinstone which we had reached about a week before Independence Day. The
journey had taken up most of June for we had seldom made more than a hundred
and fifty miles per traveling day, spending the rest of the time, up to five
days in one case, at various stopping places, all of them also prearranged, no
doubt. It was that stretch, then, along which the fiend's spoor should be
sought; and to this I devoted myself, after several unmentionable days of
dashing up and down the relentlessly radiating roads in the vicinity of
Elphinstone.
Imagine me,
reader , with my shyness, my distaste for any ostentation, my inherent sense of
the comme il faut, imagine me masking the frenzy of my grief with a trembling
ingratiating smile while devising some casual pretext to flip through the hotel
register: "Oh," I would say, "I am almost positive that I stayed
here once-let me look up the entries for mid-June-no, I see I'm wrong after
all-what a very quaint name for a home town, Kawtagain. Thanks very much."
Or: "I had a customer staying here-I mislaid his address-may I . .
.?" And every once in a while, especially if the operator of the place
happened to be a certain type of gloomy male, personal inspection of the books
was denied me.
I have a memo
here: between July 5 and November 18, when I returned to Beardsley for a few
days, I registered, if not actually stayed, at 342 hotels, motels and tourist
homes. This figure includes a few registrations between Chestnut and Beardsley,
one of which yielded a shadow of the fiend ("N. Petit, Larousse,
Ill."); I had to space and time my inquiries carefully so as not to
attract undue attention; and there must have been at least fifty places where I
merely inquired at the desk-but that was a futile quest, and I preferred
building up a foundation of verisimilitude and good will by first paying for an
unneeded room. My survey showed that of the 300 or so books inspected, at least
20 provided me with a clue: the loitering fiend had stopped even more often
than we, or else-he was quite capable of that-he had thrown in additional
registrations in order to keep me well furnished with derisive hints. Only in
one case had he actually stayed at the same motor court as we, a few paces from
Lolita's pillow. In some instances he had taken up quarters in the same or in a
neighboring block; not infrequently he had lain in wait at an intermediate spot
between two bespoken points. How vividly I recalled Lolita, just before our
departure from Beardsley, prone on the parlor rug, studying tour books and
maps, and marking laps and stops with her lipstick!
I discovered at
once that he had foreseen my investigations and had planted insulting
pseudonyms for my special benefit. At the very first motel office I visited,
Ponderosa Lodge, his entry, among a dozen obviously human ones, read: Dr.
Gratiano Forbeson, Mirandola, NY. Its Italian Comedy connotations could not
fail to strike me, of course. The landlady deigned to inform me that the
gentleman had been laid up for five days with a bad cold, that he had left his
car for repairs in some garage or other and that he had checked out on the 4th
of July. Yes, a girl called Ann Lore had worked formerly at the Lodge, but was
now married to a grocer in Cedar City. One moonlit night I waylaid white-shoed
Mary on a solitary street; an automaton, she was about to shriek, but I managed
to humanize her by the simple act of falling on my knees and with pious yelps
imploring her to help. She did not know a thing, she swore. Who was this
Gratiano Forbeson? She seemed to waver. I whipped out a hundred-dollar bill.
She lifted it to the light of the moon. "He is your brother," she
whispered at last. I plucked the bill out of her moon-cold hand, and spitting
out a French curse turned and ran away. This taught me to rely on myself alone.
No detective could discover the clues Trapp had tuned to my mind and manner. I
could not hope, of course, he would ever leave his correct name and address;
but I did hope he might slip on the glaze of his own subtlety, by daring, say,
to introduce a richer and more personal shot of color than strictly necessary,
or by revealing too much through a qualitative sum of quantitative parts which
revealed too little. In one thing he succeeded: he succeeded in thoroughly
enmeshing me and my thrashing anguish in his demoniacal game. With infinite
skill, he swayed and staggered, and regained an impossible balance, always
leaving me with the sportive hope-if I may use such a term in speaking of betrayal,
fury, desolation, horror and hate-that he might give himself away next time. He
never did-though coming damn close to it. We all admire the spangled acrobat
with classical grace meticulously walking his tight rope in the taclum light;
but how much rarer art there is in the sagging rope expert wearing scarecrow
clothes and impersonating a grotesque drunk! I should know.
The clues he left
did not establish his identity but they reflected his personality, or at least
a certain homogenous and striking personality; his genre, his type of humor-at
its best at leat-the tone of his brain, had affinities with my own. He mimed
and mocked me. His allusions were definitely highbrow. He was well-read. He
knew French. he was versed in logodaedaly and logomancy. He was an amateur of
sex lore. He had a feminine handwriting. He would change his name but he could
not disguise, no matter how he slanted them, his very peculiar t's, w's and
l's. Quelquepart Island was one of his favorite residences. He did not use a
fountain pen which fact, as any psychoanalyst will tell you, meant that the
patient was a repressed undinist. One mercifully hopes there are water nymphs
in the Styx.
His main trait
was his passion for tantalization. Goodness, what a tease the poor fellow was!
He challenged my scholarship. I am sufficiently proud of my knowing something
to be modest about my not knowing all; and I daresay I missed some elements in
that cryprogrammic paper chase. What a shiver of triumph and loathing shook my
frail frame when, among the plain innocent names in the hotel recorder, his
fiendish conundrum would ejaculate in my face! I noticed that whenever he felt
his enigmas were becoming too recondite, even for such a solver as I, he would
lure me back with an easy one. "ArsÉne Lupin" was obvious to a
Frenchman who remembered the detective stories of his youth; and one hardly had
to be a Coleridgian to appreciate the trite poke of "A. Person, Porlock,
England." In horrible taste but basically suggestive of a cultured man-not
a policeman, not a common good, not a lewd salesman-were such assumed names as
"Arthur Rainbow"-plainly the travestied author of Le Bateau Bleu-let
me laugh a little too, gentlemen-and "Morris Schmetterling," of
L'Oiseau Ivre fame (touchĘ, reader!). The silly but funny "D. Orgon,
Elmira, NY," was from MoliÉre, of course, and because I had quite
recently tried to interest Lolita in a famous 18th-century play, I welcomed as
an old friend "Harry Bumper, Sheridan, Wyo." An ordinary encyclopedia
informed me who the peculiar looking "Phineas Quimby, Lebanon, NH"
was; and any good Freudian, with a German name and some interest in religious
prostitution, should recognize at a glance the implication of "Dr.
Kitzler, Eryx, Miss." So far so good. That sort of fun was shoddy but on
the whole impersonal and thus innocuous. Among entries that arrested my
attention as undoubtable clues per se but baffled me in respect to their finer
points I do not care to mention many since I feel I am groping in a border-land
mist with verbal phantoms turning, perhaps, into living vacationists. Who was
"Johnny Randall, Ramble, Ohio"? Or was he a real person who just
happened to write a hand similar to "N.S. Aristoff, Catagela, NY"?
What was the sting in "Catagela"? And what about "James Mavor
Morell, Hoaxton, England"? "Aristophanes,"
"hoax"-fine, but what was I missing?
There was one
strain running through all that pseudonymity which caused me especially painful
palpitations when I came across it. Such things as "G. Trapp, Geneva,
NY." was the sign of treachery on Lolita's part. "Aubrey Beardsley,
Quelquepart Island" suggested more lucidly than the garbled telephone
message had that the starting point of the affair should be looked for in the
East. "Lucas Picador, Merrymay, Pa." insinuated that my Carmen had
betrayed my pathetic endearments to the impostor. Horribly cruel, forsooth, was
"Will Brown, Dolores, Colo." The gruesome "Harold Haze,
Tombstone, Arizona" (which at another time would have appealed to my sense
of humor) implied a familiarity with the girl's past that in nightmare fashion
suggested for a moment that my quarry was an old friend of the family, maybe an
old flame of Charlotte's, maybe a redresser of wrongs ("Donald Quix,
Sierra, Nev."). But the most penetrating bodkin was the anagramtailed
entry in the register of Chestnut Lodge "Ted Hunter, Cane, NH."
The garbled
license numbers left by all these Persons and Orgons and Morells and Trapps
only told me that motel keepers omit to check if guests' cars are accurately
listed. Referenes-incompletely or incorrectly indicated-to the cars the fiend
had hired for short laps between Wace and Elphinstone were of course useless;
the license of the initial Aztec was a shimmer of shifting numerals, some
transposed, others altered or omitted, but somehow forming interrelated
combinations (such as "WS 1564" and "SH 1616," and
"Q32888" or "CU88322") which however were so cunningly
contrived as to never reveal a common denominator.
It occurred to me
that after he had turned that convertible over to accomplices at Wace and
switched to the stage-motor car system, his successors might have been less
careful and might have inscribed at some hotel office the archtype of those
interrelated figures. But if looking for the fiend along a road I knew he had
taken was such a complicated vague and unprofitable business, what could I
expect from any attempt to trace unknown motorists traveling along unknown
routes?
24
By the time I
reached Beardsley, in the course of the harrowing recapitulation I have now
discussed at sufficient length, a complete image had formed in my mind; and
through the-always risky-process of elimination I had reduced this image to the
only concrete source that morbid cerebration and torpid memory could give it.
Except for the
Rev. Rigor Mortis (as the girls called him), and an old gentleman who taught
non-obligatory German and Latin, there were no regular male teachers t
Beardsley School. But on two occasions an art instructor on the Beardsley
College faculty had come over to show the schoolgirls magic lantern pictures of
French castles and nineteenth-century paintings. I had wanted to attend those
projections and talks, but Dolly, as was her wont, had asked me not to, period.
I also remembered that Gaston had referred to that particular lecturer as a
brilliant garÚon; but that was all; memory refused to supply me with the
name of the chateau-lover.
On the day fixed
for the execution, I walked though the sleet across the campus to the
information desk in Maker Hall, Beardsley College. There I learned that the
fellow's name was Riggs (rather like that of the minister), that he was a
bachelor, and that in ten minutes he would issue from the "Museum"
where he was having a class. In the passage leading to the auditorium I sat on
a marble bench of sorts donated by Cecilia Dalrymple Ramble. As I waited there,
in the prostatic discomfort, drunk, sleep-starved, with my gun in my fist in my
raincoat pocket, it suddenly occurred to me that I was demented and was about
to do something stupid. There was not one chance in a million that Albert
Riggs, Ass. Prof., was hiding my Lolita at his Beardsley home, 24 Pritchard
Road. He could not be the villain. It was absolutely preposterous. I was losing
my time and my wits. He and she were in California and not here at all.
Presently, I
noticed a vague commotion behind some white statues; a door-not the one I had
been staring at-opened briskly, and amid a bevy of women students a baldish
head and two bright brown eyes bobbed, advanced.
He was a total
stranger to me but insisted we had met at a lawn party at Beardsley School. How
was my delightful tennis-playing daughter? He had another class. He would be
seeing me.
Another attempt
at identification was less speedily resolved: through an advertisement in one
of Lo's magazines I dared to get in touch with a private detective, an
ex-pugilist, and merely to give him some idea of the method adopted by the
fiend, I acquainted him with the kind of names and addresses I had collected.
He demanded a goodish deposit and for two years-two years, reader!-that
imbecile busied himself with checking those nonsense data. I had long severed
all monetary relations with him when he turned up one day with the triumphant
information that an eighty-year-old Indian by the name of Bill Brown lived near
Dolores, Colo.
25
This book is
about Lolita; and now that I have reached the part which (had I not been
forestalled by another internal combustion martyr) might be called
"DolorÉs Disparue," there would be little sense in analyzing
the three empty years that followed. While a few pertinent points have to be
marked, the general impression I desire to convey is of a side door crashing
open in life's full flight, and a rush of roaring black time drowning with its
whipping wind the cry of lone disaster.
Singularly
enough, I seldom if ever dreamed of Lolita as I remembered her-as I saw her
constantly and obsessively in my conscious mind during my daymares and
insomnias. More precisely: she did haunt my sleep but she appeared there in
strange and ludicrous disguises as Valeria or Charlotte, or a cross between
them. That complex ghost would come to me, shedding shift after shift, in an
atmosphere of great melancholy and disgust, and would recline in dull
invitation on some narrow board or hard settee, with flesh ajar like the rubber
valve of a soccer ball's bladder. I would bind myself, dentures fractured or
hopelessly mislaid, in horrible chambres garnies where I would be entertained
at tedious vivisecting parties that generally ended with Charlotte or Valeria
weeping in my bleeding arms and being tenderly kissed by my brotherly lips in a
dream disorder of auctioneered Viennese bric-Á-brac, pity, impotence and
the brown wigs of tragic old women who had just been gassed.
One day I removed
from the car and destroyed an accumulation of teen-magazines. You know the
sort. Stone age at heart; up to date, or at least Mycenaean, as to hygiene. A
handsome, very ripe actress with huge lashes and a pulpy red underlip,
endorsing a shampoo. Ads and fads. Young scholars dote on plenty of pleats-que
c'Ętait loin, tout cela! It is your hostess' duty to provide robes.
Unattached details take all the sparkle out of your conversation. All of us
have known "pickers"-one who picks her cuticle at the office party.
Unless he is very elderly or very important, a man should remove his gloves
before shaking hands with a woman. Invite Romance by wearing the Exciting New
Tummy Flattener. Trims tums, nips hips. Tristram in Movielove. Yessir! The
Joe-Roe marital enigma is making yaps flap. Glamorize yourself quickly and
inexpensively. Comics. Bad girl dark hair fat father cigar; good girl red hair
handsome daddums clipped mustache. Or that repulsive strip with the big gagoon
and his wife, a kiddoid gnomide. Et moi qui t'offrais mon genie . . . I
recalled the rather charming nonsense verse I used to write her when she was a
child: "nonsense," she used to say mockingly, "is correct."
The Squirl and
his Squirrel, the Rabs and their Rabbits
Have certain
obscure and peculiar habits.
Male hummingbirds
make the most exquisite rockets.
The snake when he
walks holds his hands in his pockets. . .
Other things of
hers were harder to relinquish. Up to the end of 1949, I cherished and adored,
and stained with my kisses and merman tears, a pair of old sneakers, a boy's
shirt she had worn, some ancient blue jeans I found in the trunk compartment, a
crumpled school cap, suchlike wanton treasures. Then, when I understood my mind
was cracking, I collected those sundry belongings, added to them what had been
stored in Beardsley-a box of books, her bicycle, old coats, galoshes-and on her
fifteenth birthday mailed everything as an anonymous gift to a home for
orphaned girls on a windy lake, on the Canadian border.
It is just
possible that had I gone to a strong hypnotist he might have extracted from me
and arrayed in a logical pattern certain chance memories that I have threaded
through my book with considerably more ostentation than they present themselves
with to my mind even now when I know what to seek in the past. At the time I
felt I was merely losing contact with reality; and after spending the rest of
the winter and most of the following spring in a Quebec sanatorium where I had
stayed before, I resolved first to settle some affairs of mine in New York and
then to proceed to California for a thorough search there.
Here is something
I composed in my retreat:
Wanted, wanted:
Dolores Haze.
Hair: brown.
Lips: scarlet.
Age: five
thousand three hundred days.
Profession: none,
or "starlet."
Where are you
hiding, Dolores Haze?
Why are you
hiding, darling?
(I talk in a
daze, I walk in a maze,
I cannot get out,
said the starling).
Where are you
riding, Dolores Haze?
What make is the
magic carpet?
Is a Cream Cougar
the present craze?
And where are you
parked, my car pet?
Who is your hero,
Dolores Haze?
Still one of
those blue-caped star-men?
Oh the balmy days
and the palmy bays,
And the cars, and
the bars, my Carmen!
Oh Dolores, that
juke-box hurts!
Are you still
dancin', darlin'?
(Both in worn
levis, both in torn T-shirts,
And I, in my
corner, snarlin').
Happy, happy is
gnarled McFate
Touring the
States with a child wife,
Plowing his Molly
in every State
Among the
protected wild life.
My Dolly, my
folly! Her eyes were vair,
And never closed
when I kissed her.
Know an old
perfume called Soleil Vert?
Are you from
Paris, mister?
L'autre soir un
air froid d'opĘra m'alita:
Son
fĘtĘ-bien fol est qui s'y fie!
Il neige, le
dĘcor s'Ęcroule, Lolita!
Lolita, qu'ai-je
fait de ta vie?
Dying, dying,
Lolita Haze,
Of hate and
remorse, I'm dying.
And again my
hairy fist I raise,
And again I hear
you crying.
Officer, officer,
there they go-
In the rain,
where that lighted store is!
And her socks are
white, and I love her so,
And her name is
Haze, Dolores.
Officer, officer,
there they are-
Dolores Haze and
her lover!
Whip out your gun
and follow that car.
Now tumble out,
and take cover.
Wanted, wanted:
Dolores Haze.
Her dream-gray
gaze never flinches.
Ninety pounds is
all she weighs
With a height of
sixty inches.
My car is
limping, Dolores Haze,
And the last long
lap is the hardest,
And I shall be
dumped where the weed decays,
And the rest is
rust and stardust.
By
psychoanalyzing this poem, I notice it is really a maniac's masterpiece. The
stark, stiff, lurid rhymes correspond very exactly to certain perspectiveless
and terrible landscapes and figures, and magnified parts of landscapes and
figures, as drawn by psychopaths in tests devised by their astute trainers. I
wrote many more poems. I immersed myself in the poetry of others. But not for a
second did I forget the load of revenge.
I would be a
knave to say, and the reader a fool to believe, that the shock of losing Lolita
cured me of pederosis. My accursed nature could not change, no matter how my
love for her did. On playgrounds and beaches, my sullen and stealthy eye,
against my will, still sought out the flash of a nymphet's limbs, the sly
tokens of Lolita's handmaids and rosegirls. But one essential vision in me had
withered: never did I dwell now on possibilities of bliss with a little maiden,
specific or synthetic, in some out-of-the-way place; never did my fancy sink
its fangs into Lolita's sisters, far far away, in the coves of evoked islands.
That was all over, for the time being at least. On the other hand, alas, two
years of monstrous indulgence had left me with certain habits of lust: I feared
lest the void I lived in might drive me to plunge into the freedom of sudden
insanity when confronted with a chance temptation in some lane between school
and supper. Solitude was corrupting me. I needed company and care. My heart was
a hysterical unreliable organ. This is how Rita enters the picture.
26
She was twice
Lolita's age and three quarters of mine: a very slight, dark-haired,
pale-skinned adult, weighing a hundred and five pounds, with charmingly
asymmetrical eyes, and angular, rapidly sketched profile, and a most appealing
ensellure to her supple back-I think she had some Spanish or Babylonian blood.
I picked her up one depraved May evening somewhere between Montreal and New
York, or more narrowly, between Toylestown and Blake, at a drakishly burning
bar under the sign of the Tigermoth, where she was amiably drunk: she insisted
we had gone to school together, and she placed her trembling little hand on my
ape paw. My senses were very slightly stirred but I decided to give her a try;
I did-and adopted her as a constant companion. She was so kind, was Rita, such
a good sport, that I daresay she would have given herself to any pathetic
creature or fallacy, an old broken tree or a bereaved porcupine, out of sheer
chumminess and compassion.
When I first met
her she had but recently divorced her third husband-and a little more recently
had been abandoned by her seventh cavalier servant-the others, the mutables,
were too numerous and mobile to tabulate. Her brother was-and no doubt still
is-a prominent, pasty-faced, suspenders-and-painted-tie-wearing politician,
mayor and booster of his ball-playing, Bible-reading, grain-handling home town.
For the last eight years he had been paying his great little sister several
hundred dollars per month under the stringent condition that she would never
never enter great little Grainball City. She told me, with wails of wonder,
that for some God-damn reason every new boy friend of hers would first of all
take her Grainball-ward: it was a fatal attraction; and before she knew what
was what, she would find herself sucked into the lunar orbit of the town, and
would be following the flood-lit drive that encircled it-"going round and
round," as she phrased it, "like a God-damn mulberry moth."
She had a natty
little coupĘ; and in it we traveled to California so as to give my
venerable vehicle a rest. her natural speed was ninety. Dear Rita! We cruised
together for two dim years, from summer 1950 to summer 1952, and she was the
sweetest, simplest, gentles, dumbest Rita imaginable. In comparison to her,
Valechak was A Schlegel, and Charlotte a Hegel. There is no earthly reason why
I should dally with her in the margin of this sinister memoir, but let me say
(hi, Rita-wherever you are, drunk or hangoverish, Rita, hi!) that she was the
most soothing, the most comprehending companion that I ever had, and certainly
saved me from the madhouse. I told her I was trying to trace a girl and plug
that girl's bully. Rita solemnly approved of the plan-and in the course of some
investigation she undertook on her own (without really knowing a thing), around
San Humbertino, got entangled with a pretty awful crook herself; I had the
devil of a time retrieving her-used and bruised but still cocky. Then one day
she proposed playing Russian roulette with my sacred automatic; I said you
couldn't, it was not a revolver, and we struggled for it, until at last it went
off, touching off a very thin and very comical spurt of hot water from the hole
it made in the wall of the cabin room; I remember her shrieks of laughter.
The oddly
prepubescent curve of her back, her ricey skin, her slow languorous columbine
kisses kept me from mischief. It is not the artistic aptitudes that are
secondary sexual characters as some shams and shamans have said; it is the
other way around: sex is but the ancilla of art. One rather mysterious spree
that had interesting repercussions I must notice. I had abandoned the search:
the fiend was either in Tartary or burning away in my cerebellum (the flames
fanned by my fancy and grief) but certainly not having Dolores Haze play
champion tennis on the Pacific Coast. One afternoon, on our way back East, in a
hideous hotel, the kind where they hold conventions and where labeled, fat,
pink men stagger around, all first names and business and booze-dear Rita and I
awoke to find a third in our room, a blond, almost albino, young fellow with
white eyelashes and large transparent ears, whom neither Rita nor I recalled
having ever seen in our sad lives. Sweating in thick dirty underwear, and with
old army boots on, he lay snoring on the double bed beyond my chaste Rita. One
of his front teeth was gone, amber pustules grew on his forehead. Ritochka
enveloped her sinuous nudity in my raincoat-the first thing at hand; I slipped
on a pair of candy-striped drawers; and we took stock of the situation. Five
glasses had been used, which in the way of clues, was an embarrassment of
riches. The door was not properly closed. A sweater and a pair of shapeless tan
pants lay on the floor. We shook their owner into miserable consciousness. He
was completely amnesic. In an accent that Rita recognized as pure Brooklynese,
he peevishly insinuated that somehow we had purloined his (worthless) identity.
We rushed him into his clothes and left him at the nearest hospital, realizing
on the way that somehow or other after forgotten gyrations, we ewer in Grainball.
Half a year later Rita wrote the doctor for news. Jack Humbertson as he had
been tastelessly dubbed was still isolated from his personal past. Oh
Mnemosyne, sweetest and most mischievous of muses!
I would not have
mentioned this incident had it not started a chain of ideas that resulted in my
publishing in the Cantrip Review an essay on "Mimir and Memory," in
which I suggested among other things that seemed original and important to that
splendid review's benevolent readers, a theory of perceptual time based on the
circulation of the blood and conceptually depending (to fill up this nutshell)
on the mind's being conscious not only of matter but also of its own self, thus
crating a continuous spanning of two points (the storable future and the stored
past). In result of this venture-and in culmination of the impression made by
my previous travaux-I was called from New York, where Rita and I were living in
a little flat with a view of gleaming children taking shower baths far below in
a fountainous arbor of Central Park, to Cantrip College, four hundred miles
away, for one year. I lodged there, in special apartments for poets and
philosophers, from September 1951 to June 1952, while Rita whom I preferred not
to display vegetated-somewhat indecorously, I am afraid-in a roadside inn where
I visited her twice a week. Then she vanished-more humanly than her predecessor
had done: a month later I found her in the local jail. She was trÉs
digne, had had her appendix removed, and managed to convince me that the beautiful
bluish furs she had been accused of stealing from a Mrs. Roland MacCrum had
really been a spontaneous, if somewhat alcoholic, gift from Roland himself. I
succeeded in getting her out without appealing to her touchy brother, and soon
afterwards we drove back to Central Park West, by way of Briceland, where we
had stopped for a few hours the year before.
A curious urge to
relive my stay there with Lolita had got hold of me. I was entering a phase of
existence where I had given up all hope of tracing her kidnapper and her. I now
attempted to fall back on old settings in order to save what still could be
saved in the way of souvenir, souvenir que me veux-tu? Autumn was ringing in
the air. To a post card requesting twin beds Professor Hamburg got a prompt expression
of regret in reply. They were full up. They had one bathless basement room with
four beds which they thought I would not want. Their note paper was headed:
The Enchanted
Hunters
Near Churches No
Dogs
All legal
beverages
I wondered if the
last statement was true. All? Did they have for instance sidewalk grenadine? I
also wondered if a hunter, enchanted or otherwise, would not need a pointer
more than a pew, and with a spasm of pain I recalled a scene worthy of a great
artist: petite nymphe accroupie; but that silky cocker spaniel had perhaps been
a baptized one. No-I felt I could not endure the throes of revisiting that
lobby. There was a much better possibility of retrievable time elsewhere in
soft, rich-colored, autumnal Briceland. Leaving Rita in a bar, I made for the
town library. A twittering spinster was only too glad to help me disinter
mid-August 1947 from the bound Briceland Gazette, and presently, in a secluded
nook under a naked light, I was turning the enormous and fragile pages of a
coffin-black volume almost as big as Lolita.
Reader! Bruder!
What a foolish Hamburg that Hamburg was! Since his supersensitive system was
loath to face the actual scene, he thought he could at least enjoy a secret
part of it-which reminds one of the tenth or twentieth soldier in the raping
queue who throws the girl's black shawl over her white face so as not to see
those impossible eyes while taking his military pleasure in the sad, sacked
village. What I lusted to get was the printed picture that had chanced to
absorb my trespassing image while the Gazette's photographer was concentrating
on Dr. Braddock and his group. Passionately I hoped to find preserved the
portrait of the artist as a younger brute. An innocent camera catching me on my
dark way to Lolita's bed-what a magnet for Mnemosyne! I cannot well explain the
true nature of that urge of mine. It was allied, I suppose, to that swooning
curiosity which impels one to examine with a magnifying glass bleak little
figures-still life practically, and everybody about to throw up-at an early
morning execution, and the patient's expression impossible to make out in the
print. Anyway, I was literally gasping for breath, and one corner of the book
of doom kept stabbing me in the stomach while I scanned and skimmed . . . Brute
Force and Possessed were coming on Sunday, the 24th, to both theatres. Mr.
Purdom, independent tobacco auctioneer, said that ever since 1925 he had been
an Omen Faustum smoker. Husky Hank and his petite bride were to be the guests
of Mr. and Mrs. Reginald G. Gore, 58 Inchkeith Ave. The size of certain
parasites is one sixth of the host. Dunkerque was fortified in the tenth
century. Misses' socks, 39 c. Saddle Oxfords 3.98. Wine, wine, wine, quipped
the author of Dark Age who refused to be photographed, may suit a Persuan
bubble bird, but I say give me rain, rain, rain on the shingle roof for roses
and inspiration every time. Dimples are caused by the adherence of the skin to
the deeper tissues. Greeks repulse a heavy guerrilla assault-and, ah, at last,
a little figure in white, and Dr. Braddock in black, but whatever spectral
shoulder was brushing against his ample form-nothing of myself could I make
out.
I went to find
Rita who introduced me with her vin triste smile to a pocket-sized wizened
truculently tight old man saying this was-what was the name again, son?-a
former schoolmate of hers. He tried to retain her, and in the slight scuffle
that followed I hurt my thumb against his hard head. In the silent painted part
where I walked her and aired her a little, she sobbed and said I would soon,
soon leave her as everybody had, and I sang her a wistful French ballad, and
strung together some fugitive rhymes to amuse her:
The place was
called Enchanted Hunters. Query:
What Indian dyes,
Diana, did thy dell
endorses to make
of Picture Lake a very
blood bath of
trees before the blue hotel?
She said:
"Why blue when it is white, why blue for heaven's sake?" and started
to cry again, and I marched her to the car, and we drove on to New York, and
soon she was reasonably happy again high up in the haze on the little terrace
of our flat. I notice I have somehow mixed up two events, my visit with Rita to
Briceland on our way to Carntrip, and our passing through Briceland again on our
way back to New York, but such suffusions of swimming colors are not to be
disdained by the artist in recollection.
27
My letterbox in
the entrance hall belonged to the type that allows one to glimpse something of
its contents through a glassed slit. Several times already, a trick of
harlequin light that fell through the glass upon an alien handwriting had
twisted it into a semblance of Lolita's script causing me almost to collapse as
I leant against an adjacent urn, almost my own. Whenever that happened-whenever
her lovely, childish scrawl was horribly transformed into the dull hand of one
of my few correspondents-I used to recollect, with anguished amusement, the
times in my trustful, pre-dolorian past when I would be misled by a
jewel-bright window opposite wherein my lurking eye, the ever alert periscope
of my shameful vice, would make out from afar a half-naked nymphet stilled in
the act of combing her Alice-in-Wonderland hair. There was in the fiery
phantasm a perfection which made my wild delight also perfect, just because the
vision was out of reach, with no possibility of attainment to spoil it by the
awareness of an appended taboo; indeed, it may well be that the very attraction
immaturity has for me lies not so much in the limpidity of pure young forbidden
fairy child beauty as in the security of a situation where infinite perfections
fill the gap between the little given and the great promised-the great rosegray
never-to-be-had. Mes fenËtres! Hanging above blotched sunset and welling
night, grinding my teeth, I would crowd all the demons of my desire against the
railing of a throbbing balcony: it would be ready to take off in the apricot
and black humid evening; did take off-whereupon the lighted image would move
and Even would revert to a rib, and there would be nothing in the window but an
obese partly clad man reading the paper.
Since I sometimes
won the race between my fancy and nature's reality, the deception was bearable.
Unbearable pain began when chance entered the fray and deprived me of the smile
meant for me. "Savez-vous qu'Á dix ans ma petite Ętait folle
de voius?" said a woman I talked to at a tea in Paris, and the petite had
just married, miles away, and I could not even remember if I had ever noticed
her in that garden, next to those tennis courts, a dozen years before. And now
likewise, the radiant foreglimpse, the promise of reality, a promise not only
to be simulated seductively but also to be nobly held-all this, chance denied
me-chance and a change to smaller characters on the pale beloved writer's part.
My fancy was both Proustianized and Procrusteanized; for that particular
morning, late in September 1952, as I had come down to grope for my mail, the
dapper and bilious janitor with whom I was on execrable terms started to complain
that a man who had seen Rita home recently had been "sick like a dog"
on the front steps. In the process of listening to him and tipping him, and
then listening to a revised and politer version of the incident, I had the
impression that one of the two letters which that blessed mail brought was from
Rita's mother, a crazy little woman, whom we had once visited on Cape Cod and
who kept writing me to my various addresses, saying how wonderfully well
matched her daughter and I were, and how wonderful it would be if we married;
the other letter which I opened and scanned rapidly in the elevator was from
John Farlow.
I have often
noticed that we are inclined to endow our friends with the stability of type
that literary characters acquire in the reader's mind. No matter how many times
we reopen "King Lear," never shall we find the good king banging his
tankard in high revelry, all woes forgotten, at a jolly reunion with all three
daughters and their lapdogs. Never will Emma rally, revived by the sympathetic
salts in Flaubert's father's timely tear. Whatever evolution this or that
popular character has gone through between the book covers, his fate is fixed
in our minds, and, similarly, we expect our friends to follow this or that
logical and conventional pattern we have fixed for them. Thus X will never
compose the immortal music that would clash with the second-rate symphonies he
has accustomed us to. Y will never commit murder. Under no circumstances can Z
ever betray us. We have it all arranged in our minds, and the less often we see
a particular person the more satisfying it is to check how obediently he
conforms to our notion of him every time we hear of him. Any deviation in the
fates we have ordained would strike us as not only anomalous but unethical. We
would prefer not to have known at all our neighbor, the retired hot-dog stand
operator, if it turns out he has just produced the greatest book of poetry his
age has seen.
I am saying all
this in order to explain how bewildered I was by Farlow's hysterical letter. I
knew his wife had died but I certainly expected him to remain, throughout a
devout widowhood, the dull, sedate and reliable person he had always been. Now
he wrote that after a brief visit to the U.S. he had returned to South America
and had decided that whatever affairs he had controlled at Ramsdale he would
hand over to Jack Windmuller of that town, a lawyer whom we both knew. He
seemed particularly relieved to get rid of the Haze "complications."
He had married a Spanish girl. He had stopped smoking and had gained thirty
pounds. She was very young and a ski champion. They were going to India for
their honeymonsoon. Since he was "building a family" as he put it, he
would have no time henceforth for my affairs which he termed "very strange
and very aggravating." Busybodies-a whole committee of them, it
appeared-had informed him that the whereabouts of little Dolly Haze were
unknown, and that I was living with a notorious divorcee in California. His
father-in-law was a count, and exceedingly wealthy. The people who had been
renting the Haze house for some years now wished to buy it. He suggested that I
better produce Dolly quick. he had broken his leg. He enclosed a snapshot of
himself and a brunette in white wool beaming at each other among the snows of
Chile.
I remember
letting myself into my flat and starting to say: Well, at least we shall now
track them down-when the other letter began talking to me in a small
matter-of-fact voice:
Dear Dad:
How's everything?
I'm married. I'm going to have a baby. I guess he's going to be a big one. I
guess he'll come right for Christmas. This is a hard letter to write. I'm going
nuts because we don't have enough to pay our debts and get out of here. Dick is
promised a big job in Alaska in his very specialized corner of the mechanical
field, that's all I know about it but it's really grand. Pardon me for
withholding our home address but you may still be mad at me, and Dick must not
know. This town is something. You can't see the morons for the smog. Please do send
us a check, Dad. We could manage with three or four hundred or even less,
anything is welcome, you might sell my old things, because once we go there the
dough will just start rolling in. Writ, please. I have gone through much
sadness and hardship.
Yours expecting,
Dolly (Mrs.
Richard F. Schiller)
28
I was again on
the road, again at the wheel of the old blue sedan, again alone. Rita had still
been dead to the world when I read that letter and fought the mountains of
agony it raised within me. I had glanced at her as she smiled in her sleep and
had kissed her on her moist brow, and had left her forever, with a note of
tender adieu which I taped to her navel-otherwise she might not have found it.
"Alone"
did I say? Pas tout Á fait. I had my little black chum with me, and as
soon as I reached a secluded spot, I rehearsed Mr. Richard F. Schiller's
violent death. I had found a very old and very dirty gray sweater of mine in
the back of the car, and this I hung up on a branch, in a speechless glade, which
I had reached by a wood road from the now remote highway. The carrying out of
the sentence was a little marred by what seemed to me a certain stiffness in
the play of the trigger, and I wondered if I should get some oil for the
mysterious thing but decided I had no time to spare. Back into the car went the
old dead sweater, now with additional perforations, and having reloaded warm
Chum, I continued my journey.
The letter was
dated September 18, 1952 (this was September 22), and the address she gave was
"General Delivery, Coalmont" (not "Va.," not
"Pa.," not "Tenn."-and not Coalmont, anyway-I have
camouflaged everything, my love). Inquiries showed this to be a small
industrial community some eight hundred miles from New York City. At first I
planned to drive all day and all night, but then thought better of it and
rested for a couple of hours around dawn in a motor court room, a few miles
before reaching the town. I had made up my mind that the fiend, this Schiller,
had been a car salesman who had perhaps got to know my Lolita by giving her a
ride in Beardsley-the day her bike blew a tire on the way to Miss Emperor-and
that he had got into some trouble since then. The corpse of the executed
sweater, no matter how I changed its contours as it lay on the back seat of the
car, had kept revealing various outlines pertaining to Trapp-Schiller-the
grossness and obscene bonhomie of his body, and to counteract this taste of
coarse corruption I resolved to make myself especially handsome and smart as I
pressed home the nipple of my alarm clock before it exploded at the set hour of
six a.m. Then, with the stern and romantic care of a gentleman about to fight a
duel, I checked the arrangement of my papers, bathed and perfumed my delicate
body, shaved my face and chest, selected a silk shirt and clean drawers, pulled
on transparent taupe socks, and congratulated myself for having with me in my
trunk some very exquisite clothes-a waistcoat with nacreous buttons, for
instance, a pale cashmere tie and so on.
I was not able, alas,
to hold my breakfast, but dismissed that physicality as a trivial contretemps,
wiped my mouth with a gossamer handkerchief produced from my sleeve, and, with
a blue block of ice for heart, a pill on my tongue and solid death in my hip
pocket, I stepped neatly into a telephone booth in Coalmont (Ah-ah-ah, said its
little door) and rang up the only Schiller-Paul, Furniture-to be found in the
battered book. Hoarse Paul told me he did know a Richard, the son of a cousin
of his, and his address was, let me see, 10 Killer Street (I am not going very
far for my pseudonyms). Ah-ah-ah, said the little door.
At 10 Killer
Street, a tenement house, I interviewed a number of dejected old people and two
long-haired strawberry-blond incredibly grubby nymphets (rather abstractly,
just for the heck of it, the ancient beast in me was casting about for some
lightly clad child I might hold against me for a minute, after the killing was
over and nothing mattered any more, and everything was allowed). Yes, Dick
Skiller had lived there, but had moved when he married. Nobody knew his
address. "They might know at the store," said a bass voice from an
open manhole near which I happened to be standing with the two thin-armed,
barefoot little girls and their dim grandmothers. I entered the wrong store and
a wary old Negro shook his head even before I could ask anything. I crossed
over to a bleak grocery and there, summoned by a customer at my request, a
woman's voice from some wooden abyss in the floor, the manhole's counterpart, cried
out: Hunter Road, last house.
Hunter Road was
miles away, in an even more dismal district, all dump and ditch, and wormy
vegetable garden, and shack, and gray drizzle, and red mud, and several smoking
stacks in the distance. I stopped at the last "house"-a clapboard
shack, with two or three similar ones farther away from the road and a waste of
withered weeds all around. Sounds of hammering came from behind the house, and
for several minutes I sat quite still in my old car, old and frail, at the end
of my journey, at my gray goal, finis, my friends, finis, my friends. The time
was around two. My pulse was 40 one minute and 100 the next. The drizzle
crepitated against the hood of the car. My gun had migrated to my right trouser
pocket. A nondescript cur came out from behind the house, stopped in surprise,
and started good-naturedly woof-woofing at me, his eyes slit, his shaggy belly
all muddy, and then walked about a little and woofed once more.
29
I got out of the
car and slammed its door. How matter-of-fact, how square that slam sounded in
the void of the sunless day! Woof, commented the dog perfunctorily. I pressed
the bell button, it vibrated through my whole system. Personne. Je resonne.
Repersonne. From what depth this re-nonsense? Woof, said the dog. A rush and a
shuffle, and woosh-woof went the door.
Couple of inches
taller. Pink-rimmed glasses. New, heaped-up hairdo, new ears. How simple! The
moment, the death I had kept conjuring up for three years was as simple as a
bit of dry wood. She was frankly and hugely pregnant. Her head looked smaller
(only two seconds had passed really, but let me give them as much wooden
duration as life can stand), and her pale-freckled cheeks were hollowed, and
her bare shins and arms had lost all their tan, so that the little hairs
showed. She wore a brown, sleeveless cotton dress and sloppy felt slippers.
"We-e-ell!"
she exhaled after a pause with all the emphasis of wonder and welcome.
"Husband at
home?" I croaked, fist in pocket.
I could not kill
her, of course, as some have thought. You see, I loved her. It was love at
first sight, at last sight, at ever and ever sight.
"Come
in," she said with a vehement cheerful note. Against the splintery
deadwood of the door, Dolly Schiller flattened herself as best she could (even
rising on tiptoe a little) to let me pass, and was crucified for a moment,
looking down, smiling down at the threshold, hollow-cheeked with round
pommettes, her watered-milk-white arms outspread on the wood. I passed without
touching her bulging babe. Dolly-smell, with a faint fried addition. My teeth
chattered like an idiot's. "No, you stay out" (to the dog). She
closed the door and followed me and her belly into the dollhouse parlor.
"Dick's down
there," she said pointing with an invisible tennis racket, inviting my
gaze to travel from the drab parlor-bedroom where we stood, right across the
kitchen, and through the back doorway where, in a rather primitive vista, a
dark-haired young stranger in overalls, instantaneously reprieved, was perched
with his back to me on a ladder fixing something near or upon the shack of his
neighbor, a plumper fellow with only one arm, who stood looking up.
This pattern she
explained from afar, apologetically ("Men will be men"); should she
call him in?
No.
Standing in the
middle of the slanting room and emitting questioning "hm's," she made
familiar Javanese gestures with her wrists and hands, offering me, in a brief
display of humorous courtesy, to choose between a rocker and the divan (their
bed after ten p.m.). I say "familiar" because one day she had
welcomed me with the same wrist dance to her party in Beardsley. We both sat
down on the divan. Curious: although actually her looks had faded, I definitely
realized, so hopelessly late in the day, how much she looked-had always
looked-like Botticelli's russet Venus-the same soft nose, the same blurred
beauty. In my pocket my fingers gently let go and repacked a little at the tip,
within the handkerchief it was nested in, my unused weapon.
"that's not
the fellow I want," I said.
The diffuse look
of welcome left her eyes. Her forehead puckered as in the old bitter days:
"Not
who?"
"Where is
he? Quick!"
"Look,"
she said, inclining her head to one side and shaking it in that position.
"Look, you are not going to bring that up."
"I certainly
am," I said, and for a moment-strangely enough the only merciful,
endurable one in the whole interview-we were bristling at each other as if she
were still mine.
A wise girl, she
controlled herself.
Dick did not know
a thing of the whole mess. He thought I was her father. He thought she had run
away from an upper-class home just to wash dishes in a diner. He believed
anything. Why should I want to make things harder than they were by raking up
all that muck?
But, I said, she
must be sensible, she must be a sensible girl (with her bare drum under that
thin brown stuff), she must understand that if she expected the help I had come
to give, I must have at least a clear comprehension of the situation.
"Come, his
name!"
She thought I had
guessed long ago. It was (with a mischievous and melancholy smile) such a
sensational name. I would never believe it. She could hardly believe it
herself.
His name, my fall
nymph.
It was so
unimportant, she said. She suggested I skip it. Would I like a cigarette?
No. His name.
She shook her
head with great resolution. She guessed it was too late to raise hell and I
would never believe the unbelievably unbelievable-
I said I had
better go, regards, nice to have seen her.
She said really
it was useless, she would never tell, but on the other hand, after all-"Do
you really want to know who it was? Well, it was-"
And softly,
confidentially, arching her thin eyebrows and puckering her parched lips, she
emitted, a little mockingly, somewhat fastidiously, not untenderly, in a kind
of muted whistle, the name that the astute reader has guessed long ago.
Waterproof. Why
did a flash from Hourglass Lake cross my consciousness? I, too, had known it,
without knowing it, all along. There was no shock, no surprise. Quietly the
fusion took place, and everything fell into order, into the pattern of branches
that I have woven throughout this memoir with the express purpose of having the
ripe fruit fall at the right moment; yes, with the express and perverse purpose
of rendering-she was talking but I sat melting in my golden peace-of rendering
that golden and monstrous peace through the satisfaction of logical
recognition, which my most inimical reader should experience now.
She was, as I say,
talking. It now came in a relaxed flow. He was the only man she had ever been
crazy about. What about Dick? Oh, Dick was a lamb, they were quite happy
together, but she meant something different. And I had never counted, of
course?
She considered me
as if grasping all at once the incredible-and somehow tedious, confusing and
unnecessary-fact that the distant, elegant, slender, forty-year-old
valetudinarian in velvet coat sitting beside her had known and adored every
pore and follicle of her pubescent body. In her washed-out gray eyes, strangely
spectacled, our poor romance was for a moment reflected, pondered upon, and
dismissed like a dull party, like a rainy picnic to which only the dullest
bores had come, like a humdrum exercise, like a bit of dry mud caking her
childhood.
I just managed to
jerk my knee out of the range of a sketchy tap-one of her acquired gestures.
She asked me not
to be dense. The past was the past. I had been a good father, she
guessed-granting me that. Proceed, Dolly Schiller.
Well, did I know
that he had known her mother? That he was practically an old friend? That he
had visited with his uncle in Ramsdale?-oh, years ago-and spoken at Mother's
club, and had tugged and pulled her, Dolly, by her bare arm onto his lap in
front of everybody, and kissed her face, she was ten and furious with him? Did
I know he had seen me and her at the inn where he was writing the very play she
was to rehearse in Beardsley, two years later? Did I know-It had been horrid of
her to sidetrack me into believing that Clare was an old female, maybe a
relative of his or a sometime lifemate-and oh, what a close shave it had been
when the Wace Journal carried his picture.
The Briceland
Gazette had not. Yes, very amusing.
Yes, she said,
this world was just one gag after another, if somebody wrote up her life nobody
would ever believe it.
At this point,
there came brisk homey sounds from the kitchen into which Dick and Bill had
lumbered in quest of beer. Through the doorway they noticed the visitor, and
Dick entered the parlor.
"Dick, this
is my Dad!" cried Dolly in a resounding violent voice that struck me as a
totally strange, and new, and cheerful, and old, and sad, because the young
fellow, veteran of a remote war, was hard of hearing.
Arctic blue eyes,
black hair, ruddy cheeks, unshaven chin. We shook hands. Discreet Bill, who
evidently took pride in working wonders with one hand, brought in the beer cans
he had opened. Wanted to withdraw. The exquisite courtesy of simple folks. Was
made to stay. A beer ad. In point of fact, I preferred it that way, and so did
the Schillers. I switched to the jittery rocker. Avidly munching, Dilly plied
me with marshmallows and potato chips. The men looked at her fragile, frileux,
diminutive, old-world, youngish but sickly, father in velvet coat and beige
vest, maybe a viscount.
They were under
the impression I had come to stay, and Dick with a great wrinkling of brows
that denoted difficult thought, suggested Dolly and he might sleep in the
kitchen on a spare mattress. I waved a light hand and told Dolly who
transmitted it by means of a special shout to Dick that I had merely dropped in
on my way to Readsburg where I was to be entertained by some friends and
admirers. It was then noticed that one of the few thumbs remaining to Bill was
bleeding (not such a wonder-worker after all). How womanish and somehow never
seen that way before was the shadowy division between her pale breasts when she
bent down over the man's hand! She took him for repairs to the kitchen. For a
few minutes, three or four little eternities which positively welled with
artificial warmth, Dick and I remained alone. He sat on a hard chair rubbing
his forelimbs and frowning. I had an idle urge to squeeze out the blackheads on
the wings of his perspiring nose with my long agate claws. He had nice sad eyes
with beautiful lashes, and very white teeth. His Adam's apple was large and
hairy. Why don't they shave better, those young brawny chaps? He and his Dolly
had had unrestrained intercourse on that couch there, at least a hundred and
eighty times, probably much more; and before that-how long had she known him?
No grudge. Funny-no grudge at all, nothing except grief and nausea. He was now
rubbing his nose. I was sure that when finally he would open his mouth, he
would say (slightly shaking his head): "Aw, she's a swell kid, Mr. Haze.
She sure is. And she's going to make a swell mother." He opened his
mouth-and took a sip of beer. This gave him countenance-and he went on sipping
till he frothed at the mouth. He was a lamb. He had cupped her Florentine
breasts. His fingernails were black and broken, but the phalanges, the whole
carpus, the strong shapely wrist were far, far finer than mine: I have hurt too
much too many bodies with my twisted poor hands to be proud of them. French
epithets, a Dorset yokel's knuckles, an Austrian tailor's flat finger
tips-that's Humbert Humbert.
Good. If he was
silent I could be silent too. Indeed, I could very well do with a little rest
in this subdued, frightened-to-death rocking chair, before I drove to wherever
the beast's lair was-and then pulled the pistol's foreskin back, and then
enjoyed the orgasm of the crushed trigger: I was always a good little follower
of the Viennese medicine man. But presently I became sorry for poor Dick whom,
in some hypnotoid way, I was horribly preventing from making the only remark he
could think up ("She's a swell kid. . .").
"And
so," I said, "you are going to Canada?"
In the kitchen,
Dolly was laughing at something Bill had said or done.
"And so,"
I shouted, "you are going to Canada? Not Canada"-I re-shouted-"I
mean Alaska, of course."
He nursed his
glass and, nodding sagely, replied: "Well, he cut it on a jagger, I guess.
Lost his right arm in Italy."
Lovely mauve
almond trees in bloom. A blown-off surrealistic arm hanging up there in the
pointillistic mauve. A flowergirl tattoo on the hand. Dolly and band-aided Bill
reappeared. It occurred to me that her ambiguous, brown and pale beauty excited
the cripple. Dick, with a grin of relief stood up. He guessed Bill and he would
be going back to fix those wires. He guessed Mr. Haze and Dolly had loads of
things to say to each other. He guessed he would be seeing me before I left.
Why do those people guess so much and shave so little, and are so disdainful of
hearing aids?
"Sit
down," she said, audibly striking her flanks with her palms. I relapsed
into the black rocker.
"So you
betrayed me? Where did you go? Where is he now?"
She took from the
mantelpiece a concave glossy snapshot. Old woman in white, stout, beaming,
bowlegged, very short dress; old man in his shirtsleeves, drooping mustache,
watch chain. Her in-laws. Living with Dick's brother's family in Juneau.
"Sure you
don't want to smoke?"
She was smoking
herself. First time I saw her doing it. Streng verboten under Humbert the
Terrible. Gracefully, in a blue mist, Charlotte Haze rose from her grave. I
would find him through Uncle Ivory if she refused.
"Betrayed
you? No." She directed the dart of her cigarette, index rapidly tapping
upon it, toward the hearth exactly as her mother used to do, and then, like her
mother, oh my God, with her fingernail scratched and removed a fragment of
cigarette paper from her underlip. No. She had not betrayed me. I was among
friends. Edusa had warned her that Cue liked little girls, had been almost
jailed once, in fact (nice fact), and he knew she knew. Yes . . . Elbow in
palm, puff, smile, exhaled smoke, darting gesture. Waxing reminiscent. He
saw-smiling-through everything and everybody, because he was not like me and
her but a genius. A great guy. Full of fun. Had rocked with laughter when she
confessed about me and her, and said he had thought so. It was quite safe,
under the circumstances, to tell him . . .
Well, Cue-they
all called him Cue-
Her camp five
years ago. Curious coincidence-. . . took her to a dude ranch about a day's
drive from Elephant (Elphinstone). Named? Oh, some silly name-Duk Duk Ranch-you
know just plain silly-but it did not matter now, anyway, because the place had
vanished and disintegrated. Really, she meant, I could not imagine how utterly
lush that ranch was, she meant it had everything but everything, even an indoor
waterfall. Did I remember the red-haired guy we ("we" was good) had
once had some tennis with? Well, the place really belonged to Red's brother,
but he had turned it over to Cue for the summer. When Cue and she came, the
others had them actually go through a coronation ceremony and then-a terrific
ducking, as when you cross the Equator. You know.
Her eyes rolled
in synthetic resignation.
"Go on,
please."
Well. The idea
was he would take her in September to Hollywood and arrange a tryout for her, a
bit part in the tennis-match scene of a movie picture based on a play of
his-Golden Guts-and perhaps even have her double one of its sensational
starlets on the Klieg-struck tennis court. Alas, it never came to that.
"Where is
the hog now?"
He was not a hog.
He was a great guy in many respects. But it was all drink and drugs. And, of
course, he was a complete freak in sex matters, and his friends were his slaves.
I just could not imagine (I, Humbert, could not imagine!) what they all did at
Duk Duk Ranch. She refused to take part because she loved him, and he threw her
out.
"What
things?"
"Oh, weird,
filthy, fancy things. I mean, he had two girls and tow boys, and three or four
men, and the idea was for all of us to tangle in the nude while an old woman
took movie pictures." (Sade's Justine was twelve at the start.)
"What things
exactly?"
"Oh, things
. . . Oh, I-really I"-she uttered the "I" as a subdued cry while
she listened to the source of the ache, and for lack of words spread the five
fingers of her angularly up-and-down-moving hand. No, she gave it up, she
refused to go into particulars with that baby inside her.
That made sense.
"It is of no
importance now," she said pounding a gray cushing with her fist and then
lying back, belly up, on the divan. "Crazy things, filthy things. I said
no, I'm just not going to [she used, in all insouciance really, a disgusting
slang term which, in a literal French translation, would be souffler] your
beastly boys, because I want only you. Well, he kicked me out."
There was not
much else to tell. That winter 1949, Fay and she had found jobs. For almost two
years she had-oh, just drifted, oh, doing some restaurant work in small places,
and then she had met Dick. No, she did not know where the other was. In New
York, she guessed. Of course, he was so famous she would have found him at once
if she had wanted. Fay had tried to get back to the Ranch-and it just was not
there any more-it had burned to the ground, nothing remained, just a charred
heap of rubbish. It was so strange, so strange-
She closed her
eyes and opened her mouth, leaning back on the cushion, one felted foot on the
floor. The wooden floor slanted, a little steel ball would have rolled into the
kitchen. I knew all I wanted to know. I had no intention of torturing my
darling. Somewhere beyond Bill's shack an afterwork radio had begun singing of
folly and fate, and there she was with her ruined looks and her adult,
rope-veined narrow hands and her goose-flesh white arms, and her shallow ears,
and her unkempt armpits, there she was (my Lolita!), hopelessly worn at
seventeen, with that baby, dreaming already in her of becoming a big shot and
retiring around 2020 A.D.-and I looked and looked at her, and knew as clearly
as I know I am to die, that I loved her more than anything I had ever seen or
imagined on earth, or hoped for anywhere else. She was only the faint violet
whiff and dead leaf echo of the nymphet I had rolled myself upon with such
cries in the past; an echo on the brink of a russet ravine, with a far wood
under a white sky, and brown leaves choking the brook, and one last cricket in
the crisp weeds . . . but thank God it was not that echo alone that I worshipped.
What I used to pamper among the tangled vines of my heart, mon grand
pËchĘ radieux, had dwindled to its essence: sterile and selfish vice,
all that I canceled and cursed. You may jeer at me, and threaten to clear the
court, but until I am gagged and half-throttled, I will shout my poor truth. I
insist the world know how much I loved my Lolita, this Lolita, pale and
polluted, and big with another's child, but still gray-eyed, still
sooty-lashed, still auburn and almond, still Carmencita, still mine; Changeons
de vie, ma Carmen, allons vivre quelque part oÝ nous ne serons jamais
sÉparÉs; Ohio? The wilds of Massachusetts? No matter, even if
those eyes of hers would fade to myopic fish, and her nipples swell and crack,
and her lovely young velvety delicate delta be tainted and torn-even then I
would go mad with tenderness at the mere sight of your dear wan face, at the
mere sound of your raucous young voice, my Lolita.
"Lolita,"
I said, "this may be neither here nor there but I have to say it. Life is
very short. From here to that old car you know so well thee is a stretch of
twenty, twenty-five paces. It is a very short walk. Make those twenty-five
steps. Now. Right now. Come just as you are. And we shall live happily ever
after."
Carmen,
voulez-vous venir avec moi?
"You
mean," she said opening her eyes and raising herself slightly, the snake
that may strike, "you mean you will give us [us] that money only if I go
with you to a motel. Is that what you mean?"
"No," I
said, "you got it all wrong. I want you to leave your incidental Dick, and
this awful hole, and come to live with me, and die with me, and everything with
me" (words to that effect).
"You're
crazy," she said, her features working.
"Think it
over, Lolita. There are no strings attached. Except, perhaps-well, no
matter." (A reprieve, I wanted to say but did not.) "Anyway, if you
refuse you will still get your . . . trousseau."
"No
kidding?" asked Dolly.
I handed her an
envelope with four hundred dollars in cash and a check for three thousand six
hundred more.
Gingerly,
uncertainly, she received mon petit cadeau; and then her forehead became a
beautiful pink. "You mean," she said, with agonized emphasis,
"you are giving us four thousand bucks?" I covered my face with my
hand and broke into the hottest tears I had ever shed. I felt them winding
through my fingers and down my chin, and burning me, and my nose got clogged,
and I could not stop, and then she touched my wrist.
"I'll die if
you touch me," I said. "You are sure you are not coming with me? Is
there no hope of your coming? Tell me only this."
"No,"
she said. "No, honey, no."
She had never
called me honey before.
"No,"
she said, "it is quite out of the question. I would sooner go back to Cue.
I mean-"
She groped for
words. I supplied them mentally ("He broke my heart. You merely broke my
life").
"I
think," she went on-"oops"-the envelope skidded to the floor-she
picked it up-"I think it's oh utterly grand of you to give us all that
dough. It settles everything, we can start next week. Stop crying, please. You
should understand. Let me get you some more beer. Oh, don't cry, I'm so sorry I
cheated so much, but that's the way things are."
I wiped my face
and my fingers. She smiled at the cadeau. She exulted. She wanted to call Dick.
I said I would have to leave in a moment, did not want to see him at all, at
all. We tried to think of some subject of conversation. For some reason, I kept
seeing-it trembled and silkily glowed on my damn retina-a radiant child of
twelve, sitting on a threshold, "pinging" pebbles at an empty can. I
almost said-trying to find some casual remark-"I wonder sometimes what has
become of the little McCoo girl, did she ever get better?"-but stopped in
time lest she rejoin: "I wonder sometimes what has become of the little
Haze girl . . ." Finally, I reverted to money matters. That sum, I said,
represented more or less the net rent from her mother's house; she said:
"Had it not been sold years ago?" No (I admit I had told her this in
order to sever all connections with R.); a lawyer would send a full account of
the financial situation later; it was rosy; some of the small securities her
mother had owned had gone up and up. Yes, I was quite sure I had to go. I had
to go, and find him, and destroy him.
Since I would not
have survived the touch of her lips, I kept retreating in a mincing dance, at
every step she and her belly made toward me.
She and the dog
saw me off. I was surprised (this a rhetorical figure, I was not) that the
sight of the old car in which she had ridden as a child and a nymphet, left her
so very indifferent. All she remarked was it was getting sort of purplish about
the gills. I said it was hers, I could go by bus. She said don't be silly, they
would fly to Jupiter and buy a car there. I said I would buy this one from her
for five hundred dollars.
"At this
rate we'll be millionnaires next," she said to the ecstatic dog.
Carmencita, lui
demandais-je . . . "One last word," I said in my horrible careful
English, "are you quite, quite sure that-well, not tomorrow, of course,
and not after tomorrow, but-well-some day, any day, you will not come to live
with me? I will create a brand new God and thank him with piercing cries, if
you give me that microscopic hope" (to that effect).
"No,"
she said smiling, "no."
"It would
have made all the difference," said Humbert Humbert.
Then I pulled out
my automatic-I mean, this is the kind of fool thing a reader might suppose I
did. It never even occurred to me to do it.
"Good
by-aye!" she changed, my American sweet immortal dead love; for she is
dead and immortal if you are reading this. I mean, such is the formal agreement
with the so-called authorities.
Then, as I drove
away, I heard her shout in a vibrant voice to her Dick; and the dog started to
lope alongside my car like a fat dolphin, but he was too heavy and old, and
very soon gave up.
And presently I
was driving through the drizzle of the dying day, with the windshield wipers in
full action but unable to cope with my tears.
30
Leaving as I did
Coalmont around four in the afternoon (by Route X-I do not remember the
number(, I might have made Ramsdale by dawn had not a short-cut tempted me. I
had to get onto Highway Y. My map showed quite blandly that just beyond
Woodbine, which I reached at nightfall, I could leave paved X and reached paved
Y by means of a transverse dirt road. It was only some forty miles long
according to my map. Otherwise I would have to follow X for another hundred
miles and then use leisurely looping Z to get to Y and my destination. However,
the short-cut in question got worse and worse, bumpier and bumpier, muddier and
muddier, and when I attempted to turn back after some ten miles of purblind,
tortuous and tortoise-slow progress, my old and weak Melmoth got stuck in deep
clay. All was dark and muggy, and hopeless. My headlights hung over a broad
ditch full of water. The surrounding country, if any, was a black wilderness. I
sought to extricate myself but my rear wheels only whined in slosh and anguish.
Cursing my plight, I took off my fancy clothes, changed into slacks, pulled on
the bullet-riddled sweater, and waded four miles back to a roadside farm. It started
to rain on the way but I had not the strength to go back for a mackintosh. Such
incidents have convinced me that my heart is basically sound despite recent
diagnoses. Around midnight, a wrecker dragged my car out. I navigated back to
Highway X and traveled on. Utter weariness overtook me and hour later, in an
anonymous little town. I pulled up at the curb and in darkness drank deep from
a friendly flask.
The rain had been
canceled miles before. It was a black warm night, somewhere in Appalachia. Now
and then cars passed me, red tail-lights receding, white headlights advancing,
but the town was dead. Nobody strolled and laughed on the sidewalks as relaxing
burghers would in sweet, mellow, rotting Europe. I was alone to enjoy the
innocent night and my terrible thoughts. A wire receptacle on the curb was very
particular about acceptable contents: Sweepings. Paper. No Garbage. Sherry-red
letters of light marked a Camera Shop. A large thermometer with the name of a
laxative quietly dwelt on the front of a drugstore. Rubinov's Jewelry company
had a display of artificial diamonds reflected in a red mirror. A lighted green
clock swam in the linenish depths of Jiffy Jeff Laundry. On the other side of
the street a garage said in its sleep-genuflection lubricity; and corrected
itself to Gulflex Lubrication. An airplane, also gemmed by Rubinov, passed,
droning, in the velvet heavens. How many small dead-of-night towns I had seen!
This was not yet the last.
Let me dally a
little, he is as good as destroyed. Some way further across the street, neon
lights flickered twice slower than my heart: the outline of a restaurant sign,
a large coffee-pot, kept bursting, every full second or so, into emerald life,
and every time it went out, pink letters saying Fine Foods relayed it, but the
pot could still be made out as a latent shadow teasing the eye before its next
emerald resurrection. We made shadow-graphs. This furtive burg was not far from
The Enchanted Hunters. I was weeping again, drunk on the impossible past.
31
At this solitary
stop for refreshments between Coalmont and Ramsdale (between innocent Dolly
Schiller and jovial Uncle Ivor), I reviewed my case. With the utmost simplicity
and clarity I now saw myself and my love. Previous attempts seemed out of focus
in comparison. A couple of years before, under the guidance of an intelligent
French-speaking confessor, to whom, in a moment of metaphysical curiosity, I
had turned over a Protestant's drab atheism for an old-fashioned popish cure, I
had hoped to deduce from my sense of sin the existence of a Supreme Being. On
those frosty mornings in rime-laced Quebec, the good priest worked on me with
the finest tenderness and understanding. I am infinitely obliged to him and the
great Institution he represented. Alas, I was unable to transcend the simple
human fact that whatever spiritual solace I might find, whatever lithophanic
eternities might be provided for me, nothing could make my Lolita forget the
foul lust I had inflicted upon her. Unless it can be proven to me-to me as I am
now, today, with my heart and by beard, and my putrefaction-that in the
infinite run it does not matter a jot that a North American girl-child named
Dolores Haze had been deprived of her childhood by a maniac, unless this can be
proven (and if it can, then life is a joke), I see nothing for the treatment of
my misery but the melancholy and very local palliative of articulate art. To
quote an old poet:
The moral sense
in mortals is the duty
We have to pay on
mortal sense of beauty.
32
There was the day,
during our first trip-our first circle of paradise-when in order to enjoy my
phantasms in peace I firmly decided to ignore what I could not help perceiving,
the fact that I was to her not a boy friend, not a glamour man, not a pal, not
even a person at all, but just two eyes and a foot of engorged brawn-to mention
only mentionable matters. There was the day when having withdrawn the
functional promise I had made her on the eve (whatever she had set her funny
little heart on-a roller rink with some special plastic floor or a movie
matinee to which she wanted to go alone), I happened to glimpse from the
bathroom, through a chance combination of mirror aslant and door ajar, a look
on her face . . . that look I cannot exactly describe . . . an expression of helplessness
so perfect that it seemed to grade into one of rather comfortable inanity just
because this was the very limit of injustice and frustration-and every limit
presupposes something beyond it-hence the neutral illumination. And when you
bear in mind that these were the raised eyebrows and parted lips of a child,
you may better appreciate what depths of calculated carnality, what reflected
despair, restrained me from falling at her dear feet and dissolving in human
tears, and sacrificing my jealousy to whatever pleasure Lolita might hope to
derive from mixing with dirty and dangerous children in an outside world that
was real to her.
And I have still
other smothered memories, now unfolding themselves into limbless monsters of
pain. Once, in a sunset-ending street of Beardsley, she turned to little Eva
Rosen (I was taking both nymphets to a concert and walking behind them so close
as almost to touch them with my person), she turned to Eva, and so very
serenely and seriously, in answer to something the other had said about its
being better to die than hear Milton Pinski, some local schoolboy she knew,
talk about music, my Lolita remarked:
"You know,
what's so dreadful about dying is that you are completely on your own";
and it struck me, as my automaton knees went up and down, that I simply did not
know a thing about my darling's mind and that quite possibly, behind the awful
juvenile clichĘs, there was in her a garden and a twilight, and a palace
gate-dim and adorable regions which happened to be lucidly and absolutely
forbidden to me, in my polluted rags and miserable convulsions; for I often
noticed that living as we did, she and I, in a world of total evil, we would
become strangely embarrassed whenever I tried to discuss something she and an
older friend, she and a parent, she and a real healthy sweetheart, I and
Annabel, Lolita and a sublime, purified, analyzed, deified Harold Haze, might
have discussed-an abstract idea, a painting, stippled Hopkins or shorn
Baudelaire, God or Shakespeare, anything of genuine kind. Good will! She would
mail her vulnerability in trite brashness and boredom, whereas I, using for my
desperately detached comments an artificial tone of voice that set my own last
teeth on edge, provoked my audience to such outbursts of rudeness as made any
further conversation impossible, oh my poor, bruised child.
I loved you. I
was a pentapod monster, but I loved you. I was despicable and brutal, and
turpid, and everything, mais je t'aimais, je t'aimais! And there were times
when I knew how you felt, and it was hell to know it, my little one. Lolita
girl, brave Dolly Schiller.
I recall certain
moments, let us call them icebergs in paradise, when after having had my fill
of her-after fabulous, insane exertions that left me limp and azure-barred-I
would gather her in my arms with, at last, a mute moan of human tenderness (her
skin glistening in the neon light coming from the paved court through the slits
in the blind, her soot-black lashes matted, her grave gray eyes more vacant
than ever-for all the world a little patient still in the confusion of a drug
after a major operation)-and the tenderness would deepen to shame and despair,
and I would lull and rock my lone light Lolita in my marble arms, and moan in
her warm hair, and caress her at random and mutely ask her blessing, and at the
peak of this human agonized selfless tenderness (with my soul actually hanging
around her naked body and ready to repent), all at once, ironically, horribly,
lust would swell again-and "oh, no," Lolita would say with a sigh to
heaven, and the next moment the tenderness and the azure-all would be
shattered.
Mid-twentieth
century ideas concerning child-parent relationship have been considerably
tainted by the scholastic rigmarole and standardized symbols of the
psychoanalytic racket, but I hope I am addressing myself to unbiased readers.
Once when Avis's father had honked outside to signal papa had come to take his
pet home, I felt obliged to invite him into the parlor, and he sat down for a
minute, and while we conversed, Avis, a heavy, unattractive, affectionate
child, drew up to him and eventually perched plumply on his knee. Now, I do not
remember if I have mentioned that Lolita always had an absolutely enchanting
smile for strangers, a tender furry slitting of the eyes, a dreamy sweet
radiance of all her features which did not mean a thing of course, but was so
beautiful, so endearing that one found it hard to reduce such sweetness to but
a magic gene automatically lighting up her face in atavistic token of some
ancient rite of welcome-hospitable prostitution, the coarse reader may say.
Well, there she stood while Mr. Byrd twirled his hat and talked, and-yes, look
how stupid of me, I have left out the main characteristic of the famous Lolita
smile, namely: while the tender, nectared, dimpled brightness played, it was
never directed at the stranger in the room but hung in its own remote flowered
void, so to speak, or wandered with myopic softness over chance objects-and
this is what was happening now: while fat Avis sidled up to her papa, Lolita
gently beamed at a fruit knife that she fingered on the edge of the table,
whereon she leaned, many miles away from me. Suddenly, as Avis clung to her
father's neck and ear while, with a casual arm, the man enveloped his lumpy and
large offspring, I saw Lolita's smile lose all its light and become a frozen
little shadow of itself, and the fruit knife slipped off the table and struck
her with its silver handle a freak blow on the ankle which made her gasp, and
crouch head forward, and then, jumping on one leg, her face awful with the
preparatory grimace which children hold till the tears gush, she was gone-to be
followed at once and consoled in the kitchen by Avis who had such a wonderful
fat pink dad and a small chubby brother, and a brand-new baby sister, and a
home, and two grinning dogs, and Lolita had nothing. And I have a neat pendant
to that little scene-also in a Beardsley setting. Lolita, who had been reading
near the fire, stretched herself, and then inquired, her elbow up, with a
grunt: "Where is she buried anyway?" "Who?" "Oh, you
know, my murdered mummy." "And you know where her grave is," I
said controlling myself, whereupon I named the cemetery-just outside Ramsdale,
between the railway tracks and Lakeview Hill. "Moreover," I added,
"the tragedy of such an accident is somewhat cheapened by the epithet you
saw fit to apply to it. If you really wish to triumph in your mind over the
idea of death-" "Ray," said Lo for hurrah, and languidly left
the room, and for a long while I stared with smarting eyes into the fire. Then
I picked up her book. It was some trash for young people. There was a gloomy
girl Marion, and there was her stepmother who turned out to be, against all
expectations, a young, gay, understanding redhead who explained to Marion that
Marion's dead mother had really been a heroic woman since she had deliberately
dissimulated her great love for Marion because she was dying, and did not want
her child to miss her. I did not rush up to her room with cries. I always
preferred the mental hygiene of noninterference. Now, squirming and pleading
with my own memory, I recall that on this and similar occasions, it was always
my habit and method to ignore Lolita's states of mind while comforting my own
base self. When my mother, in a livid wet dress, under the tumbling mist (so I
vividly imagined her), had run panting ecstatically up that ridge above
Moulinet to be felled there by a thunderbolt, I was but an infant, and in
retrospect no yearnings of the accepted kind could I ever graft upon any moment
of my youth, no matter how savagely psychotherapists heckled me in my later
periods of depression. But I admit that a man of my power of imagination cannot
plead personal ignorance of universal emotions. I may also have relied too much
on the abnormally chill relations between Charlotte and her daughter. But the
awful point of the whole argument is this. It had become gradually clear to my
conventional Lolita during our singular and bestial cohabitation that even the
most miserable of family lives was better than the parody of incest, which, in
the long run, was the best I could offer the waif.
33
Ramsdale
revisited. I approached it from the side of the lake. The sunny noon was all
eyes. As I rode by in my mud-flecked car, I could distinguish scintillas of
diamond water between the far pines. I turned into the cemetery and walked
among the long and short stone monuments. Bonzhur, Charlotte. On some of the
graves there were pale, transparent little national flags slumped in the
windless air under the evergreens. Gee, Ed, that was bad luck-referring to G.
Edward Grammar, a thirty-five-year-old New York office manager who had just
been arrayed on a charge of murdering his thirty-three-year-old wife, Dorothy.
Bidding for the perfect crime, Ed had bludgeoned his wife and put her into a
car. The case came to light when two county policemen on patrol saw Mrs.
Grammar's new big blue Chrysler, an anniversary present from her husband,
speeding crazily down a hill, just inside their jurisdiction (God bless our
good cops!). The car sideswiped a pole, ran up an embankment covered with beard
grass, wild strawberry and cinquefoil, and overturned. The wheels were still
gently spinning in the mellow sunlight when the officers removed Mrs. G's body.
It appeared to be routine highway accident at first. Alas, the woman's battered
body did not match up with only minor damage suffered by the car. I did better.
I rolled on. It
was funny to see again the slender white church and the enormous elms.
Forgetting that in an American suburban street a lone pedestrian is more
conspicuous than a lone motorist, I left the car in the avenue to walk
unobtrusively past 342 Lawn Street. Before the great bloodshed, I was entitled
to a little relief, to a cathartic spasm of mental regurgitation. Closed were
the white shutters of the Junk mansion, and somebody had attached a found black
velvet hair ribbon to the white FOR SALE sign which was leaning toward the
sidewalk. No dog barked. No gardener telephoned. No Miss Opposite sat on the
vined porch-where to the lone pedestrian's annoyance two pony-tailed young
women in identical polka-dotted pinafores stopped doing whatever they were
doing to stare at him: she was long dead, no doubt, these might be her twin
nieces from Philadelphia.
Should I enter my
old house? As in a Turgenev story, a torrent of Italian music came from an open
window-that of the living room: what romantic soul was playing the piano where
no piano had plunged and plashed on that bewitched Sunday with the sun on her
beloved legs? All at once I noticed that from the lawn I had mown a
golden-skinned, brown-haired nymphet of nine or ten, in white shorts, was
looking at me with wild fascination in her large blue-black eyes. I said
something pleasant to her, meaning no harm, an old-world compliment, what nice
eyes you have, but she retreated in haste and the music stopped abruptly, and a
violent-looking dark man, glistening with sweat, came out and glared at me. I
was on the point of identifying myself when, with a pang of
dream-embarrassment, I became aware of my mud-caked dungarees, my filthy and
torn sweater, my bristly chin, my bum's bloodshot eyes. Without saying a word,
I turned and plodded back the way I had come. An aster-like anemic flower grew
out of a remembered chink in the sidewalk. Quietly resurrected, Miss Opposite
was being wheeled out by her nieces, onto her porch, as if it were a stage and
I the star performer. Praying she would not call to me, I hurried to my car.
What a steep little street. What a profound avenue. A red ticket showed between
wiper and windshield; I carefully tore it into two, four, eight pieces.
Feeling I was
losing my time, I drove energetically to the downtown hotel where I had arrived
with a new bag more than five years before. I took a room, made two
appointments by telephone, shaved, bathed, put on black clothes and went down
for a drink in the bar. Nothing had changed. The barroom was suffused with the
same dim, impossible garnet-red light that in Europe years ago went with low
haunts, but here meant a bit of atmosphere in a family hotel. I sat at the same
little table where at the very start of my stay, immediately after becoming
Charlotte's lodger, I had thought fit to celebrate the occasion by suavely
sharing with her half a bottle of champagne, which had fatally conquered her
poor brimming heart. As then, a moon-faced waiter was arranging with stellar
care fifty sherries on a round tray for a wedding party. Murphy-Fantasia, this
time. It was eight minutes to three. As I walked though the lobby, I had to
skirt a group of ladies who with mille gr×ces were taking leave of each
other after a luncheon party. With a harsh cry of recognition, one pounced upon
me. She was a stout, short woman in pearl-gray, with a long, gray, slim plume
to her small hat. It was Mrs. Chatfield. She attacked me with a fake smile, all
aglow with evil curiosity. (Had I done to Dolly, perhaps, what Frank Lasalle, a
fifty-year-old mechanic, had done o eleven-year-old Sally Horner in 1948?) Very
soon I had that avid glee well under control She thought I was in California.
How was-? With exquisite pleasure I informed her that my stepdaughter had just
married a brilliant young mining engineer with a hush-hush job in the
Northwest. She said she disapproved of such early marriages, she would never
let her Phillys, who was now eighteen-
"Oh yes, of
course," I said quietly. "I remember Phyllis. Phyllis and Camp Q.
yes, of course. By the way, did she ever tell you how Charlie Holmes debauched
there his mother's little charges?"
Mrs. Chatfiled's
already broken smile now disintegrated completely.
"For
shame," she cried, "for shame, Mr. Humbert! The poor boy has just
been killed in Korea."
I said didn't she
think "vient de," with the infinitive, expressed recent events so
much more neatly than the English "just," with the past? But I had to
be trotting off, I said.
There were only
two blocks to Windmuller's office. He greeted me with a very slow, very
enveloping, strong, searching grip. He thought I was in California. Had I not
lived at one time at Beardsley? His daughter had just entered Beardsley
College. And how was-? I have all necessary information about Mrs. Schiller. We
had a pleasant business conference. I walked out into the hot September
sunshine a contented pauper.
Now that
everything had been put out of the way, I could dedicate myself freely to the
main object of my visit to Ramsdale. In the methodical manner on which I have
always prided myself, I had been keeping Clare Quilty's face masked in my dark
dungeon, where he was waiting for me to come with barber and priest:
"RĘveillez-vous, Laqueue,il est temps de mourir!" I have no time
right now to discuss the mnemonics of physiognomization-I am on my way to his
uncle and walking fast-but let me jot down this: I had preserved in the alcohol
of a clouded memory the toad of a face. In the course of a few glimpses, I had
noticed its slight resemblance to a cheery and rather repulsive wine dealer, a
relative of mine in Switzerland. With his dumbbells and stinking tricot, and
fat hairy arms, and bald patch, and pig-faced servant-concubine, he was on the
whole a harmless old rascal. Too harmless, in fact, to be confused with my
prey. In the state of mind I now found myself, I had lost contact with Trapp's
image. It had become completely engulfed by the face of Clare Quilty-as
represented, with artistic precision, by an easeled photograph of him that
stood on his uncle's desk.
In Beardsley, at
the hands of charming Dr. Molnar, I had undergone a rather serious dental
operation, retaining only a few upper and lower front teeth. The substitutes
were dependent on a system of plates with an inconspicuous wire affair running
along my upper gums. The whole arrangement was a masterpiece of comfort, and my
canines were in perfect health. However, to garnish my secret purpose with a
plausible pretext, I told Dr. Quilty that, in hope of alleviating facial
neuralgia, I had decided to have all my teeth removed. What would a complete
set of dentures cost? How long would the process take, assuming we fixed our
first appointment for some time in November? Where was his famous nephew now?
Would it be possible to have them all out in one dramatic session?
A white-smocked,
gray-haired man, with a crew cut and the big flat cheeks of a politician, Dr.
Quilty perched on the corner of his desk, one foot dreamily and seductively
rocking as he launched on a glorious long-range plan. He would first provide me
with provisional plates until the gums settled. Then he would make me a
permanent set. He would like to have a look at that mouth of mine. He wore
perforated pied shoes. He had not visited with the rascal since 1946, but
supposed he could be found at his ancestral home, Grimm Road, not far from
Parkington. It was a noble dream. His foot rocked, his gaze was inspired. It
would cost me around six hundred. He suggested he take measurements right away,
and make the first set before starting operations. My mouth was to him a
splendid cave full of priceless treasures, but I denied him entrance.
"No," I
said. "On second thoughts, I shall have it all done by Dr. Molnar. His
price is higher, but he is of course a much better dentist than you."
I do not know if
any of my readers will ever have a chance to say that. It is a delicious dream
feeling. Clare's uncle remained sitting on the desk, still looking dreamy, but
his foot had stopped push-rocking the cradle of rosy anticipation. On the other
hand, his nurse, a skeleton-thin, faded girl, with the tragic eyes of
unsuccessful blondes, rushed after me so as to be able to slam the door in my
wake.
Push the magazine
into the butt. Press home until you hear or feel the magazine catch engage.
Delightfully snug. Capacity: eight cartridges. Full Blued. Aching to be
discharged.
34
A gas station
attendant in Parkington explained to me very clearly how to get to Grimm Road.
Wishing to be sure Quilty would be at home, I attempted to ring him up but
learned that his private telephone had recently been disconnected. Did that
mean he was gone? I started to drive to grimm Road, twelve miles north of the
town. By that time night had eliminated most of the landscape and as I followed
the narrow winding highway, a series of short posts, ghostly white, with
reflectors, borrowed my own lights to indicate this or that curve. I could make
out a dark valley on one side of the road and wooded slopes on the other, and
in front of me, like derelict snowflakes, moths drifted out of the blackness
into my probing aura. At the twelfth mile, as foretold, a curiously hooded
bridge sheathed me for a moment and, beyond it, a white-washed rock loomed on
the right, and a few car lengths further, on the same side, I turned off the
highway up gravelly Grimm Road. For a couple of minutes all was dank, dark,
dense forest. Then, Pavor Manor, a wooden house with a turret, arose in a
circular clearing. Its windows glowed yellow and red; its drive was cluttered
with half a dozen cars. I stopped in the shelter of the trees and abolished my
lights to ponder the next move quietly. He would be surrounded by his henchmen
and whores. I could not help seeing the inside of that festive and ramshackle
castle in terms of "Troubled Teens," a story in one of her magazines,
vague "orgies," a sinister adult with penele cigar, drugs,
bodyguards. At least, he was there. I would return in the torpid morning.
Gently I rolled
back to town, in that old faithful car of mine which was serenely, almost
cheerfully working for me. My Lolita! There was still a three-year-old bobby
pin of hers in the depths of the glove compartment. There was still that stream
of pale moths siphoned out of the night by my headlights. Dark barns still
propped themselves up here and there by the roadside. People were still going
to the movies. While searching for night lodgings, I passed a drive-in. In a
selenian glow, truly mystical in its contrast with the moonless and massive
night, on a gigantic screen slanting away among dark drowsy fields, a thin
phantom raised a gun, both he and his arm reduced to tremulous dishwater by the
oblique angle of that receding world,-and the next moment a row of trees shut
off the gesticulation.
35
I left Insomnia
Lodge next morning around eight and spent some time in Parkington. Visions of
bungling the execution kept obsessing me. Thinking that perhaps the cartridges
in the automatic had gone stale during a week of inactivity, I removed them and
inserted a fresh batch. Such a thorough oil bath did I give Chum that now I
could not get rid of the stuff. I bandaged him up with a rag, like a maimed
limb, and used another rag to wrap up a handful of spare bullets.
A thunderstorm
accompanied me most of the way back to Grimm Road, but when I reached Pavor
Manor, the sun was visible again, burning like a man, and the birds screamed in
the drenched and steaming trees. The elaborate and decrepit house seemed to
stand in a kind of daze, reflecting as it were my own state, for I could not
help realizing, as my feet touched the springy and insecure ground, that I had
overdone the alcoholic stimulation business.
A guardedly
ironic silence answered my bell. The garage, however, was loaded with his car,
a black convertible for the nonce. I tried the knocker. Re-nobody. With a
petulant snarl, I pushed the front door-and, how nice, it swung open as in a
medieval fairy tale. Having softly closed it behind me, I made my way across a
spacious and very ugly hall; peered into an adjacent drawing room; noticed a
number of used glasses growing out of the carpet; decided that master was still
asleep in the master bedroom.
So I trudged
upstairs. My right hand clutched muffled Chum in my pocket, my left patted the
sticky banisters. Of the three bedrooms I inspected, one had obviously been
slept in that night. There was a library full of flowers. There was a rather
bare room with ample and deep mirrors and a polar bear skin on the slippery
floor. There were still other rooms. A happy though struck me. If and when
master returned from his constitutional in the woods, or emerged from some
secret lair, it might be wise for an unsteady gunman with a long job before him
to prevent his playmate from locking himself up in a room. Consequently, for at
least five minutes I went about-lucidly insane, crazily calm, an enchanted and
very tight hunter-turning whatever keys in whatever locks there were and
pocketing more planned privacy than have modern glamour-boxes, where the
bathroom, the only lockable locus, has to be used for the furtive needs of
planned parenthood.
Speaking of
bathrooms-I was about to visit a third one when master came out of it, leaving
a brief waterfall behind him. The corner of a passage did not quite conceal me.
Gray-faced, baggy-eyed, fluffily disheveled in a scanty balding way, but still
perfectly recognizable, he swept by me in a purple bathrobe, very like one I
had. He either did not notice me, or else dismissed me as some familiar and
innocuous hallucination-and, showing me his hairy calves, he proceeded,
sleepwalker-wise, downstairs. I pocketed my last key and followed him into the
entrance hall. He had half opened his mouth and the front door, to peer out
through a sunny chink as one who thinks he has heard a half-hearted visitor
ring and recede. Then, still ignoring the raincoated phantasm that had stopped
in midstairs, master walked into a cozy boudoir across the hall from the
drawing room, through which-taking it easy, knowing he was safe-I now went away
from him, and in a bar-adorned kitchen gingerly unwrapped dirty Chum, talking
care not to leave any oil stains on the chrome-I think I got the wrong product,
it was black and awfully messy. In my usual meticulous way, I transferred naked
Chum to a clean recess about me and made for the little boudoir. My step, as I
say, was springy-too springy perhaps for success. But my heart pounded with
tiger joy, and I crunched a cocktail glass underfoot.
Master met me in
the Oriental parlor.
"Now who are
you?" he asked in a high hoarse voice, his hands thrust into his
dressing-gown pockets, his eyes fixing a point to the northeast of my head.
"Are you by any chance Brewster?"
By now it was
evident to everybody that he was in a fog and completely at my so-called mercy.
I could enjoy myself.
"That's
right," I answered suavely. "Je suis Monsieur BrustĘre. Let us
chat for a moment before we start."
He looked
pleased. His smudgy mustache twitched. I removed my raincoat. I was wearing a
black suit, a black shirt, no tie. We sat down in two easy chairs.
"You
know," he said, scratching loudly his fleshy and gritty gray cheek and
showing his small pearly teeth in a crooked grin, "you don't look like
Jack Brewster. I mean, the resemblance is not particularly striking. Somebody
told me he had a brother with the same telephone company."
To have him
trapped, after those years of repentance and rage . . . To look at the black
hairs on the back of his pudgy hands . . . To wander with a hundred eyes over
his purple silks and hirsute chest foreglimpsing the punctures, and mess, and
music of pain . . . To know that this semi-animated, subhuman trickster who had
sodomized my darling-oh, my darling, this was intolerable bliss!
"No, I am
afraid I am neither of the Brewsters."
"He cocked
his head, looking more pleased than ever.
"Guess
again, Punch."
"Ah,"
said Punch, "so you have not come to bother me about those long-distance
calls?"
"You do make
them once in a while, don't you?"
"Excuse
me?"
I said I had said
I thought he had said he had never-
"People,"
he said, "people in general, I'm not accusing you, Brewster, but you know
it's absurd the way people invade this damned house without even knocking. They
use the vaterre, they use the kitchen, they use the telephone. Phil calls
Philadelphia. Pat calls Patagonia. I refuse to pay. You have a funny accent,
Captain."
"Quilty,"
I said, "do you recall a little girl called Dolores Haze, Dolly Haze?
Dolly called Dolores, Colo.?"
"Sure, she
may have made those calls, sure. Any place. Paradise, Wash., Hell Canyon. Who
cares?"
"I do,
Quilty. You see, I am her father."
"Nonsense,"
he said. "You are not. You are some foreign literary agent. A Frenchman
once translated my Proud Flesh as La FiertĘ de la Chair. Absurd."
"She was my
child, Quilty."
In the state he
was in he could not really be taken aback by anything, but his blustering
manner was not quite convincing. A sort of wary inkling kindled his eyes into a
semblance of life. They were immediately dulled again.
"I'm very
fond of children myself," he said, "and fathers are among my best
friends."
He turned his
head away, looking for something. He beat his pockets. He attempted to rise
from his seat.
"Down!"
I said-apparently much louder than I intended.
"You need
not roar at me," he complained in his strange feminine manner. "I
just wanted a smoke. I'm dying for a smoke."
"You're
dying anyway."
"Oh,
chucks," he said. "You begin to bore me. What do you want? Are you
French, mister? Wooly-woo-boo-are? Let's go to the barroomette and have a
stiff-"
He saw the little
dark weapon lying in my palm as if I were offering it to him.
"Say!"
he drawled (now imitating the underworld numskull of movies), "that's a
swell little gun you've got there. What d'you want for her?"
I slapped down
his outstretched hand and he managed to knock over a box on a low table near
him. It ejected a handful of cigarettes.
"Here they
are," he said cheerfully. "You recall Kipling: une femme est une
femme, mais un Caporal est une cigarette? Now we need matches."
"Quilty,"
I said. "I want you to concentrate. You are going to die in a moment. The
hereafter for all we know may be an eternal state of excruciating insanity. You
smoked your last cigarette yesterday. Concentrate. Try to understand what is
happening to you."
He kept taking
the Drome cigarette apart and munching bits of it.
"I am
willing to try," he said. "You are either Australian, or a German
refugee. Must you talk to me? This is a Gentile's house, you know. Maybe, you'd
better run along. And do stop demonstrating that gun. I've an old Stern-Luger
in the music room."
I pointed Chum at
his slippered foot and crushed the trigger. It clicked. He looked at his foot,
at the pistol, again at his foot. I made another awful effort, and, with a
ridiculously feeble and juvenile sound, it went off. The bullet entered the
thick pink rug, and I had the paralyzing impression that it had merely trickled
in and might come out again.
"See what I
mean?" said Quilty. "You should be a little more careful. Give me
that thing for Christ's sake."
He reached for
it. I pushed him back into the chair. The rich joy was waning. It was high time
I destroyed him, but he must understand why he was being destroyed. His
condition infected me, the weapon felt limp and clumsy in my hand.
"Concentrate,"
I said, "on the thought of Dolly Haze whom you kidnapped-"
"I did
not!" he cried. "You're all wet. I saved her from a beastly pervert.
Show me your badge instead of shooting at my foot, you ape, you. Where is that
badge? I'm not responsible for the rapes of others. Absurd! That joy ride, I
grant you, was a silly stunt but you got her back, didn't you? Come, let's have
a drink."
I asked him
whether he wanted to be executed sitting or standing.
"Ah, let me
think," he said. "It is not an easy question. Incidentally-I made a
mistake. Which I sincerely regret. You see, I had no fun with your Dolly. I am
practically impotent, to tell the melancholy truth. And I gave her a splendid
vacation. She met some remarkable people. Do you happen to know-"
And with a
tremendous lurch he fell all over me, sending the pistol hurtling under a chest
of drawers. Fortunately he was more impetuous than vigorous, and I had little
difficulty in shoving him back into his chair.
He puffed a
little and folded his arms on his chest.
"Now you've
done it," he said. "Vous voilÁ dans de beaux draps, mon
vieux."
His French was
improving.
I looked around.
Perhaps, if-Perhaps I could-On my hands and knees? Risk it?
"Alors, que
fait-on?" he asked watching me closely.
I stooped. He did
not moved. I stooped lower.
"My dear
sir," he said, "stop trifling with life and death. I am a playwright.
I have written tragedies, comedies, fantasies. I have made private movies out
of Justine and other eighteenth-century sexcapades. I'm the author of fifty-two
successful scenarios. I know all the ropes. Let me handle this. There should be
a poker somewhere, why don't I fetch it, and then we'll fish out your
property."
Fussily,
busybodily, cunningly, he had risen again while he talked. I groped under the
chest trying at the same time to keep an eye on him. All of a sudden I noticed
that he had noticed that I did not seem to have noticed Chum protruding from
beneath the other corner of the chest. We fell to wrestling again. We rolled
all over the floor, in each other's arms, like two huge helpless children. He
was naked and goatish under his robe, and I felt suffocated as he rolled over
me. I rolled over him. We rolled over me. They rolled over him. We rolled over
us.
In its published
form, this book is being read, I assume, in the first years of 2000 A.D. (1935
plus eighty or ninety, live long, my love); and elderly readers will surely
recall at this point the obligatory scene in the Westerns of their childhood.
Our tussle, however, lacked the ox-stunning fisticuffs, the flying furniture.
He and I were two large dummies, stuffed with dirty cotton and rags. It was a
silent, soft, formless tussle on the part of two literati, one of whom was
utterly disorganized by a drug while the other was handicapped by a heart
condition and too much gin. When at last I had possessed myself of my precious
weapon, and the scenario writer had been reinstalled in his low chair, both of
us were panting as the cowman and the sheepman never do after their battle.
I decided to
inspect the pistol-our sweat might have spoiled something-and regain my wind
before proceeding to the main item in the program. To fill in the pause, I
proposed he read his own sentence-in the poetical form I had given it. The term
"poetical justice" is one that may be most happily used in this
respect. I handed him a neat typescript.
"Yes,"
he said, "splendid idea. Let me fetch my reading glasses" (he
attempted to rise).
"No."
"Just as you
say. Shall I read out loud?"
"Yes."
"Here goes. I
see it's in verse.
Because you took
advantage of a sinner
because you took
advantage
because you took
because you took
advantage of my disadvantage . . .
"That's
good, you know. That's damned good."
. . . when I
stood Adam-naked
before a federal
law and all its stinging stars
"Oh, grand
stuff!"
. . . Because you
took advantage of a sin
when I was
helpless moulting moist and tender
hoping for the
best
dreaming of
marriage in a mountain state
aye of a litter
of Lolitas . . .
"Didn't get
that."
Because you took
advantage of my inner
essential
innocence
because you
cheated me-
"A little
repetitious, what? Where was I?"
Because you
cheated me of my redemption
because you took
her at the age
when lads
play with erector
sets
"Getting
smutty, eh?"
a little downy
girl still wearing poppies
still eating
popcorn in the colored gloam
where tawny
Indians took paid croppers
because you stole
her
from her
wax-browed and dignified protector
spitting into his
heavy-lidded eye
ripping his
flavid toga and at dawn
leaving the hog
to roll upon his new discomfort
the awfulness of
love and violets
remorse despair
while you
took a dull doll
to pieces
and threw its
head away
because of all
you did
because of all I
did not
you have to die
"Well, sir,
this is certainly a fine poem. Your best as far as I'm concerned."
He folded and
handed it back to me.
I asked him if he
had anything serious to say before dying. The automatic was again ready for use
on the person. He looked at it and heaved a big sigh.
"Now look
here, Mac," he said. "You are drunk and I am a sick man. Let us
postpone the matter. I need quiet. I have to nurse my impotence. Friends are
coming in the afternoon to take me to a game. This pistol-packing face is becoming
a frightful nuisance. We are men of the world, in everything-sex, free verse,
marksmanship. If you bear me a grudge, I am ready to make unusual amends. Even
an old-fashioned rencontre, sword or pistol, in Rio or elsewhere-is not
excluded. My memory and my eloquence are not at their best today, but really,
my dear Mr. Humbert, you were not an ideal stepfather, and I did not force your
little protĘgĘ to join me. It was she made me remove her to a happier
home. This house is not as modern as that ranch we shared with dear friends.
But it is roomy, cool in summer and winter, and in a word comfortable, so,
since I intend retiring to England or Florence forever, I suggest you move in.
It is yours, gratis. Under the condition you stop pointing at me that [he swore
disgustingly] gun. By the way, I do not know if you care for the bizarre, but
if you do, I can offer you, also gratis, as house pet, a rather exciting little
freak, a young lady with three breasts, one a dandy, this is a rare and
delightful marvel of nature. Now, soyons raisonnables. You will only wound me
hideously and then rot in jail while I recuperate in a tropical setting. I
promise you, Brewster, you will be happy here, with a magnificent cellar, and
all the royalties from my next play-I have not much at the bank right now but I
propose to borrow-you know, as the Bard said, with that cold in his head, to
borrow and to borrow and to borrow. There are other advantages. We have here a
most reliable and bribable charwoman, a Mrs. Vibrissa-curious name-who comes
from the village twice a week, alas not today, she has daughters,
granddaughters, a thing or two I know about the chief of police makes him my
slave. I am a playwright. I have been called the American Maeterlinck.
Maeterlinck-Schmetterling, says I. Come on! All this is very humiliating, and I
am not sure I am doing the right thing. Never use herculanita with rum. Now
drop that pistol like a good fellow. I knew your dear wife slightly. You may
use my wardrobe. Oh, another thing-you are going to like this. I have an
absolutely unique collection of erotica upstairs. Just to mention one item: the
in folio de-luxe Bagration Island by the explorer and psychoanalyst Melanie
Weiss, a remarkable lady, a remarkable work-drop that gun-with photographs of
eight hundred and something male organs she examined and measured in 1932 on
Bagration, in the Barda Sea, very illuminating graphs, plotted with love under
pleasant skies-drop that gun-and moreover I can arrange for you to attend
executions, not everybody knows that the chair is painted yellow-"
Feu. This time I
hit something hard. I hit the back of a black rocking chair, not unlike Dolly
Schiller's-my bullet hit the inside surface of its back whereupon it
immediately went into a rocking act, so fast and with such zest that any one
coming into the room might have been flabbergasted by the double miracle: that
chair rocking in a panic all by itself, and the armchair, where my purple
target had just been, now void of all life content. Wiggling his fingers in the
air, with a rapid heave of his rump, he flashed into the music room and the
next second we were tugging and gasping on both sides of the door which had a
key I had overlooked. I won again, and with another abrupt movement Clare the
Impredictable sat down before the piano and played several atrociously
vigorous, fundamentally hysterical, plangent chords, his jowls quivering, his
spread hands tensely plunging, and his nostrils emitting the soundtrack snorts
which had been absent from our fight. Still singing those impossible
sonorities, he made a futile attempt to open with his foot a kind of seaman's
chest near the piano. My next bullet caught him somewhere in the side, and he
rose from his chair higher and higher, like old, gray, mad Nijinski, like Old
faithful, like some old nightmare of mine, to a phenomenal altitude, or so it
seemed, as he rent the air-still shaking with the rich black music-head thrown
back in a howl, hand pressed to his brow, and with his other hand clutching his
armpit as if stung by a hornet, down he came on his heels and, again a normal
robed man, scurried out into the hall.
I see myself
following him through the hall, with a kind of double, triple, kangaroo jump,
remaining quite straight on straight legs while bouncing up twice in his wake,
and then bouncing between him and the front door in a ballet-like stiff bounce,
with the purpose of heading him off, since the door was not properly closed.
Suddenly
dignified, and somewhat morose, he started to walk up the broad stairs, and,
shifting my position, but not actually following him up the steps, I fired
three or four times in quick succession, wounding him at every blaze; and every
time I did it to him, that horrible thing to him, his face would twitch in an
absurd clownish manner, as if he were exaggerating the pain; he slowed down,
rolled his eyes half closing them and made a feminine "ah!" and he
shivered every time a bullet hit him as if I were tickling him, and every time
I got him with those slow, clumsy, blind bullets of mine, he would say under
his breath, with a phony British accent-all the while dreadfully twitching,
shivering, smirking, but withal talking in a curiously detached and even
amiable manner: "Ah, that hurts, sir, enough! Ah, that hurts atrociously,
my dear fellow. I pray you, desist. Ah-very painful, very painful, indeed . . .
God! Hah! This is abominable, you should really not-" His voice trailed
off as he reached the landing, but he steadily walked on despite all the lead I
had lodged in his bloated body-and in distress, in dismay, I understood that
far from killing him I was injecting spurts of energy into the poor fellow, as
if the bullets had been capsules wherein a heady elixir danced.
I reloaded the
thing with hands that were black and bloody-I had touched something he had
anointed with his thick gore. Then I rejoined him upstairs, the keys jangling
in my pockets like gold.
He was trudging
from room to room, bleeding majestically, trying to find an open window,
shaking his head, and still trying to talk me out of murder. I took aim at his
head, and he retired to the master bedroom with a burst of royal purple where
his ear had been.
"Get out,
get out of here," he said coughing and spitting; and in a nightmare of
wonder, I saw this blood-spattered but still buoyant person get into his bed
and wrap himself up in the chaotic bedclothes. I hit him at very close range
through the blankets, and then he lay back, and a big pink bubble with juvenile
connotations formed on his lips, grew to the size of a toy balloon, and
vanished.
I may have lost
contact with reality for a second or two-oh, nothing of the I-just-blacked-out
sort that your common criminal enacts; on the contrary, I want to stress the
fact that I was responsible for every shed drop of his bubbleblood; but a kind
of momentary shift occurred as if I were in the connubial bedroom, and
Charlotte were sick in bed. Quilty was a very sick man. I held one of his
slippers instead of the pistol-I was sitting on the pistol. Then I made myself
a little more comfortable in the chair near the bed, and consulted my wrist
watch. The crystal was gone but it ticked. The whole sad business had taken
more than an hour. He was quiet at last. Far from feeling any relief, a burden
even weightier than the one I had hoped to get rid of was with me, upon me,
over me. I could not bring myself to touch him in order to make sure he was
really dead. He looked it: a quarter of his face gone, and two flies beside
themselves with a dawning sense of unbelievable luck. My hands were hardly in
better condition than his. I washed up as best I could in the adjacent
bathroom. Now I could leave. As I emerged on the landing, I was amazed to
discover that a vivacious buzz I had just been dismissing as a mere singing in
my ears was really a medley of voices and radio music coming from the
downstairs drawing room.
I found there a
number of people who apparently had just arrived and were cheerfully drinking
Quilty's liquor. There was a fat man in an easy chair; and two dark-haired pale
young beauties, sisters no doubt, big one and small one (almost a child),
demurely sat side by side on a davenport. A florid-faced fellow with
sapphire-blue eyes was in the act of bringing two glasses out of the bar-like
kitchen, where two or three women were chatting and chinking ice. I stopped in
the doorway and said: "I have just killed Clare Quilty." "Good
for you," said the florid fellow as he offered one of the drinks to the
elder girl. "Somebody ought to have done it long ago," remarked the
fat man. "What does he say, Tony?" asked a faded blonde from the bar.
"He says," answered the florid fellow, "he has killed Cue."
"Well," said another unidentified man rising in a corner where he had
been crouching to inspect some records, "I guess we all should do it to
him some day." "Anyway," said Tony, "he'd better come down.
We can't wait for him much longer if we want to go to that game."
"Give this man a drink somebody," said the fat person. "What a
beer?" said a woman in slacks, showing it to me from afar.
Only the two
girls on the davenport, both wearing black, the younger fingering a bright
something about her white neck, only they said nothing, but just smiled on, so
young, so lewd. As the music paused for a moment, there was a sudden noise on
the stairs. Tony and I stepped out into the hall. Quilty of all people had
managed to crawl out onto the landing, and there we could see him, flapping and
heaving, and then subsiding, forever this time, in a purple heap.
"Hurry up,
Cue," said Tony with a laugh. "I believe, he's still-" He
returned to the drawing room, music drowned the rest of the sentence.
This, I said to
myself, was the end of the ingenious play staged for me by Quilty. With a heavy
heart I left the house and walked though the spotted blaze of the sun to my
car. Two other cars were parked on both sides of it, and I had some trouble
squeezing out.
36
The rest is a
little flattish and faded. Slowly I drove downhill, and presently found myself
going at the same lazy pace in a direction opposite to Parkington. I had left
my raincoat in the boudoir and Chum in the bathroom. No, it was not a house I
would have liked to live in. I wondered idly if some surgeon of genius might
not alter his own career, and perhaps the whole destiny of mankind, by reviving
quilted Quilty, Clare Obscure. Not that I cared; on the whole I wished to
forget the whole mess-and when I did learn he was dead, the only satisfaction
it gave me, was the relief of knowing I need not mentally accompany for months
a painful and disgusting convalescence interrupted by all kinds of
unmentionable operations and relapses, and perhaps an actual visit from him,
with trouble on my part to rationalize him as not being a ghost. Thomas had
something. It is strange that the tactile sense, which is so infinitely less
precious to men than sight, becomes at critical moment our main, if not only,
handle to reality. I was all covered with Quilty-with the feel of that tumble
before the bleeding.
The road now
stretched across open country, and it occurred to me-not by way of protest, not
as a symbol, or anything like that, but merely as a novel experience-that since
I had disregarded all laws of humanity, I might as well disregard the rules of
traffic. So I crossed to the left side of the highway and checked the feeling,
and the feeling was good. It was a pleasant diaphragmal melting, with elements
of diffused tactility, all this enhanced by the thought that nothing could be
nearer to the elimination of basic physical laws than deliberately driving on
the wrong side of the road. In a way, it was a very spiritual itch. Gently,
dreamily, not exceeding twenty miles an hour, I drove on that queer mirror
side. Traffic was light. Cars that now and then passed me on the side I had
abandoned to them, honked at me brutally. Cars coming towards me wobbled,
swerved, and cried out in fear. Presently I found myself approaching populated
places. Passing through a red light was like a sip of forbidden Burgundy when I
was a child. Meanwhile complications were arising. I was being followed and
escorted. Then in front of me I saw two cars placing themselves in such a
manner as to completely block my way. With a graceful movement I turned off the
road, and after two or three big bounces, rode up a grassy slope, among
surprised cows, and there I came to a gentle rocking stop. A kind of thoughtful
Hegelian synthesis linking up two dead women.
I was soon to be
taken out of the car (Hi, Melmoth, thanks a lot, old fellow)-and was, indeed,
looking forward to surrender myself to many hands, without doing anything to
cooperate, while they moved and carried me, relaxed, comfortable, surrendering
myself lazily, like a patient, and deriving an eerie enjoyment from my limpness
and the absolutely reliable support given me by the police and the ambulance
people. And while I was waiting for them to run up to me on the high slope, I
evoked a last mirage of wonder and hopelessness. One day, soon after her
disappearance, an attack of abominable nausea forced me to pull up on the ghost
of an old mountain road that now accompanied, now traversed a brand new
highway, with its population of asters bathing in the detached warmth of a
pale-blue afternoon in late summer. After coughing myself inside out, I rested
a while on a boulder, and then, thinking the sweet air might do me good, walked
a little way toward a low stone parapet on the precipice side of the highway.
Small grasshoppers spurted out of the withered roadside weeds. A very light
cloud was opening its arms and moving toward a slightly more substantial one
belonging to another, more sluggish, heavenlogged system. As I approached the
friendly abyss, I grew aware of a melodious unity of sounds rising like vapor
from a small mining town that lay at my feet, in a fold of the valley. One
could make out the geometry of the streets between blocks of red and gray
roofs, and green puffs of trees, and a serpentine stream, and the rich,
ore-like glitter of the city dump, and beyond the town, roads crisscrossing the
crazy quilt of dark and pale fields, and behind it all, great timbered
mountains. But even brighter than those quietly rejoicing colors-for there are
colors and shades that seem to enjoy themselves in good company-both brighter
and dreamier to the ear than they were to the eye, was that vapory vibration of
accumulated sounds that never ceased for a moment, as it rose to the lip of granite
where I stood wiping my foul mouth. And soon I realized that all these sounds
were of one nature, that no other sounds but these came from the streets of the
transparent town, with the women at home and the men away. Reader! What I heard
was but the melody of children at play, nothing but that, and so limpid was the
air that within this vapor of blended voices, majestic and minute, remote and
magically near, frank and divinely enigmatic-one could hear now and then, as if
released, an almost articulate spurt of vivid laughter, or the crack of a bat,
or the clatter of a toy wagon, but it was all really too far for the eye to
distinguish any movement in the lightly etched streets. I stood listening to
that musical vibration from my lofty slope, to those flashes of separate cries
with a kind of demure murmur for background, and then I knew that the
hopelessly poignant thing was not Lolita's absence from my side, but the
absence of her voice from that concord.
This then is my
story. I have reread it. It has bits of marrow sticking to it, and blood, and
beautiful bright-green flies. At this or that twist of it I feel my slippery
self eluding me, gliding into deeper and darker waters than I care to probe. I
have camouflaged what I could so as not to hurt people. And I have toyed with
many pseudonyms for myself before I hit on a particularly apt one. There are in
my notes "Otto Otto" and "Mesmer Mesmer" and "Lambert
Lambert," but for some reason I think my choice expresses the nastiness
best.
When I started, fifty-six
days ago, to write Lolita, first in the psychopathic ward for observation, and
then in this well-heated, albeit tombal, seclusion, I thought I would use these
notes in toto at my trial, to save not my head, of course, but my soul. In
mind-composition, however, I realized that I could not parade living Lolita. I
still may use parts of this memoir in hermetic sessions, but publication is to
be deferred.
For reasons that
may appear more obvious than they really are, I am opposed to capital punishment;
this attitude will be, I trust, shared by the sentencing judge. Had I come
before myself, I would have given Humbert at least thirty-five years for rape,
and dismissed the rest of the charges. But even so, Dolly Schiller will
probably survive me by many years. The following decision I make with all the
legal impact and support of a signed testament: I wish this memoir to be
published only when Lolita is no longer alive.
Thus, neither of us is alive when the reader opens this
book. But while the blood still throbs through my writing hand, you are still
as much part of blessed matter as I am, and I can still talk to you from here
to